<^ n ^/). V '/». '/ /^ IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) 1.0 I.I 1.25 M 22 1.8 U III 1.6 Photographic Sciences Corporation ,\ iV *" \ \ ^9) .V ^ 6^ 23 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580 (716) 872-4503 ^-b- ^^■ W Z'b™ Technical and Bibliographic Notes/Notes techniques et bibliographiques The to th The Institute has attempted to obtain the best original copy available for filming. Features of this copy which may be bibliographically unique, which may alter any of the images in the reproduction, or which may significantly change the usual method of filming, are checked below. D D n n v/ n n Coloured covers/ Couverture de couleur I I Covers damaged/ Couverture endommagie Covers restored and/or laminated/ Couverture restaurie et/ou pellicul^e I I Cover title missing/ Le titre de couverturo manque Coloured maps/ Cartes gdographiques en couleur Coloured ink (i.e. other than blue or black)/ Encre de couleur (i.e. autre que bleue ou noire) Coloured plates and/or illustrations/ Planches et/ou illustrations en couleur Bound with other material/ Reli6 avec d'autres documents Tight binding may cause shadows or distortion along interior margin/ La re liure serrde peut causer de I'ombre ou de la distortion le long de la marge int6rieure Blank leaves added during restoration may appear within the text. Whenever possible, these have been omitted from filming/ II se peut que certaines pages blanches ajout^es lors d'une restauration apparaissent dans le texte, mais, torsque cela 6tait possible, ces pages n'ont pas 6t4 filmdes. Additional comments:/ Commentaires suppl^mentaires: L'Institut a microfilm^ le meilldur exemplaire qu'il lui a 6ti possible de se procurer. Les details de cet exemplaire qui sont peut-dtre uniques du point de vue bibliographique, qui peuvent modifier une image reproduite, ou qui peuvent exiger une modification dans la mithode normale de filmage sont indiquAs ci-dessous. □ Coloured pages/ Pages de couleur □ Pages damaged/ Pages endommagdes □ Pages restored and/or laminated/ Pages restauries et/ou pelliculdes r~~j Pages discoloured, stained or foxed/ 1^1 Pages ddcolories, tachet^es ou piqu6es v/ x/ The post of tf filmi Orig begi the I sion othe first sion or ill □ Pages detached/ Pages ditachies Showthrough/ Transparence I I Quality of print varies/ Quality indgale de I'impression Includec supplementary material/ Comprend du matdriel supplementaire Only edition available/ Seule Edition disponible The shall TINt whi( Map diffe entii begi right requ metl Pages wholly or partially obscured by errata sl^ps, tissues, etc., have been refilmed to ensure the best possible image/ Les pages totalement ou partiellement obscurcies par un feuillet d'errata, une pelure, etc., ont 6t6 film^es d nouveau de facon d obtenir la meilleure image possible. This item is filmed at the reduction ratio checked below/ Ce document est filmd au taux de reduction indiqud ci-dessous. 10X 14X 18X 22X 26X SOX y 12X 16X 20X 24X 28X 32X The copy filmed here has been reproduced thanks to the generosity of: L'exempiaire fiimA fut reproduit grice it la ginirositd de: La Bibliothique de la Villa de Montrtel La Bibliothdque de la Ville de Montreal The images appearing here are the best quality possible considering the condition and legibility of the original copy and in Iteeping with the filming contract specifications. Les images suivantes ont 6t6 reproduites avec le plus grand soin. compte tenu de la condition et de la nettetd de l'exempiaire film6, et en conformity avec les conditions du contrat de filmage. Original copies in printed paper covers are filmed beginning with the front cover and ending on the last page with a printed or illustrated imprds- sion, or the back cover when appropriate. All other original copies are filmed beginning on the first page with a printed or illustrated impres- sion, and ending on the last page with a printed or illustrated impression. Les exemplaires originaux dont la couverture en papier est imprimte sent fiimis en commenpant par le premier plat et en terminant soit par la dernidre page qui comporte une empreinte d'impression ou (i'illustration, soit par le second plat, seion le cas. Tpus les autres exemplaires originaux sont film6s en commenpant par la premidre page qui comporte une empreinte d'impression ou d'illustration et en terminant par la dernidre page qui comporte une telle empreinte. The last recorded frame on each microfiche shall contain the symbol —^ (meaning "CON- TINUED"), or the symbol V (meaning "END"), whichever applies. Un des symboles suivants apparaTtra sur la dernidre image de cheque microfiche, seion le cas: le symbole — ► signif ie "A SUIVRE", le symbole y signifie "FIN". Maps, plates, charts, etc., may be filmed at different reduction ratios. Those too large to be entirely included in one exposure are filmed beginning in the upper left hand corner, left to right and top to bottom, as many frames as required. The following diagrams illustrate the method: Les cartas, planches, tableaux, etc., peuvent Atre fiimis d des taux de reduction diffdrents. Lorsque le document est trop grand pour Atre reproduit en un seul clich6, il est film6 A partir de Tangle supdrieur gauche, de gauche h droite, et de haut en bas, en prenant le nombre d'images n6cessaire. Les diagrammes suivants illustrent la mithode. 1 2 3 32X 1 2 3 4 5 6 ■y/'..,./ ^ ///,/',/' //, /yy.y.^A of Ma.dius Lycou.n, before whom, in the wnter of 18 1 l~i2, ho was solicitoa to ddivor a Lecture upon tho Early History and Settlement of tho town of Munlius anxl vicinity-tho task was reluctantly accepted. In entering upon a subject, at first thought to lx> unfruitful in inci- dent and barren of interest, materials multiplied and tacts accumulated to such an extent, that instead of asinglo Lecture, two was tho result, • Ihe held of hu-estigation already entered, was found to bo unex- p ored, and the author was borne on involuntarily, if not irresistably, to glean tresh materials from sources the most prolific. la viewing tho ancient fortifications, burying grounds and relics, so numerous in this county, and becoming satisfied that tho history of these works was imperfectly understood, and that the materials for bnngu,g it to light, were widely scattered-although unqualified, in many respects, to do ju.tico to so important a subject, nevertheless, the author telt it a duty to proceed. The success which has attended tho undertaking, in the collectiou ot a mass of materials, has greatly e.vcoeded anticipation. The matter for this work, has been digested and arranged amidst he cares and perplexities, toils and trials, incident to tho life of a la- bormg man. It has been only in leisure moments, snatched at inter- vals when tho plow was at rest, and tho sytho and sickle were sus- pended, that the n.aterials have been gathered and put in order for the press. Since the time these labors first commenced, tho Libraries of Cam- bridge University, Mass.; lirown University and Athenan.m, of Provi- iy PREFACE. Jonco, R. I.; and .ho New-Y„,k n«i„ri,„ Society. NowVork S^ty L^™«ofNc» York and tl,oS.„.„Li,.™r,,,.Alba,,,,hnvol.e„vi' « , to each ,„d,vi,lual Libraria,, of „l,ic|,, ,h„ „o,t grateful acknowl. .m the ollowing works, vi. :-Charlav„i.x' 1 listorie do Nouvillo Fran- ca.; Charievoix- letters to tho ] ,„cl.ess IWcsdigaiorcs ; Francis Crenxins' U.slora, Nov,e Franci. ; Father llenepin's Travels in North America; •fes„,t he at,„ns fron, 1 0-12 to 1 T02 ; Loskiel's, La Ilontan's and Hceke- welJe,-s ndian Histories; CoKlen's Five N.ations ; Sn,i.hs llisU^ry of .New-\ork; JJroJhead's London Doenmcnts ; Mai-shalrs Lifo of Wash- .-.gton; Snrollcfs Uistory of Kugland; Stone's Life of Brant; .School- crafts Ao.es; Kip's .lesuits; Natural History of New-York; Canal I^ocuinuiiLs ; Balloting Book, d'c. To numerous individuals, .ho to a greater or less extent have aided .a tins undertaking, the author is under peculiar ..Ui,ations, ^.r hints «n^ostions and the lumishing uf n.aterials. An.ong those, he takes pleasure in nanung Professor AVillian, Gannndl, of 1 5ro wn University^ acob 1^. Moore, Es^., Librarian of the X.nv-^'ork Ilbtorioal Sooiet; ^ Hon. Archibald Can.pbell, l.eputy Secretary of State; Mr. Van Kens' selaer, Assistant Surveyor (General ; Aln-ed B. Street Esq., State Libra- rian; and E. B. O'Callaghan, M. ])., Albany. Totliellev. Messrs. Saltorn Givens, A,hun Eiliott and Abraham Nelles, Missionaries among the Mohawks, Onondagas and Oneidas, in Canada \^ est, respecting iheir interesting missions and also to tho v-York Society , have been vis- iteful acknowl- diioss, afforded '. I, the most )Iaciiin^ at the our county's rks, published iguago. ',andas such, 'rfection. suited, and in Irawn h'lrgely ouville Fran- K'is Creuxius' 'th America; s and Hocke- 3 History of ifo of Wash- ant ; School- ork; Canal • have aided IS, for hints, K', h(j takes University ; 'al Society ; Van liens- state Libra- Abraliam Oneidas, in xlso to the PREFAOB. Kov, Elczor Willi,,,,,,, l„„ij ,i„,„ . Ml.,io„Hry a,„o„g l|,„ 0„ondag« mi 0„e,Ja., „l Onoid, d Uroen I)„y, „„d to Iholiov. E,.ki,l (J Gear, Cl,a,,l„i„ U. S. A., K„,t Snclling, tho „,c«t .i„c«ro tl,„„b a«' due far valuable co,i„n„„icatio„n, Abo to the late lto». J„l„, C, liudd, IX I).. „f Utica; Eov. Ilenrv Gregory D. U.. of Sy,,,e„,e; Kov. Jol„, I. f;,,,, ofManlius, and Rev Geo. ... Dolevan, oO.a Kay..,to. Abo, to Harvey Baldwi,,, Jol,„ Wilkin- .o„, W,s II Kedfeld, Tl„„.,a, S,,e„„,, a„,« v. G™ge, Phare. Go,dd, E. W. Leavcawurtl, „„d U„f,„ Stanton, K,qr»., of Syracuse. Al- »o, to t.o Clerk of Cayuga County, a,.d to V. W. S,„i.l,, E,,., Clerk, a.d L. J. C.U ne,,„ty Clerk of Onondaga County; ,Io„. Squire M. Brow,, of Elbndge ; JI„„. r,,„,.g, „Mo,, Hon. David Munro and B. l^T^' "'^^^^'f'""'"-' "-- "»l<''v-™a l%do,v,of Lysao- der fho„u„VVl,eele,,I.i,,.,of Salina; Si„,e„„ Clark, of Otiseo ; Cl.a', 0, Roundey. of .Sp,,,,,,, Wa,,,„ „,„„,_ ^,^^ „, ^^^ ^^_ Lev, S. l„r,ou,, of Marcellu,; II. c. V.an Sol,aack, E,,., of M„„,i„,; Jerem,al. Gould .„d I,,,ae Keeler, B.,rs., of La Layette; Hon. DaJ Moseleyand Oliver U. Strong, Es,., of Ono„d,ga; Asa Eastwood and W,n Steven,, Esqrs., of Cieero. Also, to Edwin W. Clarke, B B Burt and Matthow McSai,., E„,r,, of Oswego, and A. G. Hull a,,,, Pete, »cl,eaek, 11,,,.., of Falton, the author is under speeial obligations for miJortaut suggestions .and ,nateri.als. The na,ues of M„. O'BIenni.,, of g,ali„a, and Mrs. Wood, of Onon- d»ga noUow, should not be omitted, both of whom have resided in tie eounly fro,,, its earliest settlement, and whose vigorous minds are stored w,tU an ahnost unli,„iled stoek of valuable information U,t .,re .,eknowledged the MSS. and papers furnished by the Eev J. W. Adams, D D, who for several years, had been engaged upon . s,m, „r wor... These had been eolleeted by the Rev. Dr., with a view ult,n,ate publiealion, but hisparoehial duties, and other nneontrol.- ble e,reun,,,a„ces interposed, and the idea was abandoned. So far a. ava,lable, these papers have been drawn from In acWiH,., ,0 the aeknowledgements already made, there are hut., dreds of „.J,v,d„al, throughout the eounty, who have been scareeiy ^ PREFACE. I«.ervi«blc l„ f„n,W,i„g ,„,„. , f„, „,, „„k, „„j ,,,„^j ^ ^c.r nan.o, re«v„ a pl.«, wo ,houla U te„„a u, ^vo a couple,. mu..cr roll of .h„ „,«,. .p„ .„...„,,„ „„,^,^^,_ __^^^_^ P U^«., »h„ ,.„ve ,,,„«, „, ,„ , „„,„„.„ .,„,^,,.^,^ littio progress. With those prohminary remarks and explanations, the followinrr pages nro submitted to tho public. wiiowmg Jotv, 1849. ». THE AUTHOR. ^ il I It CONTENTS, VOL. I. CHAPTER I. INDIANS. %1L% T '"•" J"'"""-, ^'"»°'' '"■ 'J'"-ercnt tribe, once inhabiting New-York. cZlTt ^"*^'";'^"-^^-"-'--y- Mohawks. Oaeidas. OnondoKM Cayugag. Senecus. General Remarks ^ . j. CHAPTER II. TRADITIONS OF THE ONONDAGAS. "^SeTn'ent "" O^"''" ""l"": by Tao^n-ya-wat-ha. llin slaughter of a Mo„«rou, Serpent. Opening of the chnnnel of OnondoKu River. The Enchantress Featherea Mon.ter.s. Great l.^le. Allusion to other tJmo^^uZ and Wuard. Evd Spirit. Tradition of a Colony. Helief in Thunder and L.ghtnmg. Marnage. Fan.ily Discipline. Treatn.entof the Sick. Bur^I. 37 CHAPTER III. PAGAN RITES AND CEREMONIEa Religious Belief Annual Feasts. Sacrifices. Dances. Eemark* 53 CHAPTER IV. PAGAN RITES AND CEREMONIES. Compared with those of the Jews, Egyptians, Greeks and Romans. (59 CHAPTER V. LIVES OF DISTINGUISHED ONONDAGA CHIEFS. Dekannissora. Garangula. Kanahjeagah. Sadekanahto. Canassetago. Oundi- ago. Conyatauyou. Ossahinta. Tatotah. Dehatkatons. Council Fire. 79 CHAPTER VI. FRENCH MISSIONS. Introduction of French Roman Catholic Missionaries to Onondaga. Father Si. ••• Vlll CONTENTS. Father Paul Ra-uencau n-JT? "'" ^"'"^ '° ^he Onondagas, by Moyne with th/o ^.s el "i" nT""!." o'" """•• ^^''''"^'°" °^ ^' Account of u Colony oaf Jan.^v l^r °'V '° ''''• ^^^ ^'" ^''"'°«'« y Janie^vjlle, ICOG. Relalions from 1668 to 1709. 126 CHAPTER VII. LWGLISII, GERMAN AND AMERICAN MISSIONS Sanson Oce.; nSO. B^Z!]^:::^^:'^!:;^^ T ■ ^- • 210 CHAPTER VIII. -mY HISTORY OF THE ONONDAGAS, AND INCIDENTALLY THAT OF THE SIX NATIONS '^'"'''^^^^^^ of the Iroquois with the French. Irr val of Mo n . ^"^'''/"'^''=°"'«« «»„ f„. Peace. F„„e„ P^p^^t trit I:e po t" ^..."^a Attack and Dissappointment of the French Wnr Ton.- i ^"^'"'"S^'*- ^^^ wicMC97. Enghsh Negotiations witutF^NaS:;:"^'- ^"""f^i^" CHAPTER IX. EARLY HISTORY CONTINUED. Council at Onondaga. Council at A Ihamr i 7nn v i- ■ * at Onondaga. I^rl Belo^ont'^^^S:?^ C^" kI .^1^°^' " ^ T turn and Report. View, of the Five Nations. A ^cl Lnt t ^h"^^^^^ Iroquo,s join Col. Schuyler in an Expedit.on against e Fr nch 17^0 rf cessful. Aflairs of the Five Nuions .,,,1 .i ,,"' "^ '^'^«"'=''. 1 '09- Unsuc- Gov. Hunter and the Fi.!: N^C ^ B rneT"t:d' 'h"''" '"''^"^• at Oswego. Extract fro„. the Journal of Con d Weil^ S ""T ""' ^T tions Incorporated with the Ironuois f)no J, . \. ^''^'"' ^*- liam Johnson's Journal. Col. Brad-Street pn,1 cL «i • > .7 ""'" ui. urdusirett and Gen. Shirley at Oswego, 1775-76 t Relation 1655-6. , and their Return le Onoiidagas, by Reception of Le t)e Witt Clinton's 36Stol709. 126 5I0NS. • German Mis- "d, 17tJG. Rev. IC. Missionary and Onondaga, - 210 [DENTALLY cient and Mod- rst Intercourse • His Visit to aldiers. Early • Jiivasion of 1- Deputation i witli the Five ns of the Five wis. Negoti- Ciidaga. The Peace of R,ys- • 246 Build a Fort Romer's Re- tho English. 709. Unsuo- ern Indians. )se and Fort Several Na- estern Fron- •om Sir Wil- go, 1775-76 ■I s CONTENTS. ix Loss of Oswego, i-all of Quebec. Peace. Approach of the Revolution. Course Pursued by tiio Indian Nations During the Revolution. War of 1S12. Present Condition of the Onondagas. •■-.... 286 CHAPTER X. REMINISCENCES. Aboriginal Names. E.\))on . O'iO mmmmm i. ONONDAGA I CHAPTER I. ORIOm OF THE TKRM 1m,.M-NAV«, or n.PK.RKNT TRIBES ONCE .NHAB.TINO New Y0RK~P,VE NaMonS-Orioin op the CoNKEr.ERACV-Mo,IAWKS-ONElDAS- ONONDAOA»-CAYUGA..i-SKNECAS-GKNERAL Re,,ARK3. In commencing our reminiscences of Onondaga, we are met m the outset by a people who from time immemorial have oc cupied our soil-a nation who have hitherto held a conspicu- ous place and an important position among the aboriginal inhabitants of North America. Finding thorn .0, it is but just to give them a passing notice. At the time the scheme of discovery was most strongly agi- tated and urged by Columbus, it was supposed that by sailing westward from Europe he would arrive at the eastern coast of India. And it was confidently believed even at the period of the discovery of the islands and continent of America, that he had actua ly discovered a western passage to the continent ot India. Many of the navigators who followed Columbus were of the same erroneous opinion. Hence it was, that the people of America, found here by Europeans, were at first "nproperly ca led Indians. The truth was not clearly asce ! tamed until the name had been so long in use that it could not well be changed. By Americans, the term is seldom used except as applying to the aborigines of the country. But among Europeans, in the correspondence between peLns of different countries, it oftentimes produces confusion and incon- venience. When the first Europeans visited this continent, thoy ,.ere great y surprised to find a race of beings so entirely different from themselves, m complexion, dress, language, manners, and oode of hvmg. Savage, indeed, in many respects, they ap- ./f^?-?^ 0^.,^^^ijjm:^M^\ .$■>•/ OO' >'tfk 40 tl'. rih/lfl I.^AFAYK r ()\.I V ' nmp\i »/( it ?/ I JJ «» i^*. /1<^? I i ^ ? •r— [ffi^/ .^.J* i«. i :■«!' ; f/ >'ro»' r^/J< A>/y/e/- Eu; X CHENANGO LIXKLAEN CO. I 18 ONONDAGA. peared to be — yet the kindest hospitality, from the purest motives, was always most readily extended to their foreign guests. And perhaps would forever have remained unbroken the golden cord of friendship, had the red man been the first to try his strength upon it. " Welcome, Englishmen; tvel- come, Englishmen,'' are words intimately associated with early American history. These were the first accents our Pilgrim Fathers heard on the American strand, and ever have the same grateful sounds greeted the ears of the whites, upon their first interview with the rude sons of the forest. Had the dis- position of the aborigines been any other than friendly, the feeble colonies first planted on American soil would have been speedily annihilated. At the time of the settlement of New- York by the Dutch, in 1610, there were in their immediate vicinity, numerous tribes of Indians denominated from their weakness and inferi- ority ^'■the Bushes," by their more powerful neighbors the Five Nations. As many as thirteen difierent tribes, all of whom are now extinct, are supposed to have had their allotted territories on Long Island, and exercised exclusive jurisdic- tion and control over their several portions of domain. They were known by the name of Canarsees, Rockaways, Merricks, Massapequas, Mantinecocks, Nassaquakes, Setaukets, Cor- chaugs, Manhassets, Secatogues, Patchogues, Shinecocks and Montauks. In 1786, the remnants of the two last named tribes took up their abode among the Oneidas, whither they had been invited. The Manhattoes occupied the Island of New- York. The Nyacks inhabited in the vicinity of the Narrows below New- York, and about Westchester county. The Moheakenunks inhabited a large portion of country, from the Nyacks up the Hudson near to Albany. The Scagh- takooks, occupied a large tract of country north of Albany ; one of their principal villages was near where the city of Troy • now stands. Other tribes of obscure origin and inferior note, undoubtedly occupied other localities within the state of New- York, some of which will be noted in their proper place. Many of these Indian tribes, during the years immediately suo- 1 t — ?^ INDIANS. om the purest y their foreign lined unbroken 1 been the first flishmen; tcel- ated Avith early its our Pilgrim ever have the ,tes, upon their Had the dis- a friendly, the ould have been by the Dutch, ity, numerous ess and inferi- neighbors the tribes, all of I their allotted usive jurisdic- Dmain. They ays, Merricks, itaukets, Cor- hinecocks and last named whither they the Island of cinity of the ester county, country, from The Scagh- li of Albany ; 3 city of Troy • inferior note, itate of New- aroper place, aediately suo- 19 ceeding the arrival of tlio first colonists among them, evinced a hostile disposition towards their new neighbors, and were contmual sources of alarm to the white inhabitants; never- theless, they were all tributary, and otherwise subject to the powerful confederacy of the "Five Nations." These distinguished nations, firmly bound and concentrated m one, held the ascendency over all the North American tribes. Their territory proper extended from Hudson's river on the cast, to the Niagara on the west; from lake Ontario on the north, to the Alleghanies on the south. At one time their actual domain extended from the Sorel, south by the great lakes to the Mississippi west, thence east to the Santee and coastwise back to the Hudson. They occupied a wide- spread country, comprising a greater body of more fertile lan< , combined with a temperate and healthy climate, greater facilities for water communication, not only within their own territory, but extending from it in all directiona. with more ex- tensive hunting grounds and fisheries, than any other tract of tlie same extent in the world. They were called by the IVeiich ''Iroquois," by the English " The Cov federates;' or ''Five Nations;' by the Dutch " Blaquas;' and by themselves " Mi^i- !-/oes;' meaning by all, " United People:' The Eno-lish re- tained the name Maquas for the Mohawks, for a lo'ncr time after the Dutch had relinquished the country. The*' name Iroquois, according to Charlevoix, is purely French * and is .lerivedfrom"^zVo," signifying I have said it-answering to the Latin dixit~^ccox,\mg to the words most frequently made * Le nomdiroqnois e.si purement Frangois, et a ^te forme du terme Hiro ou Hero q,u .gn,fie I'ai dit : et par quel ces sauvages finissent lous leurs discours' cor.n.e le,s Lat.n.s fa.soient autrefois par leur Dixi ; et do Koue. qui est un cr antot de tr.tesso, lor.quW le prononce e„ trainar... et tantot de jove, quand o^ ie prononce plus court. Leur no,, propre est Agonnonsionni, qui veu; dire fZ eurs de Cabannes; parce qu'ils les batissent beaucoup plus solides, que la pld- part des autres sauvages."— Charlevoix, I. 270—1 . 4 pm "Ces barbares ne sont qu'uue seule nation, et qu'un seul interet public. On pourrou les nommer pour la distribution du terrain, les Suisses de ce continent Les Iroquo.s sont partager en cinq cantons, sgavcr les Tsonontouans, les Goyo goans, les Onnotagues, les Onoyouts et les Agnies."-Lahontan T 35 ^ 20 ONONDAGA. 1 = uae of at the close of all Indian speeches, and " Koue" a term denoting sadness when spoken slowly, and joy when spoken rapidly. The term Aquinuschioni, according to the same author, is translated ^' Faiseurs de Cabannes," or Makers of Cabins or Wigwams, which they supposed they themselves built stronger than any other people. Another name by which they always boastfully termed themselves, was Ongwe Honwe, signifying SI people surpassing all others. As the term Aquinuschioni is usually accepted, it means the people of the long cabin or long house, but when used in a national sense it means a Uni- ted People. The limits of this imaginary house, was of the same area as their territory proper, and may be considered the broadest, longest and highest cabin as yet erected by human hands. At what period or for what purpose this league was origi- nally formed, is a matter wholly speculative, as the records of history and Indian tradition arc alike uncertain, and throw but feeble light upon the subject. It is supposed, however, that anciently, they wei-c separate and independent nations ; and probably warred with an equal relish upon each other as upon their neighbors, and perhaps finally united themselves for purposes of greater strength and security, thereby enlarg- ing their power and importance at home, enabling them to prosecute more vigorously their conquests abroad. Common danger or a desire for conquest were the motives, rather than a far-seeing policy, which must have actuated these people to form a league of consolidation. By some authors the time of the foi-mation of the great league of confederation, was about the life of one man before the Dutch landed at New- York. By others, about an hun- dred years before that period. Webster, the Onondaga inter- preter, and good authority, states it at about two generations before the white people came to trade with the Indians. But from the permanency of tlieir institutions, tlie peculiar struc- ture of their government, the intricacy of their civil affairs, the stability of their religious beliefs and the imiformity of I I INDIANS, nd "JTowe/'a and joy when lame author, is 8 of Cabins or ! built stronger ch thoy always iwe, signifying Aquinuschioni ; long cabin or means a Uni- sc, was of the be considered et erected by gue was origi- .3 tlio records lin, and throw )sed, however, ident nations ; each other as ed themselves lereby enlarg- bling them to id. Common s, rather than lese people to of the great te man before bout an hun- londaga inter- generations ndians. But »eculiar struc- * civil affairs, miformity of 21 their pagan ceremonies, differing from other Indian nations in important particulars, we are inclined to the opinion that their federative existence must have had a much longer dura- tion. And from the following tradition, we are inclined to the opinion, that the period is unknown, and the time lost, in the clouded uncertainties of the past. Hundreds of years ago, Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, the Deity who pre- sides over fisheries and streams, came down from his dwelling place in the clouds to visit the inhabitants of the earth. He had been deputed by the Great and Good Spirit Ha-wah-ne-u, to visit the streams and clear the channels from all obstruc- tions, to seek out the good things of, the country through which he intended to pass, that they might be more generally disseminated among all the good people of the earth, especial- ly to point out to them the most excellent fishing grounds, and to bestow upon them other acceptable gifts. About this time two young men of the Onondaga Nation were listlessly gazing over the calm blue waters of the " Lake of a Thousand Isles." During their revery, they espied, as they thought, far in the distance, a single white speck, beautifully dancing over the bright blue waters— and while they watched the object with the most intense anxiety, it seemed to increase in magnitude, and moved as if approaching the place where they were con- cealed, most anxiously awaiting the event of the visitation of so singular an object, for at this time no canoes had ever made their appearance in the direction from whence this was approaching. As the object neared the shore, it proved in semblance to be a venerable looking man, calmly seated in a canoe of pure white, very curiously constructed, and much more ingeniously wrought than those in use among the tribes of the country. Like a cygnet upon the wide blue sea, so sat the canoe of Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha upon the " Lake of a Thou- sand Isles." As the frail branch drifts towards the rushing cataract, so coursed the wMte canoe over the rippling waters, propelled by the strong arm of the god of the river. Deep thought sat upon the brow of the grey-haired mariner ; pene- tration marked his eye, and deep, dark mystery pervaded his 22 ONONDAGA. ,iv' m countenance. With a single oar he silently paddled his light- trimmed bark along the shore, as if seeking a commodious haven for rest. He soon turned the prow of his fragile vessel into the estuary of the ^'double river," and made fast to the western shore. He majestically ascended the steep bank, nor stopped till he had gained the loftiest summit of the western hill. Then silently gazing around as if to examine the coun- try, he became enchanted with the view; when, drawing his stately form to its utmost height, he exclaimed in accents of the wildest enthusiasm, Osh-wah-kee ! ! Osh-wah-kee !•' * During the observations of the spirit-man, (for so' he was afterwards called,) the two men who had lain concealed, cau- tiously Avatching all his movements, discovered themselves, la-oun-ya-wat-ha very civilly approached them, and after the greetings usual at the first meeting of strangers, very gravely' made inquiries of them respecting their country and its advan- tages, of their fisheries and hunting grounds, and of the im- pediments in the way of the prosperity of the nations round about. To all of which the hunters, (for so they were,) could give no very favorable answers, but briefly stated to him the disadvantages they had ever been doomed to labor under, and the sufferings they had borne in consequence. A degree of familiarity and mutual confidence had by this time become awakened in the bosoms of the parties, and the greatest freedom of conversation proceeded without restraint. The hunters provided for their venerable guest a repast of roast venison, who received it in thankfulness; they smoked the calumet together and were refreshed. Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha disclosed to the hunters the spirituality of his character and the object of his mission, after whiHl he mvited them to proceed with him up the river, as he M * It is known, perhaps, to comparatively few, that Lake Ontario and the outlet of Oswego nver was anciently, and is now known to most Indian nations e" 'e cially the remnant of the Five Nations, as the Osh-wah-kee wh.Vh h .' ^ ted hterally, signifies from the circun.stance here Itedl^/ 1 ''^'"^""'-P-; see ,....,. From this our English name for theUtoswe^irSvI ^"' " ■■-rr^:;i 1 INDIANS, 23 )addled his light- ? a commodious his fragile vessel nado fast to the steep bank, nor i of the western amine the coun- len, drawing his d in accents of ah-kee !■ ! * (for so ho was concealed, cau- •ed themselves. 1, and after the. •s, very gravely ' and its advan- and of the im- nations round sy were,) could ted to him the bor under, and ce had by this arties, and the hout restraint. St a repast of ; they smoked lie spirituality , after wliicli, ver, as ho luul irio and the outlet lian nations, espe- ch being inlerpre- !ee evety where and ;o is derived. important business to transact, and should need their services. After a moment's consultation together, the hunters consented to accompany him, and forthwith joyfully attended him to his canoe. Of the events which immediately succeeded, we have not now time or disposition to speak, only that many of them were truly marvellous, and worthy a place only in the pages of Indian Mythology. From this, Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha ascended all the lesser lakes and explored their shores, placing all things in proper order, for the comfort and sustenance of all good men. He had taught the people of the various tribes the art of raising corn and beans, which had not before been cultivated among them. He also encouraged them to a more faithful observance of the laws of the Great and Good Spirit. He had made the fishing grounds free, and opened to all the uninterrupted pursuit of game. He had distributed liberally among mankind the fruits of the earth, and had removed all obstructions from the navi- gable streams. Pleased with the success of his undertakings, the spirit-man - now resolved to lay aside his divine character, and in after years to make his abode among the children of men. He accordingly selected for his residence a beautiful spot on the shore of the Cross Lake, (Te-ungk-too, as called by the Na- tives). After awhile, he totally relinquished his divine title of Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, and in all respects assumed the character and habits of a man. Nevertheless, he was always looked up to as an extraordinary individual, as one possessing transcend^ ent powers of mind and consummate wisdom. The name Hi-a- wat-ha, (signifying very wise man) was spontaneously awarded him, by the whole mass of people who now resorted to him from all quarters for advice and instruction. The companions of the spirit-man, at a subsequent council, were rewarded by a seat in the councils of their countrymen, and became eminently distinguished for their prowess in war and dignified bearing in the council room. After a quiet residence of a few years at his new location. 24 ONONDAGA. 1 the country became greatly alarmed, by the sudden approach of a ferocious band of warriors, from north of the great lakes. As they advanced, indiscriminate slaughter was made, of men, women and children. Many had been slain and ultimate de- struction seemed to be the consequence, either of bold resist- ance, or of a quiet relinquishment of absolute right. During this signal agitation of the public mind, people from all quarters thronged the dwelling place of Hi-a-wat-ha, for advice m this trying emergency. After a deep and thoughtful contemplation of the momentous subject, he informed the prin- cipal chiefs that his opinion was, to call a grand council of all the tnbes that could be gathered from the east and from the west, that the advice of all might be received; "for" said he " our safety is in good counsel,and speedy, energetic action." Accordingly, runners were dispatched in all directions, noti- fying the head men, of a grand council to be held on the banks of the lake Oh-nen-ta-ha. This council is supposed to have been held on the high ground where the village of Liverpool now stands. In due time the chiefs and warriors from far and near were assem- bled, with great numbers of men, women and children, to hold this important council, and to devise means for the general safety. All the principal men had arrived, except the vene- rable Hi-a-wat-ha. The council-fire had been kindled three days, and he had not yet arrived. IVIessengers were dispatched, who found him m a most melancholy state of mind. He told them that evil lay in his path ; that he had a fearful foreboding of ill- fortune, and that he had concluded not to attend the great council at Oh-nen-ta-ha. But, said the messengers, we have delayed the deliberations of the grand council on account of your absence, and the chiefs have resolved not to proceed to business, until your arrival. The White Canoe had always been held as a sacred treasure, and next to the wise man himself, was regarded with awe and reverence. li had been deposited in a lodge, erected especial- ly for its security, to which none but the most worthy and noted r< v5 ■—,::.Zi^ t INDIANS. 25 dden approach he great lakes, made, of men, d ultimate de- of bold resist- ■ight. d, people from i-a-wat-ha, for md thoughtful rmed the prin- council of all and from the "for" said he getic action." -ections, noti- held on the i on the high ids. In due ' were assem- dren, to hold ' the general ;pt the vene- and he had , who found Id them that oding of ill- id the great ers, we have I account of > proceed to ed treasure, ith awe and ed especial- y and noted of the chieftains could have access. Hither on tliis occa- sion Hi-a-wat-ha repaired, and in the most devout and humil- iating manner, poured out his soul in silence to the Great Spirit. After a protracted absence, he returned with a coun- tenance beaming with confidence and hope. Being over per- suaded by his friends, he reluctantly yielded to their ear- nest solicitations. The White Canoe was carefully removed from its sacred resting place, and reverently launched upon the bosom of the river. The wise man, once again took his accus- tomed seat, and bade his darling and only daughter (a girl of some twelve years of age) to accom^jany him. She unhesita- tingly obeyed, took her place beside her venerable parent in the devoted vessel, and directly, they made all possible speed to the grand council ground. On the approach of the aged and venerable Hi-a-wat-ha, a general shout of joy resounded throughout the assembled host, and every demonstration of respect, Avas paid to this illustrious sage and counsellor. As ho landed and was pass- ing up the steep bank towards the council ground, a loud sound was heard, like a rushing and mighty wind. All eyes were instantly turned upwards, and a dark spot was discover- ed rapidly descending from on high among the clouds. It groAv larger and larger as it neared the earth, and was de- scending with fearful velocity into their very midst. Terror and alarm seized every breast, and every individual seemed anxious only for his own safety. The utmost confusion pre- vailed throughout the assembled multitude, and all but the venerable Hi-a-wat-ha, sought safety by flight. He gravely uncovered his silvered head, and besought his daughter, to await the approaching danger with becoming resignation; at the same time reminding her of the great folly and impropriety of attempting to obstruct or prevent the designs or wishes of the Great Spirit. "If," said he, "He has determined our destruction, we shall not escape by removal, nor evade his decrees." She modestly acquiesced in her kind parent's sug- gestions and advice, and with the most patient submission wait- ed the coming event. All this was but the work of an instant ; 26 ONONDAGA. for no sooner had the resolution of the wise man become fixed and h. last words uttered, than an immense bird, vi la W and pon.ted beak, with wide extended wings, eame d n w"h vvitli such toice did the monster fall, and so great was the ommotion o the air, that when it Struck th! ^oZ 1 ^vhol. assembly were forced violently back severah-or ' H^ ajat-ha alone remained unmoved and silently witnessed the mdancholy catastrophe of his child's dissolution. H,s darlmg daughter had been killed before his eyes in a marvellous manner, and her destrov<>v ' i • . i • 7 TI.o ,i; 1 . atstioytT liad perished with her e™.;::;; ■;':'; " 'r''i "/ '«^''°' -""-^ *'' » ereiy ,i.,n,o as J,e a,lvancc,l, ,,luclc«l a ,,l„,„e f,.„„, ,|,i ,;,, fn ;;;:;;' ;,,:; ""'V-: "''"'™'' '-^ "'■'™ ■• -i «- ^ indent, (he Ij raves of the cenfe.lerate nations forever after made cl.o.ce of the ,,)„,„„» of the white heron as t e mZ -P -nate „„litar, ornament, while „„„„ the war"" "' Upon the ren,oval of the oareass of the monster, 'th body of the „,„o«„t g,rl was found to he eompletely ground to atoms .Nothmg could be seen of her, thit would inTca 1.0 had ever een a human being. At this appearan tt bereaved and d.seonsolate parent gave himself up to th los potgnant sorrow. Hollow moans and distre.«i„l ..ief to, too plaudy the bitte™e.ss of hi., heart. He spnr.L? 1 'p „" fora of consolatton and yielded to the kee,>est feelings of at guish and unbounded sorrow. He became an object of perfect despair, and threw himself down upon lus face to the earth, dejected and diseonso Th shatered fragments of the innocent girl were carefully gathered ogether, and interred in all the tenderness and ! emn, y of b.tter grief. Every one seemed to partieipateta the affl,et,o„s ef the aged and venerable counsellor, and to sym pathtze m h,s sufferings and woe. Still, no com or tc™ " INDIANS. 27 n become fixed I'd, with a long line down with 1 to tlie eartli. !,'reat was the e ground, the I'ul rods. Hi- witnessed the 1. his eyes in a hed with lier. the spot and I upon exauii- letely buried ground. It y white, and "rom this sin- nd from this ^orever after s their most ir-path. ?r, the body ' ground to ild indicate ^arance, the to the most grief, tohl 5d ail prof. ings of an- 3W liimself sconsolate. 3 carefully !ss and so- ticipate in id to sym- t came to his soul. lie rem'-incd in this prostrate situation three whole days and nights ui moved. The fears of the assembled chiefs were awakened lest ho might become a willing victim to his own melancholy and misfortune. Nothing had been done as yet, in the Council, and such had been the causes of delay that many began to despair of accomplishing any thing of consequence. Some even thought seriously of returning to their homes without an eflbrt. At length a few of the leading chiefs consulted together, as to what course it was most expedi- ent to pursue. It was at once resolved, that nothing should bo attempted, without the voice of the wise man could bo heard. A suitable person was thereupon dispatched to ascertain whether he breathed. Jlejjort ennie that he was yet alive. A kind hearted, merry chief, named Ilo-see-noke, was directed by the council to make to the prostrate mourner a comforting speech, to whisper kind words in his ear, and if possible arouse him from his revery. xYfter a deal of formal ceremony and persuasion, he gradu- ally recovered from his stupor and conversed. After several messages had passed between the assembled chiefs and Ili-a- wat-ha, he arose and manifested a desire for food. He ate and drank of such as was hastily prejiared for him, and ac- knowledged himself strengthened and refreshed. lie was conducted to the presence of the council, a con- spicuous place was assigned him, and all eyes were turned towards the only man who could with precision foretell their future destiny. The subject of the invasion was discussed by several of the ablest counsellors and boldest warrio)-s. A^ari- ous schemes were proposed for the repulsion of the enemy. Ili-a-wat-ha listened in silence till the speeches of all were concluded. His opinion Avas gravely and earnestly sought by many of the surrounding chiefs. After a brief reference to the calamity which had so re- cently befollen him, the wise man said :— " This is a subject that requires mature reflection and deliberation. It is not fitting that one of so much importance should be treated lightly, or that our decision should be hasty and inconsider- k 28 ONONDAGA, ■ (! »tc. I,ot m postpone our .leliboratiorw for ono day that » ,.„,] "" ^ ""> confii ent will succeed and ensure our safety." ouwtea, After another day's deh.y, the council again assembled and 1 were anx.ous to hear the words of Hi-a-^vat-ha. 7b ith «<. ™.ous. voutr;-:eT::::yr;^^^^^ chs anee from your homes, ^V. bave eonv'e nod C one com men purpose, to promote ono cou,mon interest ,nd tZ 7 provule for our mutual safety, and bow i si ■! 11 b' M Plished, To oppose these ifo'rdes „ ft ■! t tT" tun wiaKC no nrfXTiviuu in +i.r.<. ' into on. . P^''^^^^'^ '^ tliat way; wo must unite ourselves into ono common bant of brothoiN On,. • wouM surely repel these vJ^ ^ '''"'' ""'*«^^' "ur borders 'n,i ,'''']' '''''''^''' '>"o na.o„ ; b of your .-perior^cunniVin i™4 '°""' ^>.' Xsir:;: :£'rr ;: f 7r '- because you understand bett r ^h art of • "'"""" beans, and making cabins. °^ '""''"S '^"" ""'» Hi. — ^■^>:^ INDIANS. 29 •no day, that we nd warriors who {on my phm for nt will succeed, assembled, and •ha. A breath- er began ; of many tribes f you, a great d for one com- and that is to host be accom- focH by tribes, struction ; wo mite ourselves rriors united, ve them from '0 safe. )f the " Great hose branches tion, because •odies against shall be the ition at the crags, shall !d in speech, ' the fourth ting. Open Conn- fth nation; I corn and You, Five great and powerful nations, must unite and have but one common interest, and no foe shall be able to disturb or subdue you. And you — Manhattoea, Ni/acks, Montauks and others, who are as the feeble ^^ Bushes"; and you, Narafjansetts, Mohe- f/ans, Wampanoags and your neighbors who are a ^^ Fishing People" may place yourselves under our protection. Be with us and we will defend you. You of the South, and you of the West, may do the same, and we will protect you. We earnestly dosire your alliance and friendship. Hrothers — if we unite in this bond, the (jreat Spirit will smile upon us, and we shall l)e free, prosperous and happy. But if we rcuuiin as we are, we shall be subject "to his frown ; we shall be enslaved, ruined, perhaps annihilated forever. We shall perish and our names be blotted out from among the nations of men. Brothers ; these are the words of lli-a- wat-ha — let them sink deep into your hearts — 1 have said it." A long silence ensued, the words of the wise man had made a deep impression upon the minds of all. They unani- mously declared the subject too weighty for immediate deci- sion. Let us, said the brave warriors and chiefs, adjourn the Council for one day, and then we will respond. On the mor- row, the Council agiiin assembled. After due deliberation, the speech of the wise man was declared to be good and wor- thy of adoption. Immediately upon this was formed the celebrated Aquinus- cliioni or Amphictyonic league of the great confederacy of Five Nations, which to this day remains in full force. After the business of the great Council had been brought to a close, and the assembly were on the eve of separation, lli-a-wat-ha arose in a dignified manner, and said : '^ Friends and Brothers :— I have now fulfilled my mission upon earth, I have done every thing which can be done at pre- sent for the good of this great people. Age, infirmity and distress, sit heavy upon me. During my sojourn Avith you, I have removed all obstructions from the streams. Canoes can now pass safely everywhere. I have given you good fishing 80 ONONDAGA waters an.l good Iniufm^ ^rrourwls. 1 luivo tau^M.t you the tuanner of cultivntin^r ,orn and beans an Iication in that paper. ' ^^ F \ f) r A \ R . t!Ui;,'lit yoii tho •iiiiM'd ymi tho I liuvo liberally ail overlastin;: for your futiiro lout the admia- niiiiioroiiH and ('oinu;ils, tlioy :oiiio ouHliivod, r are the last en my fVlends, liave piitiontly irst upon the iiids of niyri- 10 whole aky 1 music ; and oiling strains, orbed in rap- » which now 3 the ethereal I in his white 'i their heads oin the view erful ascent, I fascinatinj: and finally, cars, as the t-ha retired ious regions Good Spirit ' "Notes on the of this work to rnished by the ' York, for piil}- 31 Such is tho traditionary account of the Onondagas, of the origin of tho very ancient and honorable league first formed by the illustrious Kivo Nations, given to tho author by tho late Captain Frost, and La Fort, head chiefs of the Ononda- gas, (Jth February, iHlf). This tradition, like all others, proves nothing positively, fur- ther than that the lro<(uois themselves know little of their own (U'igin, history, or the anticpiity of their most prominent char- acteristics and institutions. These being orally transmitted from generation to generation, and their minds ever deeply imbued with superstiti(m, events are magnified to miracles, distinguished men are deified, and every circumstance of note is mystified and mingled with ignorance, barbarism and ex- travagance. By the early French writers, the Mohawks and Oneidas were styled the lower or inferior Irocpiois ; while the Onon- dagas, Cayiigas and Senecas, were denominated the upper or superior Iroquois, because they were located nearer the sour- ces of tho St. Lawrence. Tlie Mohawks who are commonly supposed to be the first nation in the confederacy and were consi.lered the most "warlike people in the land," were also styled elder brothers, of the other nations, and so esteemed themselves. Like their brethren of the Five Nations, they have a tradition that their forefathers came from the far north. However this may be, they occupied the valley of the Mohawk, at the time of their first intercourse with the whites. Charicvoix thus speaks of them as they were in 1646: ''J)am h Canton d'ArpiUqui autems dont nous par- Ions, c'toit leplus peuple de tons; une jolie riviere serpente agreeahlement Vespace de sept aliuit lieus entre deux belle Praincsr* Other early historians give the same locality." To the Mohawks was always accorded the high consideration of furnishing the war captain or " Tekarahogea" of the con- ♦Trans at.on-In the Canton of the Mohawks, of which several authors speak, he mo. numerous population of all; a beautiful river winds agreeaMv through Ihe.r country for seven or eight leagues, between two handsome meadows. *5 ONONDAGA. fcderacy, which distinguished title was retained with them, till the year 1814, when the celebrated Ploa-ho-a-quah, an Onon- daga, was chosen in general council at Buffalo, to fill that important station. [Sec close of Political History.) The Oneidas were considered the second nation, and a faded tradition once existed, that they were a branch of the Onon- dagas, to whom they were always nearly allied, by relation- ship and language. Their earliest recollected residence, was on the southern shore of Oneida lake, neiu- the mouth of Oneida creek. They afterwards took up tlieir abode higher up the valley, and tlie famous " OxXeota," or Oxeida Stonk became their talisman and the centre of their attractions They were a people less warlike than the Mohawks, but many of them were distinguished as orators and statesmen. They were usually considered more susceptible of instruction from the missionaries who early visited them, and were often first resorted to in negotiations with the confederate nations, to win them, and thus prepare the minds of the remaining cantons. The Onondagas were considered the third nation. They be- came, from their central position and numbers, their strength of mind, skill in diplomacy and warlike bearing, the head^'or leading nation of the confederates. The grand council-fire of the union was usually kept with them. They kept the key of the great council house of the Five Nations ; the Mohawks holding the door on the east, as did the Senecas on the west. No business of importance, touching the interests of the Five Nations, was transacted elsewhere but at Onondaga. This nation is divided into eight several tribes or clans, "called bv themselves, the Wolf, the Bear, the Beaver and tiie Tortoise. These are called superior clans, and from these may be se- lected the chiefs of the nation. The inferior clans are the Deer, the Eagle, the Heron and the Eel ; from which civil chiefs, may not be elected. Individuals belonging to these latter clans are not considered eligible to office. Though there formerly were instances where, by great individual merit a^ warriors, they have occasionally been selected as war chiefs ; eonsidered the lowest class of officers known to their laws. INDIANS. with them, till [uah, an Onon- lo, to fill that tory.) >n, and a faded I of the Onon- 3, by relation- residence, was the mouth of abode higher )neida Stokk ir attractions. rks, but many ?smen. They itruction from ore often first lations, to win ling cantons, on. They be- ■heir strength , the head or d council-fire kept the key the i\Iohawks on the west. 3 of the Five idaga. This as, called by tlie Tortoise. ! may be se- lans are the 1 which civil ing to these ^liough there iml merit as i war chiefs ; heir laws. 33 The duty of this dignitary was to attend to all the mili- tary affairs of the nation, and to conduct the warriors in bat- tle. He was also allowed a seat in the national and confede- rate councils. The term tribe, as understood by the Onon- dagas, applies only tc these clans separately ; and they, when taken collectively, comprise the nation. There is nothing will sooner excite the indignation of a chief, than the appli- cation of the term tribe, to the nation. Tribe, to them, is diminutive — nation conveys to them the idea of greatness and magnificence. Among the Onondagas, the line of descent is emphatically in the female branch of the family. For instance. La Fort was the son of a chief, but on that account had no claim to chieftainship, and had not his mother been the sister of Oun- diaga, (or a relation of some other chief) he would have been excluded, not having any hereditary right to an election. The son or grandson of a chief's daughter or sister, is eligible to office, but his own son would not be eligible. The inference to be drawn from this is, that the sun is certainly derived from the mother, but may not be from him whom he ac- knowledges as father. Among the Onondagas, are five civil chiefs and one war chief; all of whom are subject to removal at any annual na- tional council which may be fully represented by a majority of those entitled to seats in council, or in other words, by the voice of the nation. Anciently they had a greater number of chiefs, sometimes as many as twelve or fourteen, with as many sub or vice-chiefs, who acted as advisers, but took no direct or active part in the management of great councils. The Pagan party being the most numerous, bear rule on questions where they are united ; consequently, the Christian party are at this time excluded. For example, David Hill, who is now the leader of the Christian party, and an exem- plary man, who was lately a chief of influence, has been re- moved, and his place supplied by one who still adheres to the ancient customs and principles of their primitive institutions. Among the earliest traditions of the Onondagas, it is noted, i ili mi 84 ONONDAGA. that they at first came from the North, many hundred moons ago and once inhabited a region along the northern banks ol the St. Lawrence, and that straggling parties of hunters, isolated themselves in the country since occupied by the Six Nations. That in process of time, the remaining part of their nation followed, and set themselves down in the valley and on the hills of Onondaga. The Onondagas have also a tradition that the Bear and Wolf tribes originated or sprung from the ground near the Oswego Falls; that the Eel and Tortoise tribes sprung from the same source on the banks of the Seneca river; that the Deer and Eagle tribes first had existence on the hills of Onondaga; and that the Beaver and Heron tribes, sprung from the earth, on the shores of lake Ontario. Whatever of truth may attach to the foregoing tra- ditions, only goes to show, that on those localities, they may at first have received their distinctive appellations, or there assumed their respective titles. It is not uncommon amon.^ Indian nations to declare, that wherever they have long resided" there they have sprung from the earth, or there first had exis- tence. • It is a fact well established by the Jesuit Fathers, that the Onondagas had considerable villages at Oswego Falls • on the shores of lake Ontario ; on the banks of the Seneca ' and on the hills of Onondaga, and at those places may havJ originated the several clans agreeably to their traditions. On a celebrated land trial held at the Court House in this County some five years ago, one of the chiefs testified, that the Onondagas first came to Onondaga by way of Oriskany where they had previously resided for several years. Upon the cross examination, counsel being rather hard upon him hj expressing doubt upon the subject, he indignantly replied ' "i>o you think I would lie !" These are the accounts these people give of their own origin. The history of the Cayugas is the most obscure and unsa- tisfactory of any of the Five Nations. Although they were never deemed deficient in native energy, or inferior in intel- lectual capacity, and have also produced warriors, orators and ' statesmen of the greatest ability, yet their course has been INDIANS. hundred moons northern banks •ties of hunters, pied by the Six laining part of 'n in the valley, gas have also a lated or sprung it the Eel and )n the banks of tribes first had the Beaver and shores of lake e foregoing tra- ities, they may itions, or there !ommon amonjr ve long resided, 3 first had exis- fesuit Fathers, Oswego Falls ; f the Seneca ; ices may have traditions. House in this testified, that ' of Oriskany, years. Upon ird upon him, antly replied : iccounts these ure and unsa- igh they were erior in intel- s, orators and irse has been 85 .signally marked by decay and desolation. Logan, the prince of Indian orators, was a Cayuga. His father, Shikellimus, was a noted chief of this nation, who aided Count Zinzendorfif and Bishop Zeisberger, in the establishment of a mission at Shamokin in 1747. Distinguished chiefs of this nation were almost universally present at all the conferences of the Five Nations, with the Dutch, English and French, during the early periods of their history ; and in the campaign of General Sullivan, in 1779, the extent of their settlements, and their determined resist- ance, in their defense, shows that they were by no means a despicable people. Very few now linger about their ancient hunting grounds. Civilization has made sad inroads upon them. The Senecas, from the earliest times, have been the most numerous and powerful of the Five Nations. They have al- ways been farther advanced in agriculture and the arts than their neighbors, and if oratory, statesmanship, and determined opposition to the encroachments of the whites, be taken into account, they may be said to stand in the foremost rank. With their neighbors, the Tuscaroras, they have yielded more readily to the advantages of education. Several of their young men and maidens have entered the schools of the whites, and become noted for their scholarship and learning. They are sometimes styled the People of the Hill, from a tradition that they originated from a liill at the head of Canandaigua lake.* The tradition is, that the Senecas anciently encamped on this hill, upon which they had a fort surrounded with pali- sades. An enormous serpent encircled the fort, with his head and tail joined at the gateway, through which none could pass without being destroyed. " When famine raged within their guarded hold, And wan distemper thinned their numbers fast." At length all fell a prey to famine, pestilence, or the de- vouring jaws of the monster, except a youth and his sister. Il ♦See Hosmer's Poem, before G. O. I., 1845. J^ 36 ONONDAGA. The young warrior dreamed that should an arrow be directed to the monster's heart, beneath "The rounded scale that wall his side," he would slay him and secure himself from further harm, and thus prevent the total annihilation of his nation. It was done as he had been forewarned, the monster was slam, and the nation was finally established on the western shore of the Seneca lake. The Senecas have always been noted for the talents of their orators and statesmen. Corn- Planter, Red Jacket, Farmers Brother, Handsome Lake, and others of scarcely less distinction, during the last century have wielded a power and influence among the Indian nations, that will long cause them to be remembered as a noble and illustrious nation. The government of the Iroquois in their palmy days, when their power was supreme, and their prosperity unbounded was a sort of Oligarchy mixed with democracy ; having a re' presentative and popular voice. It consisted of a republican and hereditary form combined. Business transactions of a national character, were carried on by the head chiefs of the nations, and were ratified or rejected in general councils. De- cisions made by the chiefs of a nation, only aftected that particular nation. But all decisions of the united chiefs of the confederacy, when rejected in general council, became decrees from which there could be no appeal. The organic laws of the Indians, are little understood. Few persons can have the patience or opportunity, to study the polity and government of these mysterious people, as con- ducted in their councils, in a language almost totally unin- telligible. None can know all the intricacies and details where so much obscurity and circumspection exists. Everythin<^ is dark and mysterious. They prefer, rather to mystify than explain ; to darken the understanding rather than enlighten It. Their habitual distrust gives but the slightest opp^'ortu- mty to study their unwritten code. Even those who have enjoyed their confidence longest, and who have been on terms of the most perfect intimacy with them, but feebly and un- certainly elucidate and explain the genius of their institutions. tlm i"\ -,: :^, TRADITIONS. •ow be directed scale that wall f from further f his nation, e monster was >n the western D always been !smen. Corn- )me Lake, and ; last century ndian nations, IS a noble and ly days, when y unbounded, having a re- ' a republican sactions of a i chiefs of the ouncils. De- affected that ;ed chiefs of mcil, became understood, lity, to study eople, as con- totally unin- details where Everything mystify than an enlighten ;est opportu- ie who have sen on terms 3bly and un- institutions. 87 4'S: CHAPTER II. TRADITIONS OF THE ONONDAGAS. Ascent of the Seneca River ity Ta-oi-n-ya-wat-ha— His Slaughter of a Mon- s TRofs Serpent— Opexing of the Channel of Onondaga River— The Enchan- tress — Feathered Monsters— Great Eagle — Allusion to other Tradi- tions— Witches and Wizards— Evil Spirits— Tradition of a Colony— Be- lief IN Thunder and Lightning — Marriage— Family Discipline— Treat- ment of the .Sick — Burials. In the annals of the \vorld, perhaps there never was a peo- ple whose true history has been so completely wrapt in mys- tery and so wonderfully mingled up with false traditions, many of which may have had foundation in fact, interspersed with fables, fictions, types, symbols and allegories, as that of the aborigines of our land.- In tracing the progress of their ancient history, we find no distinctive lines, whereby to dis- tinguish what may be true from what is actually false. There is no discrimination made by themselves, and among them, the most extravagant fictions pass for truth. The Indian is acted upon by his superstitions and fears. Seeing some things mysterious and incomprehensible, he believes all things he cannot explain by the evidence of his senses to be so. Thus we find him drifting about without a system or without direc- tion, on the broad ocean of ignorance, driven omvard by the accumulating waves of superstition. " He sees God in clouds and hears him in the winds," every strange event is mag- nified into a miracle, and is transmitted from sire to son, as the work of an invisible hand— the doings of the Great Spirit. His credulity impels him to believe everything marvellous that he hears, and the basest fabrics of the imagination, and the simplest truths, enter alike into his systems of history, Am 88 ONONDAGA, philosophy and theology. Although exceedingly extravagant, and perhaps unworthy of credence, we here would insert a few of the most prominent traditions and beliefs held in repute among the Onondagas. They have a tradition that Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, the deity who presides over fisheries and hunting-grounds, came down from above in his White Canoe, and selected a couple of war- riors from among the Opondagas, who met him at Oswego. They together passed up the Oswego river, removed all ob- structions to navigation at the falls, so that canoes could pass m safety without carriage. As the tradition goes, the devoted trio proceeded up the river until they had passed (Te-u-ung- hu-ka) Three-Kiver-Point. They here came to a place where the water was perfectly still for a long distance. The channel was straight, the water deep and unruffled. Looking far ahead, they distinctly saw an object lying directly across the stream, apparently like the trunk of a large tree. As they advanced, It seemed gradually to heave and fall; the waters became strangely agitated, and rolled in large waves from the sides of the obstraction. Upon a nearer approach, the object proved to be an enormous serpent, whose body lay across the stream, and such was his unparalleled length, that his head was not in view, but extended far into the country on one side of the river, while his tail was far out of sight on the other. The god of the rivers bade him retire, but the reptile would not obey. Then said Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, die, thou dread- ful beast, and know that the Great Spirit rules. He then raised his paddle, which in its descent cleft the hideous beast in twain. So firmly had the extremities of the monster be- come fixed, that the separation was accompanied with a ter- rific sound, like a startling peal of thunder. The earth trembled and shook with a rumbling noise, the waters ran red and were violently agitated, while the sudden contractions of the dissevered parts were so violent, that each portion imme- diately disappeared, and was never heard of more. But the print of the place where the fell destroyer had lain, was plain ■'nB :t.-i;Ki! TRADITIONS. 39 ;ly extravagant, would insert a fs held in repute t-ha, the deity ds, came down couple of war- im at Oswego, amoved all ob- loes could pass •es, the devoted ised (Te-u-ung. > a place where The channel king far ahead, )ss the stream, ;hey advanced, waters became From the sides 5h, the object lay across the that his head )untry on one sight on the )ut the reptile ie, thou dread- es. He then hideous beast J monster be- d with a ter- . The earth aters ran red ntractions of lortion imme- 're. But the lin, was plain to be seen through all succeeding generations, till the white man came and leveled the ground with his plow. The canoe again passed on without interruption. It was the first that had ever moved over the waters, past this ap- palling spot. All who had before this attempted the passage had been killed and devoured. A few miles further up the stream, they met with another obstruction of a like nature, which was removed with similar consequences and results. Upon a more critical examination of the space in the river between the positions of these huge monsters, it was found to be richly stored with an abundance of eels and other delicious fish ; the taking of which had not been enjoyed by the na- tives, because of these terrific spoilers who had constantly guarded it and destroyed all who dared to approach — under the auspices of the wicked spirit, 0-nees-hoo-hugh-nu. After Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, had vanquished the huge serpents, he gave all good people permission to fish there without hindrance or molestation, which beneficent privilege they have so richly enjoyed to the present day. Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha and his companions now proceeded on- ward, to where the Seneca river makes its greatest bend to the south. They here made a landing on the southern shore. At this place they were much surprised at hearing an inces- sant screaming of wild birds. " This," said Ta-oun-ya-wat- ha, "is portentous of some remarkable event — let us exa- mine and see." They proceeded south a short distance, and behold, a great lake lay beautifully spread out before them, extending far away to the south. It had no visible outlet — no communication with the river. " We must open a free passage here," said Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, "for the canoes of good people to pass. Our business is to remove all obstructions to their prosperity and to make them happy." Then the spirit of the rivers took the magic paddle which he had carried with him, and with it made a mark or furrow, from the lake to the river, through which at first the water gradually flowed and in time wore the channel sufficiently deep for canoes to pass B tj3l '3-' t' < 4k 1 1^ m1 1 1 F w m 1 1 M Hi 1 40 v: !■ ONONDAGA. "i;n with ease and facility. This, according to Indian tradition, was the first outlet of the Onondaga Lake. Previously to this, the lake extended the whole length of the Onondaga valley.* Year succeeded year, and this channel became broader and deeper, and as time rolled on, the lake les- sened in size, the water became shallow which before was deep, and trees soon appeared where once the earth was over- spread with water; and finally the boundaries of the lake gradu- ally subsided to the ordinary limits of the water, and left the salt springs on its shores bare, which previous to this event, had been covered by fresh water, and were before entirely unknown ; so that by this special kindness and interposition of the Great Spirit, salt was introduced for the health and comfort of the Indians, and has ever since been considered by them an inestimable blessing. After the removal of this barrier, the party again moved up the river a few miles, and at a distance, discovered in a beautiful chesnut grove, a single cabin, from which the smoke ascended in graceful curls, while every appendage about it looked cheerful and inviting. Here was the residence of a wicked enchantress, called Oh- cau-nee, who had hitherto prevented the gathering of nuts, which were every where abundant around her dwelling. After a protracted and violent struggle between the enchan- tress and one of the followers of Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, in which she was slain, the god of the rivers, waved the paddle of his magic canoe over the trees, which were literally covered with nuts, and the rich and tempting fruit came rattling to the ground in the greatest profusion. The party regaled them- selves merrily, gathered in the sacred harvest, and Ta-oun- ya-wat-ha, with his hand scattered the hard earned treasure broadcast among all the nations of the earth, thus dissemina- ting this rich blessing every where, which previously had not * It may be well to remark, that there are evidences along the acdiviues from the valley, that this tradition may have its origin in truth. ''^ "vf es from TRADITIONS. 41 ulian tradition, Previously to the Onondaga lannel became , the lake les- ;ch before was 3arth was over- the lake gradu- )r, and left the i to this event, before entirely I interposition he health and sen considered ■ again moved iscovered in a ich the smoke dage about it iss, called Oh- jring of nuts, iwelling. II the enchan- >ha, in which paddle of his covered with ittling to the egaled them- and Ta-oun- led treasure is dissemina- usly had not ! ncdivities from been known beyond the grove of Oh-cau-nce the enchantress, who had always been their keeper. After this event, all good people were permitted to come to this place without fear or hindrance, to gather chesnuts. The country about Cross Lake, (Te-ungk-too) was so invi- ting in appearance, that Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha resolved to explore it. While upon the water he observed in all directions skele- tons of men, swimming about on the surface. "Some mur- derous monster" ho exclaimed "must be stationed near the stream above and must be destroyed." When they had ar- rived at a spot some distance above where the Skaneatelcs empties itself into the Seneca river, they discovered two mon- strous red feathered animals Avith long and arched necks. One was stationed upon one side of the river and the other on the opposite bank. Their long and pointed beaks crossed each other like two sharpened swords, suspended over the centre of the stream. Whenever canoes passed underneath, the occupants were sure to become food for tliese rapacious monsters, who, after picking off the flesh Avould send their carcasses down the stream, most of Avhich lodged in Cross Lake. "These destroyers of our race must be removed," said Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, " or the braves of our nations will be devoured, and their Avives and little ones slain. We must be wise and cautious, or we shall be overcome. I am aware that the Wicked Spirit has placed these obstructions in our way and is determined good people shall not navigate these waters. But if we are wise and prudent and reverently keep the Great and Good Spirit ever in view, we shall conquer these monsters, overcome all obstacles and finally come oif triumphant in all our undertakings." The White Canoe was paddled to the shore, and Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, after invoking the blessing of the Great and Good Spirit, raised his magic paddle and smote one of these monsters, which brought him to the ground. After a furious struggle he succeeded in killing him. Com- posing himself and taking rest, Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha crossed the river with a view of attacking the remaining one, but he could no where be found. The god of the rivers, placed his ^1 42 ,:,! O N O N D A (; A . a e y. Th, sagacity of Ta-oun-ya-.-a.-ha, .,oo„ 'iLovered he course he had take,,, a„.l directly proceeded in p„,. „ , He d,l,ge„tly traced the monster by his tracks through v„; to the place fro,,, whence he had departed. Tl,e frightened an,mal now took wing and never rested till he can,c to ,"„ rtaga, w en he alighted on the sandy plain, between t c 0„„„. daga v,llage and the lake. His tracks where he rested were pla.n to be seen many years afterwards, and to tl,is day the pot ,s pomted out with particular precision. 'ZZt wat-ha ,n fuU pursuit soon overtook him at this spot, and fhc natives. l|,e strange animal again started, nor rested till he had arr,ved at Oneida, when becoming m'uch fat lued h agam settled down near the Oneota or sacred stonf of the »at.o„. Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, still pursuing, again came up ^A he monster and both pnahed forward with great carneCe* towards the w«t. The winged monster at lengtrbegl ^ overtaken on the sandy grounds north of Salina. After a desperate struggle, he w,as finally slain,a„d the sand k „ „ so frequent in that neighborhood,werc thrown up by his drin: cxert,ons. So swiftly had the monster flown, and so clo'ey had he been pursued, that the whole transaction had ccnp J but a very short space of time. At length he began to decay and myriads of musketoes were the offspring of the d com pos,ng m,.s, which completely filled the country. A dst greeable efllu™ arose from it which spread far and wMe and was frequently the ea„.e of fatal ani violent disels the decaying matter also discolored the water in the swamps'and ever smce they have been considered unfit for drinking Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha and his companions again ascended the beneea r.ver and cleared the channel of all obstructions, till he came to the Cayuga marshes. When near them, they became greatly alarmed by a constant humming sound, and a loud 3 TRADITIONS. 43 tancc, treading i(lin<5 pl'ico for oon discovered ded in pursuit. s through vari- 10 came around rhe frightened came to Onon- fccn the Onon- he rested were this day the Ta-oun-ja- spot, and the d place by the or rested till h fatigued, he atone of the came up with It earnestness gth began to tt last he was na. After a sand knolls, by his dying nd so closely bad occupied ;an to decay, ' the decom- y. A disa- nd wide and liseases ; the swamps and nking. scended the tions, till he ihey became and a loud and continual cackling of ducks, geeso and other aquatic birds. The pai-ty wore surprised to find their course obstruc- ted by two enormous Eagles, who had long been the guardi- ans of the water-fowl, which were in the habit of congregat- ing in the marshes. Such had been their watchfulness, that none could escape, and all people had hitherto been prevented from taking them for food. These monstrous Eagles were also slain and the wild fowl, now no longer restrained by thoir rapacious guardians, arose on their wings in all direc- tions, and scattered themselves abroad in all the surrounding lakes and streams, and became ever afterwards a precious article of food for man. These were some of the principal deeds of Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha, the god of the fisheries, rivers and hunting grounds, as held in estimation among the traditions of the Onondagas. Ta-oun-ya-wat-ha afterwards took up his abode at Cross lake and assisted to form the great league of the Five Nations as related in a former chapter. The tradition of the flying heads, which greatly disturbed their quiet, and defied all human power successfully to com- bat, may be enumerated among their singular fancies. These heads of monstrous size, enveloped in beards and hair of flam- ing fire, rushed through the air like shooting stars or falling meteors, threatening the destruction of their nation. The priests, prophets and medicine-men were alike unsuccessful in subduing these supernatural monsters. They were at last dis- pelled by the machinations of an old woman. The Quis-quis, or great hog, was another monster which gave the Onondagas great trouble, as did also the great bear, the horned water-serpent, the stone giants and many other equally fabulous inventions, bordering so closely upon the truly mar- vellous, that the truth would suffer wrongfully if related in full ; but nevertheless are found among the wild and unseem- ly traditions of the race. A belief in witches and wizards prevailed extensively throughout the Six Nations, and in none of the Iroquois can- tons was the belief more prevalent, than among the Ononda- 44 ONONDAGA. m hat It Hooraod .J, effect, ,voula ,l„»„l,uc the wh„]e country affect ,he,r p„pu|„t,„„ „„,1 p^p^Hty. The.e witche, and w.^ar,l, wore apposed to hold nightly meetings, to devi" the nation. il,„y were »upp„,e,l to he bonnd hy a solemn oath of secrecy; could change thomselvc, to various ™ an,n,als, as ..Ives, foxes, hawk, .„„! turkeys, and to » , p of vanou, substances, a, tree,, rock, and log, ; eouid be nre sent and invisible in the a„emblie, and coundl, of t „„;„': could mfu« poison and di,ea,c a.nong the people, and Z In feet, there was scarce anything however hulicrous or ex- M.. Webster, .n h,s conversation, with the old settlers ,iid that an old Indian of the Onondaga, used to relate « an anccnt penod, when a portion of the Onondagas' a„ extensu^ ,e tlo.nent and populous village on the flat, east oj one e,enu,g, he sunk down deep into an immense, cavern, which wa, bnlhantly illuminated with flaming torches. N ooner had he reached the floor, than he found him,elf in,tart! ly surrounded by hundreds of witches and wizards, who rather uneeremon.ously ejected him. The circumstance lay heavy upon Ins heart. Early the next morning he proceeded to the cncl-honse and Laid the matter before the Lemhlcd chief^ T^,ey asked h,m, , he could identify a„y „f .,,0 persons he had seen. lo rephed that he thought he could. lie straight- way proceeded through the village and pointed to this and that one whom he thus signified a, delinquent,. They were at once doomed for execution, and without trial or ceremony, upon the evdence or whim of a single individual, numbers of both sexes were kdled. According to the tradition the slaugh- ter was nnmense ; it seemed there could be no end to the alarm- ".g panic ; many of the people dispersed, and for a season it «as feared the nation would be completely broken up. It i, TRADITIONS. 45 )motimo8 carried, ) whole country, , it did seriously leso witches and Btings, to devise md trouble upon iiul by a solemn to various wild J, and to shapes 3 ; could be pre- s of the nations; eople, and even } of individuals, ludicrous or ex- not accomplish. )ld settlers, said ' relate, that at iidagas had an he flats east of )ut of his cabin imense, cavern, ; torches. No limself instant- ■ds, who rather nee lay heavy occeded to the iembled chiefs, (le persons he He straifrht- 3d to this and . They were or ceremony, 1, numbers of on the slaugh- to the alarm- 3r a season it en up. It is said that more than half of those who remained at home were killed, amounting in all to hundreds. Other and similar in- stances are still related among their traditions of witchcraft. Sometimes these witches were burned and sometimes summa- rily dispatched with a tomahawk. Usually, however, they were permitted to speak in their own behalf, freciuently own- ing the charge, thus becoming voluntary victims to the gross- est infatuation and superstition. They believed that the witches and wizards had power to send fireballs, a ball of hair, or a dog, or cat, to inflict some punishment upon any person, upon wliom they chose to practice their deception, and if the principal persons of the nation were satisfied of their guilt, they were instantly sentenced to death. Upon this, some of the most influential men would proceed to a high ledge of rocks, roll some of them out sufficient to make a large and deep hole ; they would then return to the Castle and inform those whom they intended to execute, of what they had done, and that they must forthwith depart for the place of execu- tion. If it was a female who was to suffer, she instantly drew her blanket over her head, and without a murmur or word of repining, repaired to the place already prepared. The Indian women understanding the import of tliese pro- ceedings, immediately left the village and were not seen again on that day, and long afterwards continued their demonstra- tions of grief and mourning. After the victim had departed for the place of execution, the men followed after. "When they arrived at the spot, the doomed one was found ready for the execution of her sentence, standing upon a rock at ine edge of the hole, with her blanket drawn closely over her head. One of the men would walk deliberately up to her, remove her blanket and let it fall to the ground. At this instant two Indians with tomahawks would step forward and cleave the victim's head in twain, being careful to direct her fall into the opening in the rocks already prepared. They then rolled rocks upon the slain one till she was deeply buried. They after this raised the cry, "thus perish all witches." The mode of executing wizards was the same, but when the 1 H -L 11 fi\'' m 46 ONONDAGA, '■■ I *i Wizard was singled out ard informed of his fate, he uttered a deafening yell, and then ran with all his might to the place of execution and his executioners after him. Several instan- ces of the above mode of punishment have occurred since the first settlements were made by the whites, and have been re- lated to the author by the older inhabitants, some of when, were witnesses. As late as 1803, four squaws were accused of witchcraft at the Castle, three of them were executed ac- cording to their customs. One of them agreed to deliver up all her implements of incantation, and requested the Indians to assemble at a place near the Castle. She then directed them to build a fire of white-ash wood, to set up some crotches ^nd lay poles across. This being done, the supposed witch suspended from a pole a roll of white cotton cloth wound tight around with cords. It soon took fire, and then followed several explosions in quick succession, similar to a loaded musket Several white people were present, who exerted their influence without effect, to prevent disaster. The three who were executed acknowledged all that was alleged against them, but not promising reformation, were therefore disposed of m a summary manner. The ground upon which one of the three was condemned was like this : the Indians had pur- chase a beef of Mr. Webster, for the purpose of making a great feast. During the transaction, a young man who was master of ceremonies, was charged by an Indian woman with partiality, in the distribution of the good things which were served. The following night the young man rose in great agony, saying, this woman had choked him, and that if she did so the following night, it would surely kill him The succeeding night he was heard to utter a terrible cry, and as he screamed, his friends rushed in, but he was dead. No one was discovered in the room who could have effected his death It has been said that Mr. Webster himself saw the prints of fingers upon his throat. The supposed witch, when asked if she was guilty, acknowledged she was. She was taken to the top of the hill east of the Castle, killed with an axe and buried among the rocks. i^ A ^ TitADITIONS. 47 fate, he uttered a ^ight to the place ■ Several instan- occurred since the tnd have been re- ts, some of whom aws were accused were executed ac- eed to deliver up ested the Indians ihe then directed up some crotches e supposed witch ton cloth wound md then followed ilar to a loaded nt, who exerted ster. The three s alleged against lerefore disposed on which one of Indians had pur- ose of making a ig man who was ian woman with ings which were n rose in great and that if she kill him. The ible cry, and as dead. No one ected his death. w the prints of when asked if as taken to the axe and buried Another of the three was accused of killing five persons. They said she plucked deer's hairs and made them sharp like arrows, and sent them deep into their flesh, in an invisible manner, which finally found their way to the heart and pro- duced death. Although exhorted to retire out of the way, she voluntarily went to the usual place of execution, and was dispatched with a tomahawk. Tlio last one, had been suspected for a long time of deal- ing with the wicked spirit. Flaming heads and fiery serpents, had been seen to enter her wigwam for several successive nights. . Strange noises were heard after their entrance, as if persons were struggling for life. Whereupon she was accused, ad- judged guilty of witchcraft, and sentenced to death, which sentence was executed like the former. In all these cases, there seemed to be a desire in the accused persons to receive the accorded sentence, and they invariably courted death, wuh all the fortitude of martyrs to a holier cause. The Indians had a practice to which they sometimes re- sorted for conquering witches, or " laijmg" the evil spirit, the father of them. The wicked spirit, they believe to be a great serpent under ground. Where he was present, there would rise a knoll, and whenever he moved away, the place would sink again to a level. The reason why they never destroyed rattle-snakes was, because they believed them the offspring of the great serpent, the devil, and if they destroyed any of his offspring, they could have no success in hunting. Hence they always passed them unharmed. The mode of allaying the wrath of the great serpent, the father of wizards and witches, was, for a number of the most resolute warriors to proceed to the spot where it wns most likely he then inhabited, climb a small sap- ling, lay hold of the topmost branches and bend it down to the ground, binding the branches around the body of the tree quite down to the root, making all the time a peculiar noise! a they met with no interruption and succeeded in fastening the top of the tree securely to the bottom, the devil was allayed and the power of the witches dispelled. 48 ONONDAGA. snj!i^'' \ '^ '^''''°" P''^"''"' '^"^'^^g t^^""' that the evil to the body. As an instance in point, an Indian woman came into the house of a white neighbor one day trS frightened ; she ran to the hearth, spat upon her hands, di' pad hem m the ashes and with her finger made a cross up!n her face; then turning suddenly round exclaimed, '^ there 7 bu. .hng htrgo fires early in the morning, by firi„. guns and loud hallooing. The wood for the sacrificial offorin: cordT' h "T f" ^^""^"■>'--' b^ '-y'»o- "oar half I cord, in alternate layers crosswise. This is done by a select committee of the managers, who proceed with considerable ceremony. •«o.»un, A house near the council-house is selected as a place in ■vhich to make preparation. To this the managers procee.l and prepare themselves for the occasion. One from each' party „ solectod as a loader. They are dressed in long loose sh,rts of wh.te, and others are appropriately dressed, as manu- gers &c according to the duties they are expected to per. orra. The gran.l master of ceremonies or high priest t'.ke, ■s station at the cnmcil-house, and to him, r:p„,';;::: ^at rec ion, "m" P™"»°'''»S'' »'' <>« '« t"™ gives „e. di- rection.,. Messengers are continually passing and renassinff from the conncil-house to the house of preparation. On h? occasion at wh.oh notes for this article were taken, the veno able Capta,n lonncs, fOh-he-nu) presided with great ,li™„i,v Having arnved at an early hour, we found this gray-hluled h,ef, gravely seated near the centre of the c^moil-house discoursing to his people, receiving messages .and givi„rdi ections. One of these messengers, a femai; particTri; at tractea attention. She was dressed throughout in a new »". of fine blue woolen cloth. Her legging" (pantalets) w mo t fancifully adorned with small white beads and brooches and the lower part of the skirt, which came below the knee' was ornamented in the same manner. Over the whole was' an ample covering of plain blue cloth, sweeping the ground at every step. Dp„n her, seemed to devolve, he'dutylif ,, pe mtending the feast. She had as asseciates, two vlnn. ma - ens dressed precisely like herself. To tiieso evjry oile .,ave 4 t I RITES AND CEREMONIKS. 59 oraonstrations of onseqiionce is at- pcoplo asHcinblc exorcises coin- ornin^, hy firing acrificial offerin«» ing near half a ilonc by a solect ith considerable 1 as a place in lagera proceed, Jne from each 3d in long loose esaed, as mana- pected to per- ;h priest, takes ports are made 1 gives new di- and repassing ttion. On the ken, the vene- great dignity. 3 gray-headed council-house, md giving di- irticularly at- in a new suit ntalets) were ind brooches, low the knee, ho whole was he ground at ity of puper- yoiing maid- 'I'J one gave 1 I uiiy, and throughout the cerenionie» they were treated with I he greatest deference and respect. About nine o'clock, the managers rushed out of the house of preparation, and two white dogs fantastically painted with red figures and adorned with small belts of wampum, feathers and ribbons tied around their nocks, legs and tails, followed thciu. A long rope with a single knot in the centre was in- stantly passed over the head of one of them, when some eight or ten of the managers seized the ropo on either side, com- menced pulling lustily, each party occasionnlly yielding to the other, as if to give greater force to their operations. After ;i few struggles, the dog Avns suffocated and hung up on a lad- der which leaned against the house. The other dog was dis- posed of in precisely the same miinner, and hung beside his fellow. Guns were now fired, and some thirty or forty per- sons rushed out of the council-house, gave three tremen- dous yells, and retired. After about half an hour, the dogs were taken down and carried into the house of preparation. To this house spectators were not admitted, and what particu- lar ceremonies were there performed, M'e have no means of knowing. These dogs are always white, or as nearly so as they can procure them ; spot or blemish renders them unsuitable for sacrifice. A wound producing an effusion of blood, would be productive of the same consequences. By some peculiar manoeuvering, the sins of the people which had become concentrated in the managers arc now transferred to the two individuals who arc clad in the white giirnients. These by some peculiar ceremony, again work them off into the dogs. These animals, thus laden with the sins of the nation, are raised upon the shoulders of two per- sons appointed for the purpose, (their legs being tied so as to admit of their being slung like a pack). A procession is formed in ranks of double files, preceded by the two men dressed in Avliite, and others of the mantigers, followed by as many others as may choose to join them. The procession moves slowly and silently with measured step, around the m 60 ONONDAGA. house of preparation, through the council-house which has two doors, one opposite the other, and around it. After which, they are brought in, and the dogs laid upon a plat- form about a foot from the floor. As they enter the council- house for the last time, they break into single file. While these ceremonies were going on at the house of preparation and out of doors, others of importance were observed in the council-house. The offerings which had been collected were disposed of upon pins around the council-room. The master of ceremo- nies, during the whole progress of proceedings, rcmai.ied sta- tionary, seated in the centre of the council-room. To him were brought, at different times, at intervals of about two minutes, every article which had been deposited. Every per- son who brought a piece of pork, a paper of tobacco, a bunch of herbs, or handful of straAv, stopped about three paces from him, holding it towards him, looking him full in the face with Che greatest attention. After he liad said a few words, the old chief took it in his hands, over which he uttered a short ejaculatory prayer or thanksgiving, after which a hearty response was made by all present. It was then returned t'o the place from which it had been taken. Every article of the offerings Avas presented and returned in like manner. The females present participated in these ceremonies. All the messengers wlio addressed the chief haltod at a respectful distance, and stood a moment in silence before they made their communications. These events all transpired at the council-house before the dogs were brought in. After the dogs were brouglit in, the procession, in single file, moved three times around the platform, before they, were laid down. At each round, t • j master of ceremonies rose in a sedate and dignified manner, clapped his hands on the shoulders of the bearer of the dog, who Avas foremost in the procession, lie stopped in the precise position he was in, when the hand of the chief was laid upon his shoulder, and there remained as motionless as a slatne, for the space of a minute, durim: whicli he was addressed in a whisper by tlic master of cere- RITES AND CEREMONIES 61 ise which has ad it. After upon a plat- a* the council- i file. While f preparation served in the ) disposed of er of ceremo- romaiiied sta- om. To him jf about two Every per- acco, a buncli ie paces from ill in the face a few words, lie uttered a lich a hearty returned to article of the anner. The es. All the a respectful Q they made jii'ed at the After the file, moved e laid down. a. sedate and Iders of the ession. lie the hand of "ouiained as lUte, duriii:^ iter of cere- monies. Several other chiefs, addressed those Avho carried the dogs, in the same manner, and again the procession moved on. After this the dogs were laid upon the platform, and all ' joined in loud singing and chaunting, Avhile the procession ■ continued slowly moving around the dead carcasses of the dogs, with the most devout solemnity. While these ceremonies Avere proceeding in the councll- ^ house, fire had been applied to the altar of Avood out side. The pile had become nearly half consumed and yielded great heat ; while around it, in a circle had been drawn a line, Avithin Avhich it Avas not intended spectators should pass. This, how- ever, availed nothing, for the moment the procession had drawn around the fire, the area Avas croAvded to its utmost ca- padty. Under the direction of Captain Ilonnos, the bearers of the dogs again resumed their burdens ; a procession Avas formed in single file, the master of ceremonies taking the lead. Then folloAved the men in Avhite robes, the persons Avho carried the dogs, the managers and others, promiscuously. As the pro- cession moved along, the principal actors in the scene com- menced singing, Avliich continued Avhile the Avhole marched around the council-house to the place of sacrifice. Around the burning pile they moA'ed three several timos, the last of which, the master of ceremonies stopped on the west side, Avith his face to the east and toAvards the fire. The remainder of the procession formed around the vjircle ; the persons in Avhite being on the left hand of the high priest, and those bearing the dogs near to them. The leader of ceremonies oflfered a short prayer to the Great Spirit, a sacrificial chaunt was sung, the dogs Avere laid at the feet of the officiating priest, another prayer Avas offered, an- other chaunt Avas sung, when one of the dogs was cast into the fire by the high priest. A like ceremony Avas performed and the remaining dog Avas also thrown upon the burning pile, and again folloAved the chaunting. Different individuals noAV brought forward baskets of herbs, tobacco, and such like, which Avcre at intervals throAvn upon the fire, and Avith the ill ,.. I < fi i' : I I 1 1i 1 hrfil 'i '111! 62 ONONDAGA. consuming dogs produced a variety of scents, not easily com- prehended. After the dogs were nearly consumed, the pro- cession was again formed and returned to the council-house, and the committee were directed to go to the preparation house The solemnities of this day being concluded, they formally ad- journed. The accustomed ceremonies of this interesting season are usually concluded by a war-dance and feast, on the same day after the sacrifice. But on this occasion it was adjourned till the following day, when the season of oblations, invocation, sacrifice and thanksgiving, were concluded with the war! DANCE. This most singular and interesting of all the Indian cere- monies is worthy of particular remark. For this important ceremony about thirty young braves were selected, each of whom provided himself with a horse, and left the Indian village alone, and by different ways approach- od a place previously appointed. When all were gathered at the place agreed upon, painted in the most frightful manner, they mounted on horseback, without saddles, Avith no clothing except a short and scanty garment extending from the waist r,e;irly to the knee. Each man was armed with a rifle, toma- hawk and scalping knife, and adorned with a bundle of scalps, or ccnething resembling them, hanging from his girdle, and % /ew rude ornaments besides. They proceeded leisurely along, till within sight of the council-house, when the deafening war- whoop was raised and thrice repeated, and their horses were at once put to their utmost speed. On arriving at the coun- cil-house, the horses were speedily tied, the warriors during the time maintaining an air of immovable gravity. They pro- ceeded in a body to the council-room, where the chiefs and aged men, who had all the while been anxiously waiting their return, most cordially received them; asked them what suc- cess upon the war-path ; how many trophies of victims slain they had secured ; of the fortitude of the tortured captives ; the snares and ambuscades they had escaped ; the feats of daring they had themselves performed ; and if they were still willing and resolved again to try their skill and courage, and RITES AND CEREMONIES. 63 ot easily com- ned, the pro- cil-house, and ration house. ■ formally ad- estirig season the same day, idjourned till i, invocation, th the WAR- Indian cere- braves were I horse, and '"s approach- gathered at ful manner, no clothing m the waist rifle, toma- le of scalps, girdle, and irely along, foning war- lorses were t the coun- iors during They pro- chiefs and liting their what suc- ctims slain I captives ; le feats of y were still jrage, and ' to strive to add new trophies of valo? to enrich their former fume. All was gone through with in the most solemn and affecting manner. Their stories were told with much gesticulation and earnestness. After the preceding ceremony, commenced the war-dance, which, for singularity and effect, and the thrilling animation it imparts to the actors, cannot be surpassed by any rite of modern times. The fantastic figures and devices j)ainted on their almost naked bodies, the rude head-dresses and ornaments, consisting of bells, brooches, rings, a profu- sion of ear and nose jewels, with doers' hoofs dangling about their ancles, gave the performers a most singular and gro- tesque appearance. Each warrior held in his hand a hatchet, a war-club, or a bow and quiver full of arrows. One of the party was firmly bound to the stove pipe as if to a tree, and personified a prisoner. A young brave, with long false beard and hair of perfect whiteness, represented by his appearance and movements an old and wrinkled man. He approached the supposed prisoner, and with great vehemence and earnest- ness of manner, addressed him, saying, " his glorious deeds were now at an end,— that he must prepare himself for tor- ture by fire,— that no mercy could be shown him,— that his character for heroism should be established by the fortitude with which he withstood his sufferings." After the old man had finished his speech, the whole party gave the tremendous war-whoop. It seemed as if the lower regions had been sud- denly broken up, and that the inhabitants thereof had made a hasty and unceremonious ascent to the earth. The substi- tute beheld all their mock preparation for his manifest destruc- tion with as much apparent seriousness as if the whole had been real, and appeared as perfectly unconcerned and indif- ferent to all their movements, as the coldest stoicism could make him. Their rude music now struck up, consisting of blows with a stick upon a barrel-head and a kind of half-drum, accompanied by the voice. It would be utterly impossible to uescribe the various attitudes in which they presented them- selves, and the rapidity of the transition of one posture to an- P iii u ONONDAGA, other was so sudden, that the eye could not follow them. Look at a man in one position, and instantly his form Avould be im- perceptibly changed to another. During the dance the pri- soner was frec^ucntly menaced as if to be instantly dispatch- ed with a war-club or hatchet. At another time a bow would be drawn Avith its arrow to the head, as if death was to be the immediate consequence. Through the Whole he stood as composed as if no threats had been made, and occasionally sung of his own achieve- ments in the wars and of the ignorance of his ememies in the arts of torture. During the dance there was a continual flourishing of war-clubs and hatchets, and an unearthly exhi- bition of the most horrid grimaces, and protraction of the war- whoop. The warriors exerted themselves to the utmost of their capacity ; the sweat rolled from their nnked limbs and bodies in profusion ; their breasts heaved from excessive fatigue ; their nostrils were dilated to an unaccountable extent; their eyes flashed with delight, and their countenances showed the workings of passion intermingled with pleasure, and the whole scene was one of the most perfect enthusiasm and phrensy. Just at the close of the grand drama, which had lasted with short intervals for more than two hours, the prisoner was liberated, his bands having been cut by a stroke from a hatch- et. He gazed wildly all around to see if the coast was clear; an opening was made lor him to escape, he bounded like a panther to clear the ring, but the war-clubs and hatchets were flourished over his head ; the most terrific yells were uttered, and he firtally sunk, as if beneath their blows, and personified a dying man in the most perfect manner. An agonizing cry proclaimed his deiith ; the slow, melancholy death song was chaunted while the whole party moved sol- emnly in single file around the apparent dead body of their prostrate prisoner. After this, all passed out into the open far reeking with perspiration as they were, and after a short conversation they severally retired to their homes. After the warriors had left the council-room, the young man who had so really acted the part of a suffering captive, gradually raised RITES AND CEREMONIES. 65 iv them. Look ; would be im- ance the pri- itly dispatch- ) a bow would was to be the if no threats own achieve- i ememies in LS a continual earthly exlii- )n of the Avar- tmost of their bs and bodies sive fatigue ; extent; their s showed the md the whole md phrensy. il lasted Avith prisoner was rom a hatcli- ist Avas clear; unded like a nd hatchets ic yells Avere r bloAvs, and Kinner. An melancholy y moved sol- lody of their nto the open after a short . After the aan who had .lually raised his head and groaned, as if in excruciating agony ; and finally collected himself, passed out and rejoiced with his companions. After a recess of about an hour large numbers of both sexes, young and old, assembled to participate in the peace-dance. This interesting ceremony is performed to music without Avords, and females, as well as males engage in it. In the per- formance, the males form as large a circle as the room will allow, facing inwards, the females then glide shyly into the circle and range themselves forward of the males. After these arrangements are made, the rude music strikes up, and the females proceed by placing their feet close together, then raising their toes, pass them about four inches to the right, and then their heels in the same manner, thus keeping time they pass noiselessly around the circle until the music ceases. During this movement of the females, the males retain their position, beating time with their heels and toes Avithout mov- ing at all, to the right or left. This course is gone through Avith several times, which finally closes the dancing for the season. Early in the morning, previous to the commencement of the war-dance, several large kettles had been placed over the fires in which were cooking the ingredients upon which the Avhole nation Avere at liberty to feast. The contents were composed of mo<;t, corn, beans, peas, potatoes, turnips, some garden herbs which served for seasoning and other things Avhich had been previously gathered in the baskets. After the close of the Avar-dance and the peace-dance, the feast Avas made ready, by removing the kettles to a convenient distance' from the fires. The mass was frequently stirred till the Avhole became com- pletely mixed. The contents of the kettles were devoured Avithout regard to politeness or ceremony ; some dipped from the kettles Avith spoons, others skimmed out the more substan- tial parts, Avith chips, some Avere provided with bowls and spoons, Avhile others as soon v.s tltc scalding aliment Avas suf- ficiently cooled, thrust in theii nngers and thus obtained their share. After a reasonable lime, the Avhole had vanished, and 9 66 ONONDAGA. I <« all appeared to be refreshed and satisfied. Tlie pipe of peace was now lighted, and the presiding officer of the past cere- monies drew the first draught, puffed the first whiff, and was very carefuj that a large quantity of smoke should issue from his mouth at a time, which he took great pains to make ascend in graceful curls and watched them with peculiar en- joyment. The pipe was passed from him to the other chiefs present, and from them to the old men, who all partook of it with a commendable relish. Having concluded the ceremonies of the great festival, and all its requirements being fulfilled, every one feels himself ab- solved from the sins of the past year, and forms new resolu- tions for the time to come. Congratulations are exchanged, and new hopes excited, — free from iniquity and resolved to follow the path of evil no more ; each one repairs to his home, happy in the propitious commencement of a new year, in perfect readiness to embark in all the operations of wai-, the chase, the council or the cabin. Such were the proceedings of tlie great annual festival held at the Onondaga Castle in January 1h4], taken from notes ma are disposed to treat them respectfully. But on pome occa- sions, having been harshly treated, they are indifferent, except to those of their acquaintances whom they esteem as friends. These dances of the Onondagas, which are similar to those of the other five nations, may witli propriety be called descrip- tive dances. They are intended to exhibit some action or se- ries of actions generally relating to war, and the imitation is often sa dose and so exactly executed, that the most indiffer- ent spectator can follow the intentions of the performers. RITES AND CEkEMONlES, 67 )ipe of peace e past cere- t whifF, and should issue tins ta make peculiar en- other chiefs all partook festival, and i himself ah- new resolu- exchanged, resolved to lairs to his a new year, 3ns of war, estival held from notes hy the late in all their sed, conse- ining a full es. he Indians induct, and luifjcrs Avlio some occa- 'ent, except IS friends, ar to those ed descrip- 3tion or se- initation is )st indifFer- )erformers. Dances are rather a business than a pastime. They mingle with all the occupations and enterprizes of life. When war is declared and proclaimed, it is by means of a dance, and the warriors who engage in it are thereby enlisted. When an al- liance is concluded, or peace restored, the event is celebrated by a dance, corresponding to the change of circumstances. The war-dance is the exact image of a campaign. It repre- sents the preparation and arming of the warriors for battle ; their departure from their own country ; their arrival at the confines of the hostile nation ; their mode of encampment ; the attack ; the scalping of sucli as fall into their hands, and the torture and heroism of prisoners. In their countenances they express the passions of anger, courage, resentment and revenge. With such power and force do these acts of enthu- siasm often strike the mind of the beholder, that he is led to forget, in the moment of excitement, that it is only a repre- sentation passing before him ; and the spectator often shud- ders as if the Avhole was a positive reality. Although these people have no wars, nor can ever be ex^ pected to have any in which they may act as principals, yet these ancient customs are continued to commemorate the past^ and to transmit to posterity their former achievements, and the glory of departed days ! The Baron Lahontan, speaking of the dances of the Ameri- can Indians says : *These dances may be compared to the military dance of Minerva ; for these savages observe, whilst dancing with singular gravity, the harmony of certain songs, which the Greek soldiers of Achilles called Ilyporehcmatiques. It is not easy to decide whether the savages learned them of the Greeks or the Greeks of the savages. Charlevoix, upon the same subject, remarks, (translation) — * "Toutes ces danses peuvetit etre comparees H la.pyrrhique de Miuerve, car les sauvages observenf, on dansant d'line pravite sinjruliere. lea fadcnci-s de cer- taines chansons, (iiic les riiilicos t.'i-fcqiies d'Acliilie. apelloifnl liyp"i'cliematiqnes. II nest pas facile de ssavoir si ios sauvages les out a prises des Grecs, on si les (irecs les ont aprises des sanvages." i: >:-.H p iiii Ijii III dS ONONDAGA. that the greatest part of their feasts, their songs and dances, appear to have their origin in religion, and still do preserve some traces of it. I have met with some, who could not help thinking, that our savages were descended from the Jews, and found in every thing some affinity between these people and the children of God. Indeed, there are in some things ii strong resemblance. But in all their opinions there is noth- ing certain. Some have maintained that the Calumet, took its origin from the Caduceus of Mercury (which has been com- pared to the rod of Moses), and that in its institution, it was esteemed a symbol of peace. Calumet is a Norman word, signifying a reed, and the calumet of the savage, is properly the stem or tube of the pipe ; but they comprehend the pipe also. On state occasions It is often highly ornamented with feathers, beads, &c. RITES AND CEHK MONIES. 69 and (lances, do preserve uld not help lie Jews, and I people and ne things n liere is noth- ilumet, took is been com- ution, it was 3rman word, , is properly 3nd the pipe mented with CHAPTER IV. PAGAN RITES AND CEREMONIES. CoMPAKED WITH THOSE OF THE JeWS, EGYPTIANS, GREEKS AND RoMANS. Having in a foregoing chapter alluded to the subject of the origin of the Indian nations from the Jews, through Charle- voix ; and other authors having affirmed this opinion, it may not be considered improper in this place to note briefly some of the coincidences which may by some be supposed to exist between the rites and observances of the aborigines of our land, (particularly the Onondagas) and those of the Jews, Egyptians, Greeks and Romans. Without endorsing any par- ticular theory, or without attempting to decide upon a subject wrapt in so profound mystery, where even learned Doctors disagree, avc will be content with a simple detail of circum- stances, without entering upon the solution of a doubtful pro- blem. How long the Indian nations had inhabited our country when first knoAvn to the whites, or at what period originated their peculiar religious institutions, we have not the means of knoAving. When the white people first came among them, their practices in all respects were nearly the same as at the present. It may be possible, and if we admit, (and we must) the testimony of divine revelation, it must be true that they and their institutions originated in a more enlightened ances- try than they themselves exhibit. But it would perhaps ap- pear unphilo-^ophical to search for their origin from an exalt- ed and civilized people. Still, among all their dark and unseemly institutions, we occasionally observe some faint '^,< .. Hi 70 ONONDAGA, i . glimmerings of light, and perceive in the general wreck the ruins of a more eleviteil and loftier order of thinj's. Sacrifices have in nil iiges, and hy almost every nation, been regarded as necessary to appease divine anger, and to render Deity propitious. The origin of the institution of sacrifice is clearly traceable to divine authority, and to that pure prime- val period, when our (n-iginal ancestor and his fons, were yet upon the earth. Cain hrouglit of the fruits of the ground an offering ; and his brother Abol, of the firstlings of his Hock and the fat thereof. Of the particular details of this offer- ing arid sacrifice, there is no account, only that the offering of the former was rejected, while that of the latter was resjiect- ed and approved. From tho examples of the early chosen people of (Jod, the Gentile nations received or i-etaincd their notions of sacrifice, and on this account wo need not wonder to find so many coincidences in the sacrificial systems of the Jews and tho neighboring nations. .Vll false religions can be esteemed only as departures from the true, and therefore the origin of them, however corrupt they may become in the usage, may be the same. To the unaccountable desire in man to form low and limited estimates of Deity, more than to any thing else, may be attributed the introduction and propaga- tion of error and false religion. The principal yearly sacrifices of the Jews, were the Pas- chal lamb at tlie Passover, celebrated at the comiiii-nceuient of the sacred year ; on the day of Pentecost or first fruits, the beginning of the civil year or ingathering of harvest ; lastly, the day of expiation or great day of . ■ tenement. Be- sides these, were the monthly festivals and others of less importance ; yet were nevertheless attended Avith the great- est punctuality, but never more so, than are the five stated festivals of the Six Nations to this day at Onondaga. Before the laAV Avas given to Moses, burnt offerings served for all pur- poses of divine worship, whether they gave thanks for bless- ings, or deprecated evil, or prayed for good. These sacrifices expiated sin^ of omission, as well as those of commission, atid from examples like these, tho Gentilo nations undoubtedly jfion. RITES AND CEREMONIKS. n wreck the I. ,tion, been to render lacrifiuo is ire prime- , were yet L^round an his llofk tliif4 offer- (flering of ,8 rtvs()cct- •ly chosen iiicd their )t wonder nis of the )ns can l)o i-efore the the usa^e. 11 man to a to any propaga- tho Pas- "ncenient rst fruits, harvest : .'ut. Be- •s of less he great- ve stated Before r all pur- tor bless- sacrifices uniission, loubtcdly obtained their impreasions of the atonement of sin, by the 8acri< fice of animals, and from a remote period the rite has been transmitted with more A ^^5>»> U/^^ PhotogTdpmc Sciences Corporation S ^ '% ,\ ;\ >v \ % .V ^^u 0^ 23 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580 (716) 872-4503 S' 4is i° 4 fx 72 ONONDAGA. in robes of pure white ; and so are those clothed who ofiBciate as priests at the Indian sacrifices. On sacrificial occasions, the alms and offerings of the Jews were gathered in baskets, brought to the altar and set before the priest, with the strictest regard to order and propriety. Almost precisely the same practice exists among the Indians, who gather the alms and oblations of the people and present them to the officiating high priest in baskets. The Jews offered in sacrifice, only oxen, sheep and goats ; other animals, although they might be esteemed good for food were unsuitable for sacrifice, and the ceremonial law distinctly declares, what animals shall be considered clean and what unclean. It may be asked then, why the dog, an animal entirely rejected from the Jewish ceremonial, even the price of which should not be received into the treasury of the sanc- tuary, should be received among the Indians as an animal suitable for sacrifice. Let it be borne in mind, that not many years since, dogs were their only domestic animals, — wild animals being no where commanded for sacrifices, these were the only ones they could have always at hand, and to them they were suitable. They were, as it were, forced to adopt them or reject the rite entirely. By the Jews, in the selection of victims for sacrifice, the utmost care was taken to choose such only as were free from blemish, "without spot and without blemish" are terms in fre- quent use throughout the Jewish ritual. And it Avas a cus- tom among the nations surrounding Judea, and among the Egyptians, to set a seal upon the victim deemed proper for sacrifice. Among the Indians, a spot, or blemish, or maim, renders the animal as unfit for sacrifice as did the same faults, among the Jews. The ceremony of Aaron with the goats, in many particu- lars is not unlike the sacrifices of the Indians, except in the selection of different animals. Two goats were presented before the Lord at the door of the tabernacle, One was offered for a sin offering for the whole people, as an atonement, and the other bearing upon ■A RITES AND CEREMONIES. 78 who officiate his head all their transgressions, and all their sins, was sent unto a land not inhabited, never to return. Scarlet, cedar-wood and hyssop, were used in the Jewish purifications, and myrrh and frankincense on sacrificial occa- sions. And after they had oifered burnt offerings, and brought peace offerings, the people sat down to eat and to drink, and rose up to play. Practices similar to these may be noted among the aborigines, and any one who will tak^ the trouble to examine at all into the intricacies and ceremo- nies of their sacrificial system, Avill readily admit, that there are many things which bear striking analogy to the Jewish system, and enough to encourage the opinion, that they may have originated from the same source. Although the Indians have been justly termed guilty of be- lief in witchcraft, they never were more so than were the Jews, or the heathen round about them ; and it may be added, that there is scarcely a nation, civilized or bai'barian, heathen or Christian, who have not had their seasons of belief in this strange infatuation. Even our good forefathers of New Eng- land, always remarkable for intelligence and light, can look back upon a dark and gloomy page of their history, which re- lates the horrors of murders committed for witchcraft. We have endeavored to point out a few of the coincidences which may be supposed to exist between some of the ceremO' nies of the Jews, and those of the Indians, as practiced at Onondaga. We are satisfied that they prove nothing posi- tively as to their origin from that peculiar people. If any thing, they may illustrate the common origin of all men, and the high origin of all religious institutions, which at first must have emanated from the same source. From the Jews the Egyptians undoubtedly obtained their notions of sacrifices, as did the Greeks and Romans from them. Their systems of mythology, throughout, were mark- ed with peculiar extravagance and profanity. Isis and Osiris, were the principal Egyptian deities, and the numerous myths and fables concerning their worship, are al- most beyond credibility. Osiris was symbolized by the sun 10 -,^ .4( f 74 ONONDAGA. and Isis by the moon. They were the patrons of agriculture and the arts. Their priests were universally clothed in robes of white. Although dogs were not admissible to the Jewish sacrifices, they nevertheless occupied a conspicuous place in the sacrifices of the most refined heathen nations, and enter- ed largely into all their systems of mythology. Purifications jvere made in Egypt, Greece and Rome, by drawing a white dog around the person to be purified. Dogs were highly ven- erated in Egypt, and their death was lamented as a misfor- tune. Under the figure of a dog were represented all such as had the management of funerals. Anubis, an Egyptian deity, was represented by a dog. At first the dog was conse- crated to Anubis ; but afterwards the figure of a dog was sub- stituted for that deity ; lastly the head of a dog was annexed to a human body as a proper emblem. The tutelary gods of the Romans styled Lares, were covered with the skins of do2s, and at their feet was the figure of a dog. These animals were sacred to the Lares. The tomb of Diogenes, the prince of Cynics, was surmounted by the figure of a dog. , The fabled dog, Orthos, with double head, guarded the flocks of Gcryon, and Cerberus, with treble jaws, guarded the gates of hell, to prevent the dead from escaping, and the living from entering. Charybdis, an avaricious woman, was sent to a cave at the bottom of the sea, and there committed to the continual bark- ing of dogs. Diana was attended by a troop of dogs. Her statues sometimes represented her with three heads, a horse, a dog and a hog. The Philistine's god, Dagon, was repre- sented by a fish. The Syrians also worshipped a fish, as Ci- cero informs us, '' Sijri piscem veneranturr In fact almost every animal was adopted in a real or symbolical sense as an object of worship among the enlightened heathen of ancient times. Mention is made in Homer, of the sacrifice of whole heca- tombs of cattle, perfect sheep and goats, whereby Achilles hoped Apollo might be appeased, and stay the plague he had sent among the Greeks ; and to the manes of his friend. Pa- 'I RITES AND CEREMONIES. 75 Df agriculture )thed in robes to the Jewish uous place in ns, and enter- Purifications iwing a white re highly ven- [ as a misfor- nted all such an Egyptian og was conse- '' dog was sub- was annexed elary gods of skins of dogs, animals were the prince of * guarded the , guarded the ing, and the a cave at the ntinual bark- ' dogs. Her ads, a horse, I, was rcprc- a fish, as Ci- i fact almost 1 sense as an n of ancient whole heca- oby Achilles iague ho had 3 friend, Pa- 4 troclus, with other animals, he sacrificed two dogs of purest white, "for," said he, "to the gods the most perfect things should be offered." The whole was concluded with funereal games with great solemnity, at which Achilles officiated as high priest, as well as a temporal prince, and for the occasion was habited in robes of white. Virgil makes frequent mention of the sacrifices of the Romans. He says goats were sacrificed to Bacchus on every altar, and white bulls and heifers untri- ed in the yoke, and sheep were laid upon their altars, and sa- crificed to Jupiter. The festival of the Greeks termed Eleu- sinia, corresponding to the Initia of the Romans, from which the latter was taken, was the most imposing of all the Greek festivals. It lasted nine days, and was conducted with great ceremony. The Greeks and Romans observed a festival in honor of the muses, which lasted nine days, and was celebrated Avith games, plays, songs and dances. At the Lupercalian held at Home, two goats and a dog were sacrificed. This festival was histituted in honor of tlie she-wolf which nursed Roiiiulus, the founder of the city. The festival of Ceres, at Greece and Rome, w^as celebrated with great ceremony. She was represented with ears of corn on her head, with a hoe and basket in her hands. It lasted eight days. A festival in honor of Pales, was held at Rome, the principal ceremony of which consisted in bringing little bundles of straw uud dancing over them. At the festival styled Faiaria, pulse and beans Avere the oblations. These festivals of the Egyptians, Greeks and Ro- mans, in process of time became grossly corrupt, and were of- ten conducted with the greatest confusion, disorder and licen- tiousness. Baskets were made use of, no less by the Greeks and Romans, in gathering in their offerings, than by the Jews. Solemn embassies were sent yearly to Delos, with baskets of first fruits and holy things, to celebrate the feast of Apollo, with music and dancing. Of this, there are traces among the Romans ; the " Mystlca vannus iachi," mentioned by Vir- gil, is explained by many as a wicker basket, in Avhich first 76 ONONDAGA. fruits were carried. Golden baskets were carried by the wealthy virgins of Greece and Rome at the feasts of Bacchus. Dancing occupied a conspicuous place among the heathen nations as a religious ceremony, and was not considered irre- ligious by the Jews. Miriam, and her maidens after her, went out with timbrels and dances rejoicing in the overthrow of the Egyptians. The women came out of all the cities of Israel singing and dancing, and as they played, said, " Saul hath slain his thousands, and David his ten thousands." David himself danced before the Lord. In all these, there was nothing of lasciviousness or impro- priety ; they were devout expressions of joy attended with sacred music. From the dancing of Miriam and her companions on the sea shore, it is supposed Callimachus conceived his hymn to Diana, wherein he ascribes to the goddess, three score and ten dancers, daughters of the ocean. From those examples, other nations have made dancing a part of their worship to the gods. Among all the heathen ceremonies, there was none held in higher estimation than dancing. Their festivals were almost universally concluded with feasting, singing and dancing. The sacred fire kept constantly burning in the Temple of Vesta, may have some analogy to the mystical council-fire of the Five Nations. With the llomans the safety of the city was sup- posed to be endangered by the extinguishment of the vestal flame. With the rude sons of the forest, the expiring light of the council-fire, foreboded the destruction of a nation. The mode of punishment for murder, among the Jews and heathen nations Avas not unlike that practiced by the Indians. The nearest of kin was the avenger of blood, and held the right and exercised it, of destroying the guilty murderer ; nay, was bound to do his endeavor to avenge the blood of his rela- tive. Another coincidence may be remarked in the estimation of time. The ancient Jewish year was estimated by lunar ■ months, which commenced on the new moon. And this me- thod was practiced by all nations indiscriminately, until the RITES AND CEREMONIES. Tt carried by the ists of Bacchus, ng the heathen considered irre- 3 after her, went )verthrow of the cities of Israel lid, " Saul hath sands." David isness or impro- ' attended Avith panions on the )d his hymn to 2e score and ten examples, other hip to the gods. s none held in als were almost I dancing. The emple of Vesta, -fire of the Five le city Avas sup- tit of the vestal e expiring light •f a nation. g the Jews and by the Indians. 1, and held the murderer; nay, lood of his rela- e estimation of lated by lunar And this me- ately, until the more exact and consistent calculations by solar revolutions were established. Again, another may be noted in the significance of proper names. The Jews were remarkable for their appropriate names for individuals, places and things, occasioned by the occurrence of some extraordinary circumstance or event. This is to a careful reader, one of the peculiar beauties of the Old Testament, and signally illustrates the characteristics of God's chosen people. The ancient heathen were scarcely less remarkable, than were the Jews, for the significance of their proper names, and it has most appropriately been said, that any person having a thorough knowledge of our aboriginal names, and their derivation, would be in possession of a per- fect key to the history of these peculiar people. These comparisons might be spun out to an almost inter- minable length ; but we trust enough has been said to show that however remote the origin of our aborigines, or from what nation or country descended, or however corrupt they may have become in their religious rites and practices, they have retained their ancient customs with singular purity and for this, may very appropriately demand our commendation, our sympathy and charity. We have thus given a cursory glance at some of the most prominent traditions, practices and customs held in estimation among the Onondagas, as first observed by the white people in their earliest intercourse with the Indians. It is truly gratifying and worthy of remark, that their pagan rites are not as rigidly adhered to as formerly ; that they are yearly becoming less interesting to the pagans themselves, and in many respects, are undoubtedly undergoing a change and improvement. " The Christian Party,'' among them is steadily increasing and with what religion and schools is accomplishing for these people, a sensible improvement in their condition is undoubt- edly hastening. The school recently established among them, is patronized by many of the natives, who manifest an inter- est in the improvement of the pupils. The fruits of this WA ' A 78 ONONDAGA. school, with those religious instructions so zealously imparted to them, it is believed are gradually supplanting their pagan practices, and will ere long, we confidently trust, be the means of permanently establishing among them a happier order of things. Their peculiar religious institutions are fast wither- ing to decay, and the time cannot be far distant when the last pagan sacrifices will have been performed in our Christian country. The increased attention they pay to agriculture and the arts, is an evidence that civilization is gaining ground among them ; and were it not for that bane of human pros- perity, (alcohol,) to the use of which too many of them are unhappily addicted, improvement, thrift and happiness would every where abound. CHIEFS. 70 aloualy imjiartcd ting their pagan St, be the means mppier order of are fast wither- istant when the in our Christian I to agriculture gaining ground of human pros- ny of them are bppiness would CHAPTER V. LIVES OP DISTINGUISHED ONONDAGA CHIEFS. UeKANISSOKA— GaRANSI:I,A— KaNAHJEAQAH— SADEKANAUTE-fCANASSET;(-0— OlIN- DIAGA — CoNYATAUyoU — OSSAHINTA — TaIITOTAH — DeH ATK AXONS— CoUNCIU Fire. Dekanissora. — This celebrated Onondaga chieftain and prince of Indian orators and diplomatists, flourished from about 1680, to the time of his death, which occurred at St. Louis, about the year 1730. During the term of his long and eventful life, which was characterized by a participation in all the important events of the confederate nations, he was on terms of intimacy with both the French and English. From his skill in diplomacy, faithfulness and honest integrity, he possessed in a high degree, the confidence of both nations. Although there were periods when his sincerity was doubted, and he has even been charged with duplicity, yet his calum- niators have failed to detect and point out the particular faults laid to his charge. Among his own countrymen, he always sustained the highest reputation as an undoubted patriot, an able statesman, an accomplished public speaker, and a subtle and safe manager o^ public concerns. On these accounts, he was always selected by his people, as their most capable man in the management of national affairs, and in conducting ne- gotiations with both French and English, with the ambassa- dors of which nations he was always able most successfully to cope. He has been represented, as a tall Avell formed man, graceful in elocution, possessing great fluency of speech, pow- orful in argument, with features resembling the busts of Cicero. 80 O N O N D A G A His name is aasociated with all the important transactions of the Five Nations, which transpired while ho was a chief of the confederacy and perhaps ho has never been surpassed by any of the distinguished men of the Iroquois, in all those arts and accomplishments which adorn the native man. Several of his speeches have been preserved in the Manu- script London Documents, obtained by Mr. Brodhead, now in the office of the Secretary of State, and also a few speci- mens, by Golden, from which sources wo make the following selections. It is highly probable that these interpreted speeches fall far short of the originals, in grace, power and effect. But they may however throw some light upon the courtesy, the high- souled honor, the indomitable courage, and untiring perseve- rance of this truly distinguished man ; characteristics which signally embellished his native worth. During the winter of 1693, '94, after a long and angry con- test between the French and Indians, in Avhich both parties suffered inconceivable injury and loss, and were therefore mu- tually inclined to peace, propositions were made by the Jesuit priests for a cessation of hostilities, preliminary to a final set- tlement of differences. These proposals were so well receiv- ed, that a council was called with a view to act upon it. The Mohawks were opposed to negotiation, and the English were secretly, if not openly, opposed to a reconciliation between the belligerent parties. This was well understood beforehand, and it was agreed that nothing conclusive should be done be- fore the subject was submitted to these parties. Having this in view, Dekanissora and several other chiefs, visited Albany, (he being chief speaker,) to lay the matter before Governor Fletcher and Major Schuyler. We make the following ex- tract from his speech on this occasion. After vindicating his conduct in holding intercourse with the French, he thus pro- ceeds : "Brother Cayenguirago,* when the Christians first arrived • Name for Governor Fletcher. CHIEFS. 81 msiictions of 18 a chief of surpassed by all those arts in the Manu- odhead, now a few speci- he following cchcs fall far t. But thoy iy, the high- •ing perseve- r is tics which d angry con- both parties herofore mu- by the Jesuit :o a final set- ) well receiv- pon it. The English were tion between I beforehand, I be done be- Having this lited Albany, )re Governor following ex- indicating his he thus pro- 3 first arrived in this country, wo received them kindly. When they were but a small people, we entered into a league with them, to guard them from all enemies whatsoever. We were so fond of their society that we tied the great canoe which brought them, not with a rope made of bark, to a tree, but with a strong iron chain fastened to a great mountain. Now, before the Christians arrived, the General Council of the Five Na- tions was held at Onondaga, where there has been from the beginning a continual fire kept burning ; it is made of two great logs, whose flame never extinguishes. As soon as the hatchet makers (Christians) arrived, the General Council at Onondaga planted this tree at Albany, whose roots and branch- es have since spread as far as New England, Connecticut, Pennsylvania, Maryland and Virginia ; and under the shade of this tree all the English Colonies have frequently been sheltered. Seven fathoms of wampum to renew the chain.'' " The only reason, to be plain with you, of our sending to make peace with the French, is the low condition to which we are reduced, while none of our neighbors send us the least assistance, so that the Avhole burden of the war lies on us alone. Our brethren of New England, Connecticut, Pennsyl- vania, Maryland and Virginia, of their own accord, thrust their arms into our chain ; but since the war began, we have received no assistance from them. We, alone, cannot contin- ue the war against the Frencii, by reason of the recruits they daily receive from the other side of the great lake. " Brother Cayex(j uirauo — apeak from your heart. Are you resolved to prosecute the war vigorously against the French ,' and are your neighbors of Virginia, iSIaryland, Pennsylvaniii, Connecticut and New-England, resolved to assist us ? If it be so, notwithstanding any treaty hitherto entered into, we will prosecute the war as hotly as ever. But if our neighbors will not assist, we must make peace, and we submit it to your consideration, by giving this great belt fifteen deep. "Brother Cayenguirago — I have truly told you the rea- sons which have induced us to offer peace to the French ; wc shall likewise, from the bottom of our hearts, inform you of a III 92 ONONDAGA 'J'l El* i 1 tho design wo hiivo in this treaty. When the Governor of Caniula shall have accepted the nine belts, of whicli I have just now told you, then wo shall have something more to say, by two large bolts, which lie hid in our bosom. Wo shall lay down first one and say, wo have a brother Caycnguirago, with whoso people we have been united in one chain from the be- ginning. They must bo included in this treaty ; we cannot see them involved in bloody war, while wo sit easy in peace. If the (jovernor of Canada answer, that ho has made a separate peace with us, and that ho cannot make any peace with Cay- enguirago, because the war is from over tho great lake, then wo shall lay down the second broad belt and tell tho Gover- nor of Canada ; if you Avill not include Cayenguirago's peo- ple, tho treaty will become thereby void, as if it had never been made, and if ho persists, avo will absolutely leave him." Ho goes on with an account of his mission to tho praying Indians at tho castle above Montreal, from whom he had been conducted in great splendor by the superior of Canadian mis- sions to Quebec. IIo is said to have been clothed in scarlot trimmed witii gold, with a beaver hat richly adorned with sil- ver lace, a present from Col. Fletcher a short time before. At a subscfiucnt council ho says : " Our brother Cayenguira- go's arms and our own are stiff, and tired with holding fast tho chain. Our neighbors sit still and smoke at their ease. The fat is melted from our ilesh and fallen on them. They grow fat while we grow lean. " This chain made us the enemy of the French. If all held fast as Caycnguirago, it would have boon a terror to them. If we would all heartily join and take the hatchet in hand, our enemy would soon be destroyed. ^Yc should forever after live in peace and ease. Do your parts, and thunder itself cannot break tho chain." On one occasion he said to Major Schuyler in reply to the suggestion of fraud on the part of a Jesuit messenger of the French — " We know that the priest favors his own nation. But it is not in his power to alter our affection to our breth- ren ; we wish you would bury all the misunderstandings you 1 CHIEFS. 88 Governor of which I havo P more to sfi;', Wo shall lay nguirag(^, with from the bc- we cannot see in peace. If idc a separate ace with Cay- eat lake, then sll the Oover- ^uirago's pco- it had never y leave hiui." ) the praying m he had been Canadian mis- led in scarlot )rncd with sil- ; time before. t' Cayengiiiru- h holding fast at their ease. them. They . If all held rror to them, chet in hand, 1 forever after hunder itself 1 reply to the senger of the } own nation, to our breth- Jtandings you ] havo conceived on hia account, — and we likeioina wish you (jave l('8H credit to the llllM CAHUIIMIS than you do." Dokaninsora, or Teganessorons, as ho is sometimes called by the Jesuit Fathers, was a believer in the Roman Catholic faith, and was for many years considered a true disciple ; on that account he could hear no evil spoken against them. He wielded a mighty influence among the Five Nations, and his good will and aifection was most earnestly sought, by the Governors of New-York and Canada. From another of his speeches we make the following extract. [Lon. Doc's, 20, p. 110, A. D. 1715.] A letter had previously been sent by lirigadicr General Hunter, Governor of New- York, with papers relating to the Five Nations, upon which propositions were made by the Saclicms of the confederate nations, viz : " the Maquas, Oney- dcs, Ononiliigc.M, Cayougos and Sinnckcs," — to his Excellency Governor Hunter, liTth of August. Dokiinnissora, Chief Sachem of Onondaga, speaker, said: " When Ave were here last year we made three propositions, ;md not then having belts of Avampum to lay doAvn according to our custom, Ave gave three sticks, and noAV bring three belta for the said three propositions. Brother Corlcar — Ave arc here mot together, your Excel- lency, and tiic Sachems of the Five Nations, at Albany, the place ai)pointed for all treaties with us, and if there bo any thing of moment to bo treated of, either of Virginia, Mary- land, Carolina, or any of his Majesty's colonies in America, this is the place Avhore avo are to treat Avith one another. Your Excellency renoAved the covenant chain last summer here, which was extremely acceptable to us all ; and you de- manded the hatchet from us, Avhich you had given into our iiands against the French of Canada, which hatchet we do now deliver you. It has been an unfortunate hatchet. Wo have had two Canada expeditions, but they both proved abor- tive and unsuccessful, and therefore, if you ever offer to give us such a hatchet again into our hands, avc Avill not accept it. Brother Corlcar — Last summer, when we were here, you 84 ONONDAGA, 'I I'll commanded and required, that the path of going to war, should be stopped ; but we told you then, that we could not give you an answer, before we had consulted with our young men, the warriors ; and we now come to a conclusion, to obey your excellency's commands, and to stop up that path hence- jrth. But there are diverse companies of our people still out against them, who have referred the decision of that mat- ter to the Sachems and other young Indians who were left at home, Avhether that war should be continued or not. "Bi other Corlear — We have heard of the demise of our great Queen Ann, whose death we condole with all our hearts; and at the same time, we heard with unspeakable joy that our great King George succeeded her in the kingdoms and domin- ions belonging to Great Britain. And we were likewise told, that he would protect and defend us as Queen Ann had done. We hope it will be true ; then our children's children will live in peace and flourish, and no diflference -will ever arise be- tween us if that be performed. " Brother Corlear — you forbid us to go to war against the Flat-heads of Carolina, and we have been obedient to your commands. Now we have often desired that the goods should be sold cheaper, which has not been complied with, and we in- sist still that goods may be sold at a more easy rate. It would be a great satisfaction to all our people. Brother — you ha.ve taken the hatchet out of our hands ; that hatchet which you put into our hands. We have laid it down willingly, but we have a hatchet of our own, which we made use of in former times, which we keep lying by us, to make use of the same whenever we shall be attacked by any. Brother — avc have done speaking, and this is what we had to say, for which we prayed your excellency to come up. But wo have been sent for, likewise, by your excellency's commands, and shall at- tend to hear what your excellency has to propose to us, and desire to know the time when avc shall wait upon you." Numerous examples of the speeches of this noted chieftain might be brought to view, as they abound in all the councils of the confederates with the French and English. But we CHIEFS. 85 ;oing to war, we could not ith our young usion, to obey it path hence- r people still 1 of that mat- 10 were left at not. lemise of our ill our hearts ; e joy that our as and domin- likewise told, .nn had done. Idren will live ver arise be- ir against the dient to your goods should th, and we in- ate. It would er — you hav^e et which you ngly, but we of in former of the same ler — we have for which Ave ive been sent md shall at- se to us, and you." ted chieftaiii the councils sh. But we trust enough has been shown to prove his talents, sagacity, and influence to be of no ordinary kind. After a long life of usefulness and uncommon activity, he died at a very advanc- ed age, on a visit to St. Louis, while engaged on important business of the confederacy. Garungula* — Was another distinguished orator and states- man of the confederacy, a noted chiof of the Onondaga nation, who flourished at a period a little earlier than Dekanissora. He was an older man and dl^d some thirty-five years before him. They were well known to each other, and on many important embassies were associated. If Dekanissora can with propriety be styled the Achilles of the Five Nations for his prowess and address, Garungula may be styled a very Nestor to these nations, for his wisdom and greatness. In 1684, the French governor of Canada, de la Barre, raised an army of 1700 men with a view of invading the territory of the Five Nations, and annihilating their power forever. He had made but little progress in his expedition, w^hen an alarm- ing sickness broke out in his camp and raged with such viru- lence, that he was obliged to relinquish the undertaking en- tirely ; all of which was as well known to the Onondagas, as to the French. Meanwhile, with a view of keeping up ap- pearances, and if possible to eflect something, de la Barre crossed lake Ontario, and held a talk with such of the Five Nations as would hear him. Garungula was present, and to him the governor made a pompous and flourishing speech, stating his desire to have peace, and of the power of the French to enforce it, at the same time insisting, that tlie Five Nations should make full restitution for injuries done, and never more attempt hostilities against them. If they did so, he had express orders he said, from the king his master, to declare war against them, and to take vengeance at once. The French governor's speech was received with subdued gravity by the haughty Garungula, and with a hearty contempt for every * Some of the French writers style him " Grnnd 'Giter!.," which this name is by some supjwsed to be derived. or great eater, from 86 ONONDAGA. threat he had put forth. Being conscious of the straitened circumstances of the French, and of the justice of his own cause, Crarungula arose, and walking about within the circle which had gathered around the principal actors in the scene, thus began : *" YoNNONDio, I honor you, and the warriors that are with me honor you. Your interpreter has finished your speech. I now begin mine. My words make haste to reach your ears ; hearken to them. YoNNONDio, you must have believed when you left Quebec, that the sun had burnt up all the forests which render our country inaccessible to the French, or that the lakes had so far overflown their banks, that they had surrounded our cas- tles, and that it was impossible for us to get out of them. Yes, truly, you must have dreamed so, and the curiosity of seeing so great a wonder, has brought you so far. Now you are undeceived, since that I, and the warriors here present, are come to assure you, that the Senecas, Cayugas, Ononda- gas, Oneidas and Mohawks, are yet alive. I thank you in their name, for bringing back into their country, the calumet which your predecessors received from theix hands. It was happy for you, that you left under ground that murdering hatchet, that has so often been dyed in the blood of the French. Heak, Yonnoxdio, I do not sleep. I have my eyes open, and the sun which enlightens me, discovers to me a great cap- tain, at the head of a company of soldiers, who speaks as if he were dreaming. He says, that he only came to the lake, to smoke on the great calumet with the Onondagas. But Garungula says, he sees to the contrary, tliat it was to knock them on the head, if sickness had not weakened the arms of the French. I see Yonnondio, raving in a camp of sick men, whose lives the Great Spirit has saved, by inflicting this sick- ness upon them. Heak, Yoxnondio, our women had taken their clubs ; our children and old men had carried their bows and arrows into CHIEFS. 87 he straitened e of his own lin the circle in the scene, that are with your speech. reach your left Quebec, h render our lakes had so ided our cas- •ut of them, curiosity of •. Now you ere present, ;as, Ononda- lank you in the calumet ids. It was t murdering ' the French. Y eyes open, a great cap- speaks as if to the lake, lagas. But -as to knock the arms of of sick men, iig this sick- clubs our arrows into the heart of your camp, if our warriors had not disarmed them and kept them back, when your messengers came to our castles. It is done ; I have said it. Hear Yonnondio— we plundered none of the French, but those that carried guns, powder and balls to the Twightwies and Chictaghicks, because those arms might have cost us our lives. Herein we follow the example of the Jesuits, who break all the kegs of rum brought to our castles, lest the drunken Indians should knock them on the head. Our warriors have not beaver enough to pay for all those arms that they have taken, and our old men are not afraid of the war. This belt preserves my words. We carried the English into our lakes to trade with the Utawawas and Quatoghies, as the Adiron- dacks brought the French to our castles to carry on a trade, which the English say is theirs. We aru born free ; we nei- ther depend on Yonnondio or Corlear ;* we may go when we please, and carry with us whom we please, and buy and sell what we please. If your allies be your slaves, use them as such ; command them to receive no other but your people. This belt preserves my words. We knock the Twightwies and Chictagicks on the head, because they had cut down the trees of peace, which were the limits of our country. They have hunted beaver on our lands ; they have acted contrary to the customs of Indians, for they left none of the beavers alive ; they killed both male and female ; they brought the Satanas into their country to take part with them, after they had concerted ill designs against us. We have done less than either the English or French, that have usurped the lands of so many Indian na- tions and chased them from their own country. This belt preserves my Avords. Hear Yonnondio— what I say is the voice of all the Five Nations. Hear what they ansAver. Open your ears to Avhat they speak. The Senecas, Cayugas, Onondagas, Oneidas and ♦Governor of New-York. 88 ONONDAGA. Mohawks say, that when they buried the hatchet at Cadara- (lui, in the presence of your predecessor, in the middle of the fort, they planted the tree of peace in the same place, to be there carefully preserved ; that in the place of arras and am- munition of war, beavers and merchandize should only enter there. Hear, Yonnondio — take care for the future, that so great a number of soldiers as appear there, do not choke the tree of peace planted in so small a fort. It will be a great loss, if after it had so easily taken root, you should stop its growth, and prevent its covering your country and ours witli its branch- es. I assure you, in the name of the Five Nations, that our war- riors shall dance to the calumet of peace under its leaves ; and shall remain quiet on their mats, and shall never dig up the hatchet till their brother Yonnondio or Corlear shall, either jointly or separately, endeavor to attack the country which the Great Spirit has given to our ancestors. This belt pre- serves my words, and this other, the authority which the Five Nations have givon me." Then addressing himself to the in- terpreter, he said, " Take courage, you have spirit, speak, ex- plain my words, forget nothing, tell all that your brethren and friends say to Yonnondio. Your Governor, by the mouth of Garangula who loves you, and desires you to accept this pre- sent of beaver, and take part with me in my feast to which I invite you. This present of beaver is sent to Yonnondio on the part of the Five Nations."* De la Barre was struck with surprise at the wisdom of this chief, and equal chagrin at the plain refutation of his own. He immediately returned to Montreal and thus terminated this inglorious expedition of the French against the high-souled and martial spirited Onondagas. This speech was acknowl- edged by the French themselves, considering the circumstances under which it was delivered, as a masterpiece of ingenuity, boldness and eloquence. ♦Vide Smith's History of New- York, and De Witt Clinton's Address, ISll. CHIEFS. 89 at Cadaro- liddle of the place, to be rras and am- i only enter hat so great ke the tree t great loss, -) its growth, !i its branch- hat our Avar- leaves ; antl dig up the shall, either iintry which is belt pre- ch the Five If to the in- ;, speak, ex- rethren and le mouth of pt this pre- ; to which I mnondio on Jom of this 3f his own. tiinated this high-souled IS acknowl- cumstances ingenuity, ess, ISll. Kan-ah-je-a-qaii,* called by the English, " Black Kettle," and by the French " La Chaudiero Noir." lie Avas an Onon- daga, and one of the most daring and renowned warriors whose name has ever graced the pages of Indian history. He was cotemporary with Dekanissora and Garungula, though some- what a younger man. His first appearance as a warrior was in 1690. In the summer of that year, we find him in company with Major Peter Schuyler of Albany, with a band of MohaAvk and Onon- daga warriors, engaged in the destruction of the French set- tlements along the shores of lake Champlain. Governor De Calheres of Montreal, hastily collected a large force with which to oppose them, and although the French force Avas greatly superior on this occasion, yet it was repulsed Avith se- vere loss. The French, smarting under their reverses, and desirous of retrieving their tarnished honor and broken for- tune, raised a force of three hundred men, Avith a view of sur- prising the Indians in the neighborhood of Niagara. This force was met by Kan-ah-je-a-gah and defeated. He, the next year carried the Avar into Canada, and every Avhere spread the greatest terror and alarm, besides causing immense damage to the French settlements. The governor of the French Avas so exasperated at these successes of the brave Avar chief of the Onondagas, that he caused an innocent cap- tive which had been taken from the Indians, to be put to death by the most excruciating tortures. He Avithstood all their efforts Avith the most stoical indiiference and courageous fortitude. lie sung his achievements while they burned his feet and hands Avith red hot irons, cut and Avrung off his joints, and pulled out his sincAvs ; and to render the hellish tragedy complete, his scalp Avas torn off, and red hot sand poured upon his naked skull. \ * We have met this Indian name but once in our researches, and that was in the London Documents, at Albany ; it is there , '' ^ 1 Can-ad-ge-gai. The Onon- dasras ftiW revere this groat warrior, and pronouLce .i as it is writt'.'ii above. (See Loii. Doc. vol. G, p. 104.) 12 90 ONONDAGA. no ; 111 A series of atrocities like the foregoing on the part of the French, once more re-awakened the vengeance of Kan-ah-je- a-gah. Revenge was too sweet to repose under such heinous aggravations. About one hundred Senecas were soon upon the war-path, who were joined by a large party of Onondagas, with Kan-f.h-je-a-gah for a leader. They intercepted all trading parties from Montreal to the upper lakes, secured much booty, and severely harrassed the French, and their Indian allies in all directions, carrying terror and dismay into the heart of the French colony. These were the palmy days of the confederacy, when they could successfully war with Eu- ropean powers, and tlie t'mo when an advantage which was gained over them, was lauded far and wide as a glorious tri- umph. In July, 1G92, he fell upon the island of Montreal, carrying his arms to the very gates of the citadel ; and it was only for a want of the knowledge of attacking fortified pla- ces that prevented the destruction of the city. lie suddenly attacked a party of French, under the command of Sieur de Lusignan, slew their commander, and put the men to flight. This brave chief continued the war with success till the year 1697, when he was decoyed into Canada, by the perfidy of the French, under the pretext of a desire to make peace, with about thirty of his warriors, who were fallen upon at a time when they had not the least thought that an enemy was near, and treacherously murdered by a party of Algonkins, engaged by the French expressly for the purpose. After he had received his death wound, he cried out, " Must I, who have made the whole earth tremble before me, now die by the hands of children?" He always retained the most deadly hatred for tlie Adirondacks. Thus perished one of the most brave, bold and renowned warriors of the Five Nations.* Besides the before named chiefs, were two others scarcely less distinguished. These were Sadekanaiite and Tuuren- * Coldeti's Five Nations. CHIEFS. 91 part of the •f Kan-ah-je- such heinous soon upon ' Onondagas, ;ercepted all ikes, secured h, and their 1 dismay into 3 palmy days war with Eu- ^0 which Avas glorious tri- )f Jlontreal, ; and it was Fortified pla- IIc suddenly of Siour de len to flight, till the year perfidy of make peace, m upon at a 1 enemy was Algonkins, . After he Must I, who w die by the nost deadly d renowned ers scarcely ^d TlIUKEN- SUEA, both of whom were men of influence and bore a con- spicuous part in all the important affairs of the confederacy. Some of the most beautiful and sublime passages of Indian eloquence, which have been preserved, have fallen from the lips of these distinguished chiefs of the Onondagas. Their talents and voices swayed the councils of the confederacy for a space of near a century before the French invaded their territory in 1GU6. And perhaps they have never been equalled in their Oratorical efforts, except by Logan, lied Jacket and Farmers Brother. Of the kind of oratory for which these native public speak- ers were distinguished, we cannot be expected to particular- ize with much precision. Indian eloquence is peculiarly impressive in the manner of the orator's delivery ; forcible in the expression of his countenance, and in the brilliant flashes of irony, humor and pathos with Avhich he ombelishcs his sub- ject. The Indian orator is remarkable for his allegorical apostrophes, to animate and inanimate things, his high wrought and original comparisons, and above all for the high toned prin- ciple, and direct, unpolished, unsophisticated logical accumen vhich prevades his discourse. l>y his eloquence, the orator arouses the passions of his hearers, and by his manner, affects their hearts and wins them to his views. He needs to bo seen as well as heard, to have his speeches take their due effect ; hence all interpretations, must always fall far short of the originals, in every point which constitutes the excel- lence of Indian oratory. Dr. Golden, who was familiar with Indian oratory, in its higher purity, remarks — "The speakers whom I have heard, had all a great fluency of words and much more grace in their manner, than any man could expect among a people entirely ignorant of the liberal arts and sciences. Their speakers attained a sort of urhanitas or atticism.'" A great council was held at Onondaga, in January, 1690. The object was to consider a message from Count de Fron- tenac, the governor of Canada. The English authorities at Albany, as was customary, were invited to attend. The ONONDAGA. council opened on the 22d of the month. Eighty aachcmg of the Five Nations were present. Sadekanahte was the loader of the council. Rising in his place, ho at first addressed on<> of the English messengers from Albany. He informed him that deputies were present from the Canadian Governor. Then taking in his hand a belt of wampum, sent by Count Fronte- nac, and holding it in the middle, he proceeded; " What I have said relates only to one half of the belt. The other half is to let you know that the governor of Canada intends to kin- dle his fire again at Cadaraqui next spring. He therefore invites his children and the Onondaga Captain Dekanissora, in particular, to treat there about the old chain." Several other distinguished speakers, of different nations, declared their sentiments. Belts, &c. were offered. After which Sadekanahte again rose and said, " Brothers, we must stick to our brother Quider, (Peter Schuyler, mayor of Alba- ny,) and regard Yonnondio, (governor of Canada,) as an enemy. " Brothers — Our fire burns at Albany. We will not send Dekanissora to Cadaraqui. We adhere to our old chain with Corlear, (governor of New- York,) we will prosecute the war with Yonnondio. We will follow your advice in drawing off our men from Cadaraqui. Brothers — we are glad to hear the news you tell us, but tell us no lies ! Brother Kinshon ! (New-England deputy,) we hear you design to send soldiers eastward against the Indians there. But we advise you, now so many are united against the French, to fall immediately on them. Strike at the root ; when the trunk shall be cut down, the branches will fall of course. Corlear and Kinshon, — Courage ! courage ! In the spring to Quebec ! Take that place — you will have your feet upon the necks of the French and all their friends in America !" After a short consultation, the following answer was prepared to be sent to the governor of Canada by the deputies of the French. "Yonnondio — You have notified your return to us and that you have brought back thirteen of our people who were carried to France. We are glad of it. You desire us to CHIEFS. 98 ty sachems of ms the loader iddressed one informed him vcrnor. Then /ount Fronte- 'Whatlhave other half is itends to kin- He therefore Dekanissora, If (rent nations, 'ered. After lers, we must lyor of Alba- ) as an enemy, vill not send Id chain with icute the war I drawing off .d to hear the er Kinshon ! send soldiers vise you, now immediately shall be cut In the spring lur feet upon 1 America !" was prepared puties of the n to us and pie who were desire us to meet you at Caduraqui next spring, about the old chain. But, Yonnondio ! how can we trust you, who have acted de- ceitfully so often ? Witness what was done at Cadaraqui — the usage our messengers met with at Utawas, and Avhat was done to the Senecas, at the same place." Gives a belt indi- cating a willingness to treat. " TiiuiiENSUUA, OuHUESSE and Ertel — (names of French deputies) Have you observed friendship with us ? If you have not, how came you to advise us to renew the friendship with Yonnondio V " Taweraiiet — The whole council is glad to hear of your return with the other twelve. "Yonnondio — Y'ounmst send home Tawerahet and the oth- ers this present winter, before spring. We will save all the French we have prisoners, till that time. " Y''oNNONDio — Youdesire to speak to us at Cadaraqui. Don't you know that your fire there is extinguished ? It is extin- guished with blood. Y'ou must send home the prisoners in the first place. You are not to think we have laid doAvn the axe because we return an answer. We intend no such thing. Our far-fighters shall continue the war, till our countrymen return. When our brother Tawerahet is returned, then we will speak to you of peace." This is only one of the many specimens of this distin- guished orator's eiforts and abilities as exemplified in the courtly councils of his people. Numerous others might bo brought forward from the London Documents where they abound. They show the high estimation in which the Five Nations were then held by the two most powerful and enlight- ened nations of the earth, and the influence which their deci- sions had in the political alFairs of these European Powers. Can-as-se-ta-qo — Was a renowned, sagacious and influen- tial chief of the Five Nations. He was an Onondaga, a man of note in his own nation, whose name figures largely in all the principal transactions of the Five Nations from 1734 to 1783. To illustrate the tact and capacity of this distinguished chief, it may not be amiss here to insert an extract from one 94 ONONDAGA. of Ms speeches at a council, with commissioners of Maryland relative to claims advanced by the people of that province, to a part of the territory of the Five Nations. (Taken from Colden.) " You mentioned the affair of the land yesterday, you went back to old times, and told us you had boon in possession of the province of Maryland over a hundred years. But what is a hundred years, in comparison to the length of time since our claim began, since we came out of this ground ? For we must tell you, that long before one hundred years, our ancestors came out of this very ground, and their children have occupied here ever since. You came out of the ground in a country far beyond the sea. There you may have a just clami. Jiut here, you must allow us to be your elder breth- ren, and the lands to have belonged to us, long before you knew anything of them. It is true the Dutch came here a hundred years ago in a ship, and brought with them many goods, such as awls, hatchets, guns, knives, and several other things, which they gave us ; and when they had taught us the use of these things, we learned what sort of people they were. We were so well pleased with them, that we at first tied their ship to the bushes* on the shore. Afterwards, likin-^ them still better the longer they staid with us, and thinking the bushes too slender, we removed the rope, and tied it to the great tree,t and finding that the tree was liable to be blown down by high winds, or to decay of itself, we from the affection we bore them, again removed the rope, and made it fast to a strong and big rock ;| and not content with this, for its further security, we again removed the rope to the great mountain, § and there we tied it very fast, and rolled wampum around it ; and to make it still more secure, we stood upon the wampum and sat down upon it, to preserve and defend it, and to prevent any hurt coming to it. We did our best en- deavors that it might remain unchanged forever. But with you, we have had no dealings, no trade, no chain of friend- * Manhattan Island. t Moliawk. t Oneida. J Onondaga. CHIEFS. of Maryland, ; province, to (Taken from ay, you went )os8e8sion of I. But what )f time since 'ound ? For 1 years, our icir children ' the ground r have a just elder breth- ; before you came here a them many everal other 1 taught us people they '' at first tied ^'^rds, liking nd thinking id tied it to liable to be we from the and made it vith this, for to the great ed wampum stood upon d defend it, )ur best en- But with 1 of friend- Onondaga. ship, and will not now quietly 05 . . nnnsont to have our lands un- justly wrested from us." An anecdote related by Dr. Franklin, shows in a very amia- ble bght the hosp.table character and sagacity, as well as honest suupl.c.ty, of this memorable chieftain. Conrad Wei- ser, the famous In.lian interpreter, had been naturalized among ho K.vo Nations, and spoke well their language. In going through he Indian country to carry a message from the Go vernor of 1 e.msylvania, to a council to be held at Onondaga, ho called at the habitation of Canassetago, an old acquaint- .ince, who embraced lam, spread furs for \nm to sit on, and placed before hnn some boiled beans and venison, and mixed some rum and water for him to drink. When he was well re- resluvl, and had lighted his pipe, Canassetago began to con- verse with lum, asked how he had fared, the ?nany years since they ad seen each other, whence he then cauu, what occa- s.onod the .journey, &c. Conrad answered nil his questions, =m w en the discourse began to flag, the Indian, to^ontinu; n Mid --. Conrad, you have lived long among the wldte peo- I'le, and know somcthin;^ of their customs T ),..,r , .• , o tuLii customs. 1 have sometimes 'ecu It Albany, and have observed that once in seven .l.vs Jheyshut up their shops, and assemble all in the great ue^ toll lue what It ,s for ; what do they do there T ^^ They meet here -says Conrad, ''to hear and learn ,o.Z ./.■.;:.^ ""^ not doubt, says the Indian, '' that they tell you so ; they have told me the same, but I doubt the truth of wha toy -J, and I wdl tell you my reasons. I went lately to Albany ^sol la kms and buy blankets, knives, powd^n-, rum, ..c lu know I used generally to deal with Hans Hanson, but I W: r"tl V''^ '"'^ '^ ^^'^^^^"^ other merchants. H)uld pay for beaver. He said he could not give more than ::t'"""rr^ but, said he, I cannot tflk on business no., this IS the day when we meet together to learn yood n 1; TT"^ '' '^'' ^"'''^"S- ^' I *h°"gJ^^ to myself, nee I cannot do any business to-day, I may Ts well go to the meetmg too ; so I went with him. There stood up a man m ONONDAGA, I? iit l)liick and began to talk to the people very angrily. I did not understand what he said, but perceiving that ho looked much at me and Hanson, 1 inuigined he was angry at seeing me there ; so I went out, sat down near the house, struck liro, and lighted my pipe, waiting till the meeting should break up. I thought, too, that the man had menti()nei(j8 that we need no meetings to be instructed in, because our mothers taught them to us when we were children, and therefore it i. i.;ii)o3.'')Uc ■ their meetings shoukl be as they say, for any 'i '< - i.-; ^ft furs for him n return. Eut ,nd ask for vie- jney ? and if I You see, they ;hat Ave need nu icrs taught them it io iii/|>u,sS'i.ljle y t \\'h .,,(,•; -ie, itnve tlie cheat- and Council of arc nation, pre- .le Six Nation?, C II 1 E F S 97 no IcBS than the commanding influence of this distinguished chief. A dispute arose l)etw(>en the l^ehiwares and the gov- ernment of rennsylvania, relative to a tract of land in the forks of the Delaware. The Knglish claimed it by right of purcha.<(e, and the Uelawares persisted in their claim, and threatened to use force, unless it should bo given up by the whites. The Delawares were at this tinto subject to the Six Nations, and the (fovernor of rennsylvania sent word to the chiefs of the Six Nations at ()nonda;j;a, to interferct and pre- vent war. It wii;, this that called Canassotago with two handrni and thirty Onondaga warriors to Thiladolphia, in 1742. Hv siys : " We see the Delawares have been an unruly people, and altogether in tho wrong. The Six Nations have resolved to remove them and oblige them to go over tho river Delaware, and (piit all claim to any lands on this side, for the future, ,siiu'e they hud received pay for them, and it is gone through their guts long ago. They deserved to be taken by the hair of the head and shaken severely, till they recovered their senses and became sober. I have seen with my own eyes a deed signed by nine of their ancestors, above fifty year ago for this very land." Then addressing himself to the Dela- wares present, he says: ''How came you, to take upon you to sell land at all ? Wc con(iuerod you ; wc made women of you; you know you are women and can no more sell land than women, nor is it fit you should have the i)ower of sell- ing lands, since you woidd abuse it. This land you claim has passed through you. You have been furnished with clothes, meat and drink, by the goods paid you for it, and now you want it again, like children as you are. But what makes you sell lands in the dark '! Did you ever tell vis, that you had ''. this land ? Did we ever receive any part, con the value of a pipe shank for it ? You have told us a blind story, that you sent a messenger to us, to inform us of the sale, but he never came amongst us, nor did we ever hear any thing about it. This acting in the dark, is very different from the conduct our Six Nations observe in the bale of lands. On J3 08 ONONDAGA, such occasions they give public notice and invite all the Indi- ans of their united nations, and give them all a share of the presents they receive for their lands. This is the behavior of the wise, united nations. But we find you are none of our blood ; you act a dishonest part, not only in this, but in other matters ; your cars are ever open to slanderous reports about your brethreii— you are Avonicn. For all these reasons we cliarge you to remove instantly ; we don't give you liberty to think about it." They dared not diso- bey and soon removed, leaving cjuiet possession to the English. This is the last we hear of this great chief; of his after life we know notliing ; at this period he was far advanced in year;; and probably soon after closed his earthly career. OUN-Di-A-GA — Was a cliief of modern times, but scarcely less noted than his illustrious predecessors. He was of the Bear tribe, and for a long period was first civil chief of tlie Onondaga nation. He was also a famous war captain, ami on account of his supericjr martial abilities, was selected for that important office at an early age. He lived at a time when affairs of the utmost importance were transacted in re- gard to his own nation, and of the confederates at large. Born, as is supposed, in the year 1730, his youthful days were spent upon the Avar path, and from childhood he was familiar with all the tempestuous movements of the Six Nations, during the old French war, and the border wars of the colonies. Eavlv inured to arms, he became distinguished for his courage and lii.ijijt }» J go, his trust was faithfully and punctually delivered, and on the morrow he returned. The distance from Onondaga to Oswe- go is about forty miles, and the trusty chief traversed the route on foot. This journey he performed regularly once a week and returned, usually occupying about ten hours each way. It is said that not an instance was ever known of his delav or failure. The peoplo of Onondaga, looked for and receiv- ed their mail at the hand of Oundiaga, with as much punctu- ality as they have at an y time since by stage or by Rail Road. The following interesting anecdote is related of Oundiaga. It may not have been original Avith him, (yet it has been de- clared so) still it typifies his feelings and character. It is well known that he was a persevering enemy to all encroachments being made upon Indian lands. In no instance was he ever known to countenance any act, conveying any part of the In- dian nondaga nation was like this. At tlie time the whites came among this peo- ple they were greatly addicted to the use of ardent spirits, and frequently indulged in it to the most beastly excess. In the year 17t>0 or '91,\v]iile Mr. Webster occupied his trading house at the mouth of Onondaga creek, eighteen of the prin- cipal chiefs and warriors of the Onon♦* 106 iety and ONONDAGA. Tlic cliiefs explained. suspense. J.ne cniets explained .._^ at Buflalo, a Phopiiet of the Seneca nation, wlio liad assured them, and in this assurance they iiad the most implicit confi- dence, that without a total abstinence, from the use of ardent spirits, they and their race would shortly become extinct ; t!)at they had entered upon a resolution, never again to taste the baneful article, and that they hoped to be able to prevail on their nation to adopt the same salutary resolution. Many iit this early day adopted the temperance principles, it is said at least three fourths of all the nsition ; and of all those who pled^avl tliemaelves to the cause, not an instance was known of alienation or neglect ; but to a man, they religiously ad- hered to their solemn pledge. The consequence was, that from a drunken, filthy, lazy, worthless, set of beings, they became a cleanly, industrious, sober, happy, and more prosperous people. At this period, it Avas considered one of the most temperate coinmuuities in the laiul ; only a very few of the nation in- ine extinct ; Jjain to taste h to prevail ion. Many les, it is said II those who i was known ligiousl}' ad- LS, that from ;licy became prosperous t temperate 3 nation in- ;veated witli long after ison amonir Mn continu- his })owers 'd under his Itv, he was tore things d precepts d they per- grity, they are at prc- iVar, Hon. thing else, lation and I his breth- nations of Indians now present, at the seat of government of the United States : " Brothers — Your father and good friend, the President of the United States, lias taken into consideration all that you communicated to him when you took him by the hand three days ago ; and he has authorized nie to give you the follow- ing answer : Brothers — The President is pleased with seeing you all in good health, after so long a journey, and he re- joices in his heart, that one of your own people has been em- ployed to make you sober, good and ha})py ; and that he is so well disposed to give you good advice, and to set before you so good examples. "Brothers — If all the red people follow the advice of your friend and teacher, the Handsome Lake, and in future will be sober, honest, industrious and good, there can be no doubt hut the Great Spirit will take care of you and make you happy. "Brothers — The great council of the sixteen fires, and the President of the United StatOvS, all wish to live with the red people like brothers ; to have no more wars or disputes, but to pursue such measures as shall contribute to their lasting com- fort. For this purpose the great council of the sixteen fires are now considering the propriety of prohibiting the use of spirituous li(|uors among all their red brethren within the Fuited States. This measure, if carried into effect, will be pleasing in the sight of the Great Being, who delights in the happiness of his common family. " Brothers — Your father, the President, will at all times bo your friend, and he will protect you and all his red children from bad people, who would do you or them any injury. And he will give you a writing or paper, to assure you, that what lands you hold cannot be taken from you by any person, ex- cepting by your own consent and agreement. "Brothers — The Handsome Lake has told us, that the four angels have desired him to select two sober men to take care of this business, and that he has chosen Charles U'Beal and Strong for this purpose. The President is willing that his red children should choose their own agents for transacting' 108 ONONDAGA. 'I r their business, and if Charles O'Heal and Strong are the men whom your people can best confide in, he has no objection to their being appointed. But, it would bo improper for the President to interfere in your national appointments. " Given under my hand and tiie seal of the war of- [L. S.] fice of the United States, this UUh day of March, A. D., 1802. (Si-ned) II. DEARBORN." For a period of a quarter of a century, tliis illustrious sccr exercised an almost unbounded influence for the good of the Indian nations. Scarce an individual but regarded him with the most profound veneration and awe. His influence, his teachings and examples, are held in pious regard even to this day, and the remembrance of his many virtues and his excel- lence, still serves to sustain many of his countrymen in the way of well doing, and to prevent them from falling into de- generacy, lie annually visited all the six nations, (the Onei- das excepted,) and preached and exhorted them to beware of their besetting sins, and the evil to come. On one of these annual visits to Onondaga, he was suddenly taken ill, and af- ter a short illness, died at the Castle on Sunday, the 10th of August, 1815.* Those who had been acffuainted with the influence this man's preaching produced upon the conduct of the Six Na- tions, (the Oneidas excepted) looked upon his death as a se- vere dispensation of divine providence. lie was buried under the centre of the old council-house, amidst every manifesta- tion of sorrow and regret, surrounded by the entire people, who had gathered to pay the last tribute of respect, to one who for a long time, had held almost unlimited control over their destinies. Some of the strongest appeals, of which In- dian eloquence is capable, have been made over the grave of the prophet, and the presence of his dust, in the midst of their council-room, has stimulated many a heart to virtuous action. If a wayward soul has gone astray in the path of intoxication, he is directed to the grave of the Prophet. If * Onondaga Register. CHIEFS. 109 I are the men ) objection to oper for the onta. f the war of- ay of March, ilBORN." lustrious seer good of the led him Avith iiflucnce, his even to this nd his excel- vmen in the ling into de- s, (tlie Onei- to beware of )ne of these n ill, and af- tlie 10th of ifliicnce this the Six Na- ^ath as a se- )uried under y manifesta- tire people, pect, to one control over )f which In- he grave of le midst of to virtuous ;he path of rophet. If he has overstepped the bounds of truth and propriety, he is reminded that the Prophet taught not so ; and, with a regard for his memory, little short of adoration, the delinquent pro- mises reformation and obedience. It has been related by several persons, and it is believed !)y the Indians, that he actually foretold the hour and man- ner of his death. ()s-SA-iiix-TA — Captain Frost — This distinguished chief of the Onondagas', wlio presided with great ability over the coun- cils of the nation from 1880 to 1840, possessed a character and a name, which eminently deserves to be reniembere fiercest blaze of jiassson carried conviction to every heart. The dauntless energy of his mind, the firm spirit of his resolution, his nndeviating patriotism, without the sacrifice of persona] dignity, carried with him the hearts and affections of his hearers. It has been the jdeasure and good fortune of tlie author, on sundry important occasions to witness the attractions of his elofpience, and although not understanding a word which he uttered, has been forced by the energy of his manner, the grace of his gesture, the elegance of his tone, and the thrilling responses of his hearers, to feel con- vinced of the transcendant powers of this distinguished man. Being entitled to the honors of chief sachemship by birth, iind this being confirmed by election, he stood at the head of his people, a noble example of the great and good — an exalt- ed specimen of his race. The Onondaga nation, as a fur- ;-l4 >S3 112 ONONDAGA. ! ' ,; ii V .1 ther testimony of their confidence and esteem, conferred upon him the honorary title of war captain, the highest title known to their military usages, as a reward for his distinguished ser- vices, and as a tribute to his superior wisdom and greatness. The subject of this sketch was an admirable pattern of In- dian excellence. Although he rigidly adhered to the customs and religion of his fathers, no man could be more devoted to sentiments of friendship and peace. "Whenever tlie shrill war- whoop sounded tlirough his native woodlands, its echos had scarcely suspended their reverberations from the surrounding hills, before his influence was felt in quieting the tempest, and in securing an adjustment of difficulties. It is true, his career was not marked Ijy scenes of rapine and blood ; no mighty warlike schemes were projected during his ascenden- cy — no madly contested battle fleld marked the progress of his course, nor was the clangor of arms, or the deceit of es- pionage or the Ct'al't; of sti'ategy — elements that entered prominently into the formation of his cliaracter. Circumstan- ces never tried him as a warrior. IJut from his bold and fearless spirit, his active and penetrating judgment, his easy discernment of the capacities of men, ami Avithal his unbound- ed influenco with his countrymen — it is to be inferred that had his talents been thus require 1 and exerted, he would have been as conspicuous in the character of a warlike leader as he was in the councils of the nations. Having drank deeply at the fountain of instruction diffused by the Great Prophet, Conyataiiyou, he was strictly temper- ate in his habits, and frequently mourned over the wretched- ness and degradation of his brethren, occasioned by the '•//« water" of the pale faces. Like his pi'c lecessors, he rogarilod the introduction of ardent spirits among his pi^aple as a plot, to extirpate the red race, and to eradicate their power. His admonitions to his people in regard to " icaolnr/ tohiskei/ to the whites," were cogent and salutary, and ffcqui.'ntly wlto the national councils enriched with his eloquent temperance ap- peals. Never was a man admitted to their councils who swayed their wild spirits Avith so much effect, dignity and grace. CHIEFS. 113 nferred upon it title known iguished ser- greatness. attern of In- the customs '0 devoted to le shrill war- ts eclios had surrounding the tempest, .t is true, his d blood ; no is ascenden- progress of deceit of es- ;hat entered Circumstan- us bold and ent, liis easy his unbound- inferred that } Avould have ke leader as 3tion diffused ctly tempcr- ic wvetched- by the ''fire he vegarded )le as a plot, power. His Iilskeij to the tly were the iperance ap- 1 who swayed 1 grace. Ossahinta, died at his residence, near the council-house of the Onondaga nation, on the 24th day of January, 1846, in the eighty-sixth year of his age, much lamented by his coun- trymen. His funeral was attended by a large majority of the nation, and numbers of his white friends were present to pay their last fond regards to the distinguished and illustrious dead. His remains were interred in the common burying place of the nation, in all the pomp and circumstance of aboriginal ceremony. The stoical silence of his male brethren, and the tears and moans of his female relatives and friends, told plainly the hold he had on their affections and the loss which they were called upon to mourn. By way of eminence, this truly great man was sometimes styled Ka-ge-a-lo-ha-ta, the head man or oracle of the Onon- dagas — a very Cato. A few montlis before his death, he was persuaded to sit for liis picture, to Mr. Sanford Thayer, an excellent artist of the city of Syracuse. The picture is a capital likeness of him as he was usually dressed and decorated on state occasions. From, this picture, now in possession of Mr. Welch, of Syra- cuse, a spirited steel engraving has been made by Messrs. Chase & Ostrander, which is placed as a frontispiece to this work, and represents the care worn chieftain as he was famili- arly known to many of the citizens of our county, in the pahny days of his usefulness and power. From time immemorial, the Onondagas have furnished the King— "TAir-TO-TATi," or principal civil officer of the con- federacy. This celebrated personage has usually resided at Onondaga. The present Tah-to-tah is a reputed grandson of Ephraim Webster, and the son of a daughter of the late Ossahinta. The line of descent in all instances among the Six Nations, has always been with the female branch of the family, and this succession has been through the daughter of Ossahinta, her mother, grandmother and so up to the first Tah-to-tah— this being the XIII., XIV. or XV. from the first. The present king is now (1848) about seven years old, pos- 16 '$ m ! 't I :> 114 ONONDAGA. sessing an intelligent countenance, muscular frame, and much intellectual vigor — with eyes like an eagle. He now takes part in all their Pagan ceremonies, distinguishes himself in their dances, and is a usual attendant upon councils. But alas ; the title is all he can possess of royalty. De-iiat-ka-tons— Abram La Fort.— This distinguished chief was the successor of Captain Frost, in the principal chieftain- ship of the Onondagas, and in all the mythology and intricate mysteries of the peculiar institutions of the Six Nations. He was born in the year 1794, and Avas a son of the celebrated HoH-A-HOA-QUA, (La Fort,) who fell in the service of his country, valiantly fighting at the head of his warriors, in be- half of the United States, on the battle field of ChippoAva, on the 6t]i of July, 1814. Dehatkatons was of the Beaver clan of the Onondagas, and received his English appellation through one of his ancestors, (his grand-father or great grand-father) awarded upon a battle field, in which the French and English were engaged, during the old French war. On this occasion, the warrior sachem had performed prodigies of valor, and Avith his red riglit hand and uplifted arm, had slain many of his foes, in consequence of which, he was named La Fort* by the French, Avhich conferred the title of the Brave. This title Avas held in high estimation by the subject of this sketch, and Avhenever he alluded to the circumstances of its origin. his countenance Avould light up with peculiar lustre, and his sharp, keen eye flash with delight. The father of Dehatka- tons Avas a civil ehioi" of great distinction forty years a^o, and then second only to Oundiaga. On account of his uncommon martial abilities, he Avas chosen Avar captain of the Onondao-as, and subsequently first Avar chief of the Six Nations, in Avhich capacity he acted on the frontier, in the early part of the campaign of 1814, until his death. While the life blood of the warrior chief was fast flowing upon the plain of ChippcAva, * Le being the French article for nouns of the niascuhne gentler, and La for those of the feminine, this sliould properly be written Le Fort ; but, as it was written by himself Las Fort, we adopt it as his proper name. CHIEFS. 115 anie, and much He now takes shes himself in councils. But inguished chief cipal chieftain- y and intricate Nations. He the celebrated service of his warriors, in be- ' Chippewa, on le Beaver clan Ilation throufrh o I grand-father) ih and English . this occasion, of valor, and slain many of led La Fort* Brave. This of this sketcli, of its origin, ustre, and his r of Dehatka- rears ago, and bis uncommon le Onondagas, ions, in which y part of the ! life blood of of Chippewa, ;:ender, and Im for t ; but, as it was the braves of the Onondagas gathered around the prostrate hero, and exclaimed in their own language, "Alas! great chief! The Brave ! the Brave !" Dohatkatons, then in the twentieth year of his age, accom- panied his father to the Niagara frontier, was present with him at the time he was shot, and assisted to bear his bleeding sire from the field, amid the din and danger of angry battle. Af- ter the burial of his father, being deeply imbued with the su- perstitions of his race, he returned to his home, and there with his relations and friends, bewailed the loss of the great war captain of the Six Nations. Dohatkatons succeeded in part to the title of the sachem- ship held by his father, through the voice and consent of the nation. But it was not until the death of Ossahinta, that he was invested with all the insignia of rank pertaining to the office of principal chief. He was connected, by consanguinity or affinity with all the principal chiefs of a long and uninter- rupted line, and to Tahtotah or king of the Six Nations ; Oun- diaga, Tiungktakonea (Captain George) and Ossahinta were his uncles. After the death of his father, he was admitted to a seat in the councils of his countrymen. He was entitled to this dis- tinction through his mother, a sister of Oundiaga. The next we hear of our late friend, is in connection with the Oneida mission, established by Bishop Ilobart. In re- lating the circumstances of a visit to Onondaga, in 1816, Rev. ilr. Eleazar Williams in his journal says: "I was happy to find Abram La Fort appeared to be under serious impres- sions, llis inquiries after the nature and design of Christi- anity, are such as to give me the greatest hopes that his heart had been touched and moved by the spirit of God, to make these inquiries. He has engaged to come monthly to Oneida, for religious instruction, which I will most cheerfully give him," The Rev. E. G. Gear, who was at this time a missionary at Onondaga Hill, and who often visited the Onondaga In- dians, thus makes mention of him : " I found him in a corn- Bsf^fS^Rl p H B ' ^ i 1 M 1 ," M ' n I ' . ii'^a VM 11 BHJBMy 1 116 ONONDAGA '*! ;i i field, almost entirely naked, at work with his hoe." He was considered by his countrymen and otiiers who enjoyed his ac- quaintance, as a youth of uncommon promise. Mr. Gear be- came very much attacliod to his new friend. In a conver- sation. La Fort signified his wishes to be educated, that he might be useful to his people. Ilis wishes were communi- cated to Bishop Ilobart by Mr. Gear, lie had all along been instructed in the truths of Christianity, by Mr. Elcazar Wil- liams, then lay reader and catechist at Oneida, aided by that devoted Christian, Abraham Brant, an aged Mohawk who had settled at Oneida, and who was wholly devoted to the service of God. The rudiments of an intellectual education had also been taught him by Mr. Williams. It was on the visit of Bishop Ilobart to western New- York, in the autumn of 1817, that he for the first time Avas introduced to the younf^ chief. From a full and unreserved conversation, the bishop felt assured, that the education of this young native, would be of vast importance to his countrymen. Mr. Williams also became very much interested in the future prospects and wel- fare of La Fort ; and in his journal, under date of Dec. 1818, says: "As my great anxiety has been to assist my young friend Abram La Fort, the Onondaga chief, in regard to his education, so I addressed my diocesan upon the subject, who answered as follows:" " New York, January 8th, 1819. " My Dear Sir : I have received your letter of the 29th December, and will write you relative to its contents, and furnish you with the document you requested by Mr. Thomas L. Ogden, who expects to leave here for Albany, by Friday. In haste, yours sincerely, J. II. IIOBART." The following is an extract from the document referred to : " Mr. Eleazar Williams, a young man of Indian extraction, has been admitted as a candidate for orders in the Protestant Episcopal Church, and is usefully employed as a catechist and lay reader among the Oneida Indians. Mr. Williams is en- gaged in the laudable design of procuring funds, for tlie edu- .. C ! m sfflj CHIEFS. 117 e." He was I joyed his ac- Mr. Gear be- In ii conver- ated, that he ii'c communi- l11 along been Elcazar Wil- aided by tliat ^lohawk who voted to the iial education t was on the the autumn to the young n, the bishop lative, "wouhl iVilliams also ects and wel- .f Dec. 1818, it my young ogard to liis subject, who Rth, 1819. of the 21)tli ontcnts, and Mr. Thomas •, by Friday. IIOBART." referred to : II extraction, e Protestant jatechist and Hams is en- for the edu- cation of a young Indian of piety and talents, who is desirous of devoting himself to the ministry of the church. " I recommend this pious and benevolent design, to the pa- tronage of the friends of religion, and particularly to those who are desirous of extending the blessings of civilization and Christian knoAvledge among the Indian tribes." With this testimonial of the bishop's approbation, Mr. Wil- Uams, in company with La Fort, visited Boston, where they found but few individuals who were willing to aid them in their laudable undertaking. Major General Dearborn, however, made a very handsome donation, and some others gave according to their ability ; among whom are favorably mentioned, the Rev. Mr. Kirk- land, president of Harvard University, Gardner Green, Thomas Williams, Esqrs., and Rev. Dr. Porter, of Roxbury. Mr. Williams and his protege afterwards went to New- York, Avhere, under the immediate influence of Bishop llobart, they were more successful. Among his friends, was raised a fund of about $1400, for the benefits proposed. The youth- ful chief, was noAV placed under the guardian care of the Rev. Samuel Fuller, of Rensselaerville, in whose family he remained from March, 1819, to August, 1823, spending the winter (some eight months) of 1822-3 with a son of Mr. Fuller, wlio was then principal of Hudson academy. In 1819 Bishop llobart thus speaks of him in his annual address : " The young Onondaga chief, whom I mentioned in my last address, as desirous of procuring an education, for the purpose of qualifying him as the spiritual instructor of his countrymen, will be able through the bounty of Episcopa- lians and others, principally in the city of New York, and through the aid of the government of the United States, to attain his object. He is advantageously receiving an educa- tion under the care of the Rev. Samuel Fuller, of Rensselaer- ville." During the whole period of his stay with Mr. Fuller, his conduct was in all respects most exemplary, his habits pi- ous, and liis diligence and proficiency in learning were satis- factory and encouraging to his teachers, considering his ad- •-■'V'tH ■v4 ■i 1 I H 1 ^^1^1 ^n ^^^^1 ^H ^^^^^^^H ^hI ^^^^^^^H ^^M ^IHII Wm HHH I^M WWi 1 ml WtVmm. f^m I1 118 ONONDAGA WW ll"' 1 'II 1 ! I u i vanced age and the embarrassments he labored under in being educated in a new hinguage. After Geneva Academy was established, he was transferred to the care of the Rev. Daniel McDonald, D. D., Principal of that institution in 1823. Here he remained nearly three years, until the fund for his education and support had been expended. Soon after this he returned to his nation, perhaps not as well qualified for missionary labors among his brethren, in point of classical attainments, as might by many have been supposed, considering the time he was under instruction. But great allowances should be made in his behalf; he had new associations to form, a new language to learn, new ideas and new impressions to receive. He was in fact an infant in all things except physical proportions and strength. After his return to his people, he opened a school, which was continued about three years. He was paid eight dollars a month for his services, by a Quaker, who resided among the Onondagas with his family. The efforts of this Quaker fami- ly were unremitting, for a period of eight years, during whicli time several Indian girls were instructed in household duties, the benefits of which we see, even at this late day, exemplifi- ed in some of their habitations. The most strenuous exer- tions were used by this family to bring about a reformation in the morals and habits of the nation, and to hasten a knowl- edge of civilization and Christianity. Altliough ineffectual in their efforts, traces of their labors still remain, and the servi- ces of Adin T. Corey and family, will be long and affection- ately remembered. La Fort was, at this time, undoubtedly sincere in his pro- fessions of faith in the gospel, and in the doctrines and wor- ship of the Protestant Episcopal Church, lie made it a du- ty to attend punctually the services of the Church at Onon- daga Hill ; always looked comely and well dressed ; liad a full share of self-respect ; was exceedingly gentlemanly in his deportment, and it has been remarked by numbers, that but few young men spoke the English language Avith so much nu- CHIEFS. 110 rity, grace and ease, as did Abram La Fort, at the time he left Geneva ; -which may be attributed solely to the fact, that he never had but little if any intercourse after he left home, during all his sojourn witli the whites, only with the highly educated, the virtuous and the good. In addition to the fore- going, lie led a devoted, exemplary, and Christian life ; had been baptized, confirmed and admitted to the holy commu- nion, and in all respects lived and adorned his Christian pro- fession. At this period strong hopes were entertained of his future usefulness among his own people. lie was married in the Church on Onondaga Hill by the Rev. Mr. Ilinton, in Au- gust, 1828, to an Indian woman. For a time he continued faithful to the trust reposed in him ; l)ut in the course of events his faith grew cold, his wife, who was a complete and perfect specimen of a Pagan — scKi.sli, obstinate, opposed to Christianity and all innovations upon Indian practices, was a primary cause of alienation of feeling. Add to this his love of power among his people, wliicli could not be attained while he remained a Christian, and his solitary and single-handed efforts to Christianize a subtle and savage nation, and we have the whole cause which by degrees disheartened, discouraged, and finally sunk him to his original state of barbarism and heathen degradation. It is to be deplored, that so favorable an opportunity of permanently introducing the gospel among this people, should have been suffered to pass without profit. La Fort should never have been allowed, single-handed and alone, to combat the prejudices, ignorances and influences of his grossly superstitious countrymen. Had a missionary fami- ly accompanied him to his home, and given him counsel and encouragement, no t! ubt at this day might be seen a flourish- ing mission of the Protestant Episcopal Church at Onondaga ; and La Fort Avould have been preserved, a blessing to himself, his family, his kindred and his people. For several years be- fore his death, he had repudiated Christianity, and had been considered the head of the Pagan party. He was openly and even violently opposed, in latter years, to the admission of ! ! ■ ri." 120 ONONDAGA. '! H ministers of tlie gospel among his people, and opposed the in- troduction of schools, except as a matter of policy. The fol- lowing may be an instance in point : At a great National Council, held at the Ca&tle in 1841, the subject of admitting missionaries and school teachers, was seriously discussed. The old Pagan chiefs were, to a man, opposed to the plan ; debate ran high, and finally the subject was referred to La Fort. Af- ter some preliminary remarks, ho said—" It is best to let all those become Christians who will, and let all those who choose, remain Pagans. Because if we do not, the Christian party will make great ado. The white people will sympathize with them,— they will become strong— they will have good sing- ing—they will go to the white people and get good victuals, and all our people will join them, and our Indian institutions will all be absorbed, they will wither away and die. Let all go as they will, we shall then stund a chance to be the most numerous, and our party will finally succeed." Latterly, his influence has been strongly exerted in keeping many of the children of Christian pa-ents from the school" . .tablished among them by the State, and most of the Pagans. He was foremost in all the rites and ceremonies of the Pagan festivals and sacrifices. He was a man of great influence, and extensively known and respected among all the Six Nations. And it is said he was the only man, at the time of his death, who Avas every way capable of carrying on a great council of the United Nations, in its pure and primitive form. Although naturally distrustful of the whites, ho often in the most unreserved manner communicated with those he thought worthy of his confidence. Only ten days before his death, and while in the full tide of life and health, arrangements had been made to secure a likeness of him by a competent artist, for the purpose of having an engraved copy made to accompany this work as a frontispiece. The day was set that we were to meet and commence the work. Three d..ys after the appointment was made, he was taken sick, and on the day he was first to sit for his picture, Abram La Fort expired. He was sick but eight days. It was the fortune of the author CHIEFS. 121 to visit him during lis sickness, the Monday previous to hia death. He then seemed very much in doubt whether he should recover, and wlien questioned in regard to his future state and his belief in his former teachings and profession, he replied, the white man's God has been very good to me, and sighed, but would answer no more. His last public act, was to escort a largo delegation of the chiefs and warriors of the Onondaga nation, as far as the city of Syracuse, on their way to a grand council, to be held at Tonawanda. He felt too ill to go on with them — charged them how to proceed, and bade them adieu, as it proved for- ever. He died on the morning of Thursday, the 5th of Oc- tober, 1848, of congestive fever, aged fifty-four years. AV^ithin a few hours after his deatli, the news had reached the city of Syracuse, and was every where received with sur- prise and sorrow. Every one was disposed to sympathize in this (to the Indians) great national bereavement. Immediately after his death, a runner was dispatched to • Buffalo, to notify his friends at the council, of their irrepara- ble loss. These returned on the Saturday following, and on Sunday at tAvelve o'clock, the corpse was carried on a bier to the council-house and placed in the centre of the room, in wliicli he had so often addressed the few remaining sons of the forest, Avho had now assembled to pay their last tribute of respect, to the remains of their chief. The ceremonies for the occasion of the burial, were com- menced by Harry Webster, the highest religious ofiicer of the Pagan party, by a speech in his native tongue. The speaker closed his remarks, passed a belt of wampum, representing the laAvs of the nation, to an individual named John Halfr Town, who was to act as head chipf until the next annual council, should be convened. This same belt once held by Kawhicdota, Oundiaga, Ossa- hinta and Dehatkatons, successively, is the unwritten code, which he was to administer. The corpse was appareled in the full costume of a warrior prepared for battle. He had in latter years, delighted in administering the laws, and 16 fe«j-.A.j.' 122 O N O N I) A G A . 1^'' P \\ur feet long, -^ive Nations, arm, or as we erally, some- ;ular squares, lite Avampum ;he union of !, is a second in the wam- pum, all holdintr hands in a circle, which i.s to represent, that there .shall be no end to this lea/j;ue. On one belt is n<,'urcd the Long House, the Great Cabin, which no now nation can enter until it has erected aoino little cabins around it ; that i.s, the nation must perform some deeds worthy of note, before it can be entitled to admission to the great league of confederation. Around this, are five smaller cal)ins, emblems of the original Five Nations, before the league was formed, and on one side is a still smaller one, wrought since the first, representing the Tu.scarora nation, which was admitted at a 8ubse(iuent period. Another long narrow belt, having a cross at one end and a long house at the olher, a narrow white .stripe connecting the long house and a large cross, was explained as follows: " arcat many years ago," a company from Canada presented this belt, desiring that missionaries, from the Roman Catholic church, might bo settled among the Five Nations, and erect a church, at Onon- daga, and that the road should be cortinually kept open and free between them. All tlie other belts were explained with particular minuteness. The bag which contains these relics is of itself a singular curiosity. It is made of the finest shreds of Elm bark, and a person without being apprised, miur enemies. We all wish you joy, and wo will love the French for your sake." In conclusion, the Onondaga chief commenced speaking : •'Hoar, Ondessonk," said ho, " five nations speak through my mouth. I have in my heart the sentiments of all the Iroquois nations, :ind my language is faithful to my heart. Tell On- nontio four things, which are the su])joct of all our councils. First, we will acknowledge him of whom you have spoken, who is the master of our lives and to us unknown. Second, our national tree, is this day planted at Onon- daga; henceforth, it will be the place of our councils and treaties for peace. Third, we request you to select on the banks of our great lake, a convenient place for a French habitation. Place yourself in the heart of our country, since you have possessed our inmost affections. There, we can go for instruction ; and from thence, you can spread yourselves everywhere. Have for us the care of fathers, and we will entertain for you the respect of children. Fourth; we arc engaged in new wars; let Onnontio animate 18 JfJW^MBJi^i 138 O N O N D A (J A . US for the acone. For him wo will have no thoughts but peace." Their most vahiable presents were reserved for the last four Hpccchefl. On tiio l')th of August, wo set out on our return with ii goodly company. On the Itjth we arrived at the entrance of a small lake. (Onondaga.) In a large basin, half dry, we tasted the water of a spring, Avhich the Indians are afraid to drink, saying that is inliiibited by a demon who renders it foul. I found it to be a fountain of salt water, from which we made a little salt, ns natural as from the soa, some of which we shall carry to Queljcc. This lake aboiuids in salmon, trout and other kinds of liwh. On the ITth, we entered the outlet of the lake, and passed the river of the Senecas on the left, the addition of which enlarges the stream. It rises, they say, in two streams, nmong the Cayugas and Senecas. After three leagues more of pleasant traveling, wo passed on our right, the river of Oneida, which seemed (piitc deep. A league farther, we encountered some rapids, wliifh gave the name to a village of iishermen. On the 18th, my companions were engaged in putting their canoes in order. August 19th, '70 journeyed on upon the same river, Avliich is of fine width, and everywhere deep, except some rapids, where we found it necessary to get into the water and draw the ca- noe to prevent its being broken by the rocks. 20th. We arrived this day at the great lake Ontario, called the Lake of the Iroquois. The residue of the journal is a continuation of his journey back to Quebec. lie describes the scenery along the lake as very beautiful. He became almost enchanted with the abun- dance of game, consisting of immense herds of wild cattle, deer, &c., which were feeding on extensive meadows. Com- pletely satisfied with the results of his mission, he arrived safely at Quebec, on the 11th of September, 16-58. Next in order is the Relation of the years 1055 and 1650, ar I s H I o N a , 189 Jturn with a by Father Francis lo Mercier, giving an account of tho voy- age of Father Joseph Chauraonot, and Father Claude Dablon to Onondaga, to the country of the Inxiuois superiors. Tho Agnics (Mohawks) and Onneiouts (Oneidas) from be- low, wo denominate the Lower or Inferior Iroquois. The Onon(hvga3 and the neighboring nations for tho Upper or Su- perior Irociuois, because they advance higher towards tho source of the river St. Lawrence, and itdmbit a mountainous country. ()non(higa being the central nation, our voyage was directed to that place. Wo set out from Quebec, the" IDth of September, HUV), and from Montreal, the 7th of October. We ascended the Sault St. Louis, but on account of the break- ers, and the difficult passage, we ordy advanced four leagues the first day, and a (fuarter of a league on the second. Ve here joined some Onondagas, who had preceded us, that they might have time to prepare canoes for the voyaf^e. We piissod the remainder of the day with them. On the 9th, we traversed tho lake St. Louis, which is formed ill the river St. Lawrence. This magnificent river forms lakes in many places, by expanding its waters and afterwards com- pressing them within its natural channel. On tho 10th, which was Sunday, we had tlio consolation of saying holy mass. Our guides and the rest of our people, had soon erected and dressed an altar and living chapel, since it was built of the green branches of trees. We made wine from the grapes of the country, which were everywhere abun- dant. After our devotions were completed, we rc-embarked, and had hardly made a league, when we met a band of Tson- nontnuan (Seneca) hunters, who told us that their nation was to send an embassy to the French in tho autumn. On the 12th, we rowed up several rapids, and in the eve- niug, instead of resting, after our hard day's work in these currents by which we had advanced about five lengucs, we liad to keep watch, for we greatly feared the Mohawks, of which a part of our band was composed, who were enemies to the Ilurons and the faith. On the 13th, we did not proceed far, on account of the At li 'f'--" i :i • I 'f '(■■ m » h 140 ONONDAGA. failure of our provisions. Our hunters and fishers were ne- cessarily engaged in seeking their own subsistence and ours from the woods and streams. 14th. Our purveyors were not remarkably fortunate ; our stock of provisions Avas still running lower and lower, and our appetites continually sharpened by hunger. At this juncture we made prize of a wild cow. This poor boast had been drowned ; its flesh was already in a state of decay, but appe- tite being a superior cook, without salt or spices, Ave still found this meat not only very acceptable, but exceedingly well fla- vored. Nay, let us rather say that the zeal and ardor that we feel, in gaining these poor souls for God, so softens all our difficulties, that avc find much sweetness in the strong, and much that is agreeable in the bitter. On the 15th, God caused us to pass from destitution to abundance. Eight bears had fallen into the hands of our liunters. Immediately all our people became butchers and cooks. Nothing was seen but flesh and grease and skins. Four pots boiled continually, and Avhen it came to the knives and the teeth, not one asked for bread, Avine, salt or sauce. It Av. s most excellent, Avithont seasoning. The rains descend- ed abundantly this day, Avhich obliged our fiimished horde to repose, Avitliout the loss of a day of fine Aveather. On tlie 17th, the abundance continues ; our people killed thirty bears. One man killed ten, for his single portion. A singular ceremony folloAved this great carnage, Avhicli Avns to drink the grease of these bears after a meal, as avc drink " Ily- jjocras" in France. AfterAvards every individual rubbed them- selves from head to foot Avith this oil. On the night of tlie 18th and 19th, Ave Avere much diAxrted by an agreeable incident. One of our savages aAvakes at raid- night, out of breath, crying and turning himself about like a madman. We thought at first that some great calamity had befallen him, so Adolent Avere his convulsions. We ran to him to encourage him, but his cries and fury redoubled. We hid our arms lest he should seize them and improperly use them. Some prepared a medicinal drink for him ; others held him ao MISSIONS, 141 well as they could, but he escaped from their hands and cast himself into tlie river, where he behaved strangely ; several ran to draAv him out ; they proposed a fire for him ; altho' he acknowledged himself very cold, he went away from the fire and took his station against a tree, by which to warm himself. Our people oifered the medicine prepaied for him ; "But," said he, " it is not suitable for my complaint. Give it to that child," said he, pointing to the skin of a bear stuffed with straw. We were obliged to obey him, and pour it down the throat of that beast. Until then, every one had been alarmed. But when closely questioned, as to what ailed him, he said he had dreamed that a certain animal, Avhich is in the habit of divine in the water, had got into his stomacli and awakened him, and that to fight with it, he had thrown himself into the river. Upon this, all our fears were changed to laughter, ic was neccssMvy, however, to cure the diseased imagination of this man, Wherefore they all pretended to be as mad as himself, and to fight with the animals diving in the water. They also prepared to sweat themselves so ii.s to get him to do like them. As he cried and sung aloud durhig the process of SAveating, imitating the cry of the animals with which he was fighting, so thoy also began to cry and sing aloud, the cries of those animals with which they pretended to be fighting, every one violently striking the poor fellow in the cadence of their song, hnaginc what a chorus of twenty voices, imitating ducks, teall and frogs, and what a sight to see so many men pretendino- to be mad in order to cure a madman. They succeeded well for after being thoroughly sweated, our lunatic stretched him- self upon liis unit and slept as soundly as if nothing had hap- pened. Ilis disease, which had come on in a dream, passed off in a dreamy sleep, and whosoever has to do with these Pa- gan savages may lose his life by a dream. On the 10th, 20th, 21st, 22d, 2.3(1, we labored hard in drag- ging our canoes through the rapids, making only four or five leagues. 2-kh, AVe arrived early at Lake Ontario, a very beautiful lake. (Father Henepin, speaking of this lake, says. Tome ■ '<■'' "5,1 M , |,f ! i ii f[['t it iH ^aJlllrLI' yjMiro'tiB li w ■KJlLiii If 142 ONONDAGA. I, page 23, '' The river of St. Laurence derives its source from Liic Ontario, which is Hkewise called, in the Iroquois lan- guage, Skanadario, that is to say, very jjretty Lac." Again, at Tome II, page 136, he says, " The great river of St. Lau- rence, which I have often mentioned, runs through the mid- dle of the Iroquois country, and makes a great Lake there, which they call Ontario, viz : the beautiful Lac. It is near one hundred leagues long, and a vast number of towns might bo built upon it.") To continue our narrative — five stags were killed this evening, at the entrance of the lake. The inci- dent was sufficient to stop our party. We considered at lei- sure the beauty of this lake, the entrance to which is half way from Montreal to Onondaga. It is incomparably the most difficult part, on account of the great number of rapids. We afterwards enter into beautiful smooth water, interspersed with numerous islands, distant about a quarter of a league from each other. It is pleasant to witness the swimming of herds of cows from island to island. Our hunters often intercept their path, as they return to firm land, and place themselves at the landing places, conducting them to death at the most desirable spot. On the 25th and 26th, we advanced sixteen leagues into the lake, and fairly enter it. We have never remarked any thing more beautiful. It borders on the sublime. At times the scenery is even frightful. Lofty islands and huge rocks piled up like towering citadels, covered with cedars and pines, va- riegate the prospect. On the 27th, we passed most of the islands, and water alone was visible on every side. In the evening we met a band of Seneca hunters. We Avere both greatly surprised at meeting, but to relieve our embarrassment, they invited us to a feast of corn and beans, cooked in the beautiful clear water of the country. This food, simple as it was, and seasoned with brotherly love, was delicious. 29th. We arrived at Ontiahantague (Oswego). We received there a warm welcome ; every one crowded to see us. Ontia- hantague, is a large river whicli discharges into Lake Ontario; MISSIONS. 143 jrives its source lands, all propo ' ' ' 1 ^ f ™ ""'° ^'^'"" »<• '»- fish are oLZ;„ I , "' "'■"''■ ^'"''°™ kinds of " """S''' '" ''I'mdance at all seasons of the vear T„ spring, as soon as the snow is melte.l it i,f„l „f n ^ ,, «.T. sueceed the™, afterwards the i ^.t" if:^,'^:^, Ml, SIX inches bn:», of exeell„„t « I ^ ™' '■-.■5„c.V and at th end f I vV """ "■"" "^"^ *° npo, stn,,eo„ are often" «!, Se't" "17 hTrt"? were here received wit], +l,« *. V^'''J'i 1- 7 • "^ "'^'•'*^y""- -I layers were openlv peiioimed, a ciil)in bcmr^ too sitimU f^ ^ ^ • , I^^^^v 17 *i 1 1 , . " sin.iJl to contain them Tho H.ons, Of the upper e^l^.-^rd it:, ^^nefe^ m account of tlieir aversion to the f.ith 1. "\^tiacted, .yi^'I^l^ listening attentively to tl.e^ .f ' i- ' '' '^'^'^" '' is it that affliction X" f Xl . ^ T" r "'""" ' '' ''^' I'uii ^ixcb a iiniit understandino- Tim tt-..^! met here Otohenha, the host of the 1-ito F ^" ,/^'' *^*'^^^'' tI)A T7.,fi /-I . ^•^'' "1 "-"^ late leather Gamier -md 1"C Father Carrea.,, in the nation of Petu,, (Tobaoe ' ,T «as so overjoyed at the siW.t of the v7lL ,uT,' «ot speak, ami was obliged To delav to , ' ' ''" """''' lation of his adventures? whht' l^ <' """• """ ''■ «-|io Iia,l solicited a dwelli,,,, place , "°™"'^' «ely overtaken by the oZ^.^ ^r"] '"J,™ "'"■<"■'"- ■-anddistribiitoiinion/trhi;?;:!;;:^::;'^'-^^^^ One of the women having lee„ secretly advised, that the 144 ONOxNDAGA IS'iIilt f " 11 relatives of liim for whom she had been given, wished to burn her, fled into the woods with her child, after Rene had bap- tized it. What is not less sad, he related the death of that famous Martha Gahatio, of well known sanctity, (lod willed to try her severely. Ho said that during the past year, being at war with the nation of the Cat and with the Onondagas, having taken and sacked a small village, he found among the slain, the good Reno and Sondiouaeren and his daughter, among the captives, the same Martha of whom we speak. They had mutually encouraged each other, had kept their promises to God, and died in a full profession of the faith, llie poor INIartha, who could not well follow the victors, because of lame- ness and a little child which she could scarcely carry, was cruelly burned on the road. Two of her children had escaped the fury of the Onondagas, but they gave us no tidings of them. It was truly pitiful to hear these poor people relate the story of their captivity. Several of them had been killed by those who had at first spared their lives. A slight dis- obedience or sickness, was sufficient to obtain for them a blov/ of the hatchet. On the yOth, avc prepared to go by land to Onondaga, After mid day, we met several Oneida warriors, who were going beyond the rapids, against a people called Nez Pcrce^, (Pierced Noses) Atondutochan was their leader. He was at Montreal on the second embassy sent by the town of Oneida, He was a well made and an elotpient man. He entreated us to remain a day or two longer, that he might learn our pur- pose. On the 31st, these warriors all assembled, and after the ordinary ceremonies, at such a meeting, Father Chaumonot addressed Atondutochan, and told him in the first place, that he rejoiced to see this great man, whose voice had been so liigh at Montreal that its echo still resounded there. 'secondly ; that the subject which led him to this country, was to fulfill a promise he had previously made, to speak to all tlic same language, as all are warmed by the same sun, and all MISSIONS. 146 have the same heart, so all should henceforth be brothers. At these two articles the usual acclamations were heard ; all manifested in their countenances, the joy which this discourse gave them, and because it had been reported that peace had been concluded between the French and Mohawks, without comprising the Algonkins and Ilurons in it. The Father added thirdly, that he came to make and conclude a good and universal peace. In the fourth place, he made a present of fifteen hundred porcelain beads, to invite them to treat well the two French- men, among those whom they were about to combat • and finally, he prayed to the Maker of all, to take care of his en- terprise. We had resolved to make him a valuable present in order to quiet his soldiers ; but we learned secretly, that ue should have been certainly refused, because they were strongly moved at the death of some of their people, whom they wished to avenge at any price whatsoever. After the Father had spoken for half an hour, the chief commenced his response. The whole party, as if by concert, commenced to sing in a man-^r like a full chorus. The first song said, that they were all now engaged for the day in thanking the Father for the good news he had brought them. The second song was to congratulate him for his favorable voyage, upon his safe arrival. They sang a third time, to light a fire to the Father that he miglit take possession of the country. The fourth song, united us as a band of brothers. The fifth, threw the Iiatchet to the bottom of the waters, that peoce might reign m all their borders. The sixth song, was to make the French masters of Ontiahantague. It was here that the chief invited the salmon, the " barlme- and otlier fishes to cast themselves into our nets, and to fill this river only for our benefit. He told the fishes, that they would be very fortunate to terminate their lives thus honorably. He named all the fi.hes of this river, even to the very smallest, and apostrophized them all in his peculiar vein of eloquence, lie added many other things, which caused all our people to laugli. The seventh 19 146 ONONDAGA. '< i song was still more agreeable to us. It was to open their hearts and ask us to read there, their satisfaction upon our arrival. At the end of these songs, they made us a present of two thousand porcelain beads. Thereupon the Father rais- ing his voice answered, that the kindness of his words con- tinually became more affecting. That before this time, the shores of Lake Ontario only had listened to his voice ; but henceforth, it should fly beyond the greatest of all the lakes, and would roll like thunder over all France. This pleased the chieftain, as well as all his people. They afterwards invi- ted us to a feast, which closed the evenins;. On the first of November, we set out overland for Onondaga. We met here a good Huron Avoman, named Theresa Oiouha- ton. This poor woman, luiving heard of the arrival of the French, came three leagues distant from her dwelling to greet the Father on his passage. Her joy Avas great at seeing the ^^ Noir llob':^'' (priests) once more before she died. The Father asked her if the little child she held in her arms had been baptized, and by whom. She answered that she herself had baptized it in these Avords : Jesus have mercy on my child. I baptize thee my child, that thou mayest be happy in heaven. Thereupon the Fatlier confessed and consoled her. We pass- ed the night on the bank of the stream, after having made five good leagues. We departed thence at dawn, on the 2d of November, and after advancing six or seven leagues, we pitched our camp, at the same sign, under the same au- spice, Avhich had always shone upon our journey, the evening star. On the 3d, we left before the sun had risen. The Frencli met upon their road, the sister of that Theresa of whom we have spoken, Avho related her misfortunes with many tears. I had, said she, two children in my captivity ; but alas, they have been massacred by their captors, and I have every day to dread a similar fate. Death stands before me continually. We had to console her, and afterwards to confess her, then leave her quickly, to follow our guides, who took us this day MISSIONS, 147 to Tethiroguen.* This is a river which issues from a river called Goienho.f Oneida village, one of the Iroquois nations, IS above this lake, which in its construction makes the river Tethiroguen, and afterwards a rapid of steep descent, called Ahaouetc^.t As soon as we had arrived at this river, the most notable among a good number of fisherman who sojourned here, came to pay us their respects, and afterwards conducted us to their best cabins. On the 4th of November, we advanced about six leagues, still on foot, and burdened with our little baggage. We passed the night about four leagues from Onondaga. On the r,th of November, 1G5.5, as we continued our route, a chieftain of note, called Gonatcregon, met us a league from his cabin, welcomed our arrival, and kindly invited us to re- mam with his people. He placed himself at the head of our little company, and conducted us in state to within a quar- ter of a league of Onondaga, where the '^ Anciens" of the country awaited us. Having seated ourselves beside them they set before ns their best provisions, especially pumpkins baked in the ashes. While we were eating, an aged chieftain named Okonchiarennen, arose, requiring silence, and among other things, said, we were very welcome ; we were much wish- ed for, and had been expected for a long time. Since the young men, whose element is war, had themselves demanded and procured peace, it was for the aged men no more to han- dle arms, but to ratify peace and embrace it with all their hearts, wliich they sincerely did. It was the lAIohawks only, Avho wished to darken the sun, rendered so splendid by our approach, and who were disposed to fill the sky with clouds, at the same time that we dispersed them ; but that all the ef- forts of these envious men would fall to the ground, and that at the last tlioy would agree with us, that we should soon take pos- session of the lands assigned us, and enter and enjoy our new liomes in perfect security. After having delivered this dis- course, which was spoken in apparently a studied manner, the * Oneida IWvcr. t Chittunango Creek. Gastoirs R ifts, town ofClay. 148 ONONDAGA, Father replied, that his speech was as a most agreeable bever- age to U8, wliich took away all the fatigue of the journey. That he came on the part of Onnontio to satisfy their demands and he doubted not they Avould be fully satisfied when they had learned his commision. The whole people listened with attention and ailmiration, delighted to hoar a Frenchman speak their language so well. After this, our chief, Avho had lately spoken, arose arid gave a signal, and conducted w through long fdos closely ranged, to see us pass through their midst; Ave were prescniid with fruits and favored with happy greetings on all sides, until we arrived at the principal villaf^c. whose streets were very clean and the roofs of the cabin.'* seemed covered with children. We were ushered into a spa- cious cabin which had p.- viously been prepared for us, and as many as could entered v.ith us. After resting a short time. we were invited to a })ear feast. We excused ourselves be- cause it was Friday. Tills did not prevent us however from being treated all the rest of the day, to fish and beaver tail in various cabins. Very lale in the evening, the '•'' Anciems' held a council in one cabin. One of them having welcomed us in behalf of the nation, made us two presents, one of five hundred porcelain beads, with which to wipe our eyes, still wet with the tears shed for the murders which had occurred among us this year ; and as grief takes away the voice, (ob- serving that it was weak on our arrival.) he added a second present of five hundred porcelain beads, to strengtlicn our stomach and clear the phlegm from our throats, so as to re- store our voice, very clear, very free, and very strong. The Father thanked tliem kindly for their good Avill, and told them that Onnontio and Achiendase* had their eyes turned towards the coast of Onondaga, to see from Quebec the state in which we were, and that he made us a present of two thousand beads to cause them to open the door of their cabin, where they had lodged us, so that all the Frenoli might see the good treatment which we received there. The kindly countenan- * GoverB'T of Canada, and tlie French Superior of Misf:ions. MISSIONS, 140 ces which they exhibited, and the beautiful mats they, , , , - — ""'^y gave us to rest upon, showed they were .lolighted with the compliment On the morrow, the sixth of November, wo were invited by day light to several feasts, which la.s^ed all the mornin^ This did not Inuder the Father from .jroing to see the sick, who proniiscd to ask for instruction in case they regained their health. On the seventh day, Sunday, was hel.l a secret council of littecn chiefs, where the Father was called, after havin<' wor- shiped God, to meet twenty persons, avIio presented 'them- selves It was told the French in this assembly, first, that Agocluendaguete, who is the great king of all the country and Onnontio were equally firm and constant in their decisions' and that nothing could sever the bond which held them so firmly united. Second, that they should send their most vi- gorous youth to bring back the Huron ambassadors, who had come to treat for peace with us. Thir.l, they prayed that Onnontio should be informed, that althougi, some of their peo- ple should be ill-treated or even killed by the Mohawks, that should not prevent the alliance they so much desired, and that It should be the same on the part of Onnontio, if injuries were inflicted on the French. Fourth, having learned that Onnon- tio would be best gratified to hear that they had erected a chapel for believers this very autumn, to please him, they would provide it as soon as possible. At this sentence, the father having taken their words, told them, that they had found the secret of taking captive the Governor's heart, and of gaining him entirely. All, at once uttered a cry of appro- val, upon which the council concluded. In the evening, speaking familiarly to the Father, they asked him to tell them sometlm.g about France. The Father, finding so fair an occasion of making an impression, repre- sents to them that Franco had formerly been in the same error in which they were, but that Golioiild not at least be the first to condemn the zeal of these Fatliers, and make them blacker than their own robes, by scandal. They should leave this sort of reviling to the low populace, always ill informed of what is going on, whose igno- vanco is a sufficient excuse for calumny. But let us act well and leave evil speakers to themselves, since calumny alone, 'vill make cemc> ■ for virtue. They have written us from France, that they could no longer continue the great expenses which we incur in these new enterprises. We give our labors, our sweat, our blood and our lives, to them. For want of assistance, wc shall be compelled, to relinquish a station so advautagous to the faith, and the preservation of the country. J:? » IMAGE EVALUATION TEST TARGET (MT-3) / O 1/ /C^#. ^ 1.0 I.I 1.25 |50 "'^^ 2.0 U lllill.6 A % *^^ /S c?/^^ i'hote)graphic Sdences Corporation 23 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580 (716) 872-4503 5 166 ONONDAGA. J*! 'it'".- „. Those who persecute us will not be the richer, and God will be less glorified. Let us turn again to the presents. ^ The Father Joseph Chaumonot, afterwards rising, explained eight or ten presents, made to soften the regret for the death of several chieftains, and to cause a revival of the faith in the bosoms of the children and friends, of some of our most de- voted Christians, men and women, who had lately passed from earth to heaven. He united the Algonkins and Hurons in his presence, so as to make but one heart, one mind, and one people,^ of all those nations. He savl aloud that Onondaga, being like the parliament of the whole country, and Agoch- iendaguete being the most renowned chief in all these countries, Achiendase,as the mouth of Onnontio, joined himself to Agocli- iendaguete, (forming a union of tAvo governments,) that he might assist him to rebuild the fallen houses, to resuscitate the dead, to sustain what was in good order, and to defend the country against disturbances of the peace. While the Father explained all these things in detail, admiration and acclama- tions arose from all the people, who were delighted to see us so well acquainted with their mode of procedure. He made a present, in token of thanks, because they had shared with Onnontio in the spoils they had taken from their enemies, having sent to him two children, whom they had captured and carried off from the nation of the Cat. He made two other presents, one in token of gratitude for our courteous reception in their country, and their earnest invita- tions, and the other, to cause them to put the canoe in the water and carry news of us to Quebec. At last the Father raising his voice and becoming more animated, exclaimed, it is not for trade that you see us appear in your country. Our pretensions are far higher, your pel- tries would never cause us to undertake. a journey of so much labor and danger. Keep your beaver, if you find it profita- ble, for the Dutch ; even those which should accidentally fall into our hands, would be employed for your benefit.' ^\c seek not perishable things. It is for the faith that we have I MISSIONS. 167 quitted our country-it is for the faith, that we have aban- doned our parents and friends-it is for the faith, that we have crossed the wide ocean— it is for the faith, that we have left the great ships of the French, to embark in boisterous waters, m jour little canoes-it is for the faith, that we have left our splendid mansions, for your bark cabins— it is for the faith, that we deprive ourselves of our natural nourish- ment, and the delicacies we might enjoy in France, to eat your provisions, which the dumb animals of our country would loathe ; and taking in his hand a beautiful belt of beads skil- fully wrought, he continued; it is for the faith, that I hold in my hand this rich present, and that I open my mouth to remind you of the word, which you gave us, when you went (loTvn to Quebec, to conduct us to your country. You have solemnly promised us you would lend your ear to the words of the Great God ; they are in my mouth, listen to me ; I am only his organ. He sends to warn you by his messengers, that His Son became a man for your love. That this man^ the Son of God, is the prince and master of men. That He has prepared in the heavens, endless pleasures and eternal delights, for those who obey his commandments, and that He kindles horrible fires in hell, for those who will not receive His word. His law is mild ; He forbids us to do any wron- either upon property, or upon life, or upon woman, or upo^'n the reputation of our neighbor. What if thou deniest God ^\hosoever thou art, whether an Onondaga, a Mohawk, a feeneca, a Cayuga, or an Oneida, know that Jesus Christ, who animates my heart and my voice, will precipitate thee, one day into hell. But I beseech you prevent this misfortune, by yielding to conversion ; be not the cause of thine own loss obey the voice of the Lord. On the 27th of July, we returned to the shores of the lake ^vhere a large party of our French, have long and faithfully worked m preparing us a dwelling, which we shall call St. Mary s of Genentaha. On the 30th, the eve of St. Ignatius day, the chiefs of Onon- daga came to visit us and made us several presents, to bind i'i I' 11 168 ONONDAGA, US 80 Strongly, tliat henceforward we should bo but one people, and to warn uh thut wo must not trust the OneidaM ; tliat this nation was fraudulent in actions and deceitful in words, and they prayed ua to fortify ourHolves well, and to render our fortress capable of recoiviufr them and sheltering them from their enemies, in case of necessity. That they were going to take the axe and build us a canoo, which was to carry iKnvs of ua to Quebec. The month of vVugust was a time of labo- rious exercise for us in every nuinner. We had built a chapel at Onondaga, part of our Fathers having remained there, the others held conversation among the cabins. They hardly ceased from nior.iing till night to preach, teach catechism, baptize, teach prayers and answer questions, from all (juartcrs,' these good people showed so much inclination for the faith! The French who were a,t St. Mary's, of Lake Genentaha, per- formed all the trades of a city, to get us lodged and preserve us amidst these ))arbarians. None of this was the work of frolic or amusement. We had to labor much, sleep little, lie upon the ground, sheltered only by miserable barks, eat only a httle meat, without bread or wine, or other seasoning {'"ra- gout") than hunger. We were tormented both night and day by musquitoes, {'' Manngouws") which there assailed us on every side. All this, combined with the change of climate and the great labor of the journey, so injured our constitu- tions, during the greatest heat of summer, that we all f.;ll sick. It was a pitiful sight to see sometimes as many as twenty, al- most piled upon each other, at a time, and in a country where we had no other help than heaven. The sickness here spoken of, continued till late in the au- tumn, during which a number of the French became dispirited, and sighed for tht groves and vineyards of their native coun- try. At length, health was in a measure restored ; and with its return, the drooping spirits of the colonists in a degree re- vived ; but, owing to the withholding of the necessary sup- plies of provisions for the sustenance of the French, and the requisite quota of articles suitable for presents to the natives, which alone could engage their attention. From this time MISSIONS. 169 forward the mission may be said to languish, and the colony to dwindle away. About this time, a noted Seneca hunter came to visit the Father (Jhaumoiiot, and to offer liim a suit of furs, to keep the warmth of friendship which he had just contracted with him. It has been related to us, that the Dutcli wislied to bring us horges and other things, rejoicing at our settlement in these countries. An aged chief of the Cayugas, an intelligent man, employed in public affairs, came to visit us, on the part of his whole nation, to beg Aahicndnse to grant him the assistance of some of our Fathers, assuring tliem if they would, a chapel should be erected, that the people desired to bo instructed in our creed. The Father Rend Mesnard, and two Frenchmen were sent with him, notwithstanding our great want of laborers. Fatlicr Joseph Chaumonot is to accompany him as far as the Cayugii, towns, and then to pass on to the Senecas, there to found a permanent mission, hoping to reap an abunii.int har- vest, if it pleases God to assist us and preserve us in peace and send us laborers, sufficient for the harvest. At this time, a party of Ilurons, settle at Onondar a, who have previously been instructed in our religion, and who manifest a lively in- terest in everything relating to the faith. We took them at once into our keeping, encouraging and instructing them in the true and lively way. They were of some service to us by their example to the Onondagas ; for they, observing these Christians worthily engaged in the service of God, felt them- selves bound to make more diligent inquiry, after the salva- tion of their own souls. This year also, the Father Le Moyne visits the Mohawks, and revives the mission among them ; an account is given of the progress of the Gospel generally among the Iroquois, their manners and customs, and other details. The succeeding chapter commences with a description of the country as it then appeared. " Relation," 1056-7. Publication of the faith to the Onon- 22 170 ONONDAGA. dagas. For the better understanding of these missions, we say that the exercises are conducted in much the same man- ner and degree of order and decorum, as in European assem- bhes. More than two hundred have been baptized within a short time. Five of the most prominent individuals in the nation are among them ; more than two hundred are the hv- ing stones who comprise the foundations of this church. The liead chiefs were so much engiiged that they became exhorters of the hiw and commandments. It wouhl be de- sirable if thousands of others would follow their virtuous ex- ample. During the latter months of the year 1656, new hopes were awakened in the progress of the affairs of the missionaries at Onondaga, and New France, generally ; but they declined in the former, and linally early in 1658, the mission was broken up, and the colonists dispersed. As Charlevoix gives the most condensed an.l satisfactory account of the abandonment of the Onondaga mission, v,c will follow liim in preference to the Father Paul llagueneau whose delation is before us; an<] while upon the subject of Onondaga missions, we give the his- tory of Charlevoix in full, of the colonizing and Christian- izing the Onondagas. iMoYc jn-occeding, however, as we have not before had much occasion to mention this author, we would state, tliat Peter Francis Xavier de Charlevoix, was a learned Jesuit, famous for his travels and his authentic historical compositions. lie lived to the age of 78 years, and died in 1761, after having traversed a large portion of the continent of America. His writings (in the French language) relating chiefly to this country, were very voluminous, consisting of three large quar- to volumes, of from 500 to 700 pages each. In the vear 1720, he was directed by the king of Franco to visit Canada, and to pay particular attention to the condition, manners and customs of the Indians. He passed up the river St. Law- rence, and through the great lakes to Mackinaw, thence through the Lake Michigan, and the rivers Illinois and Mississippi lo New Orleans. At the end of one of the volumes, he gives a MISSIONS. 171 list of the works and authors consulted for his work, which list contains many works scarcely known and very profitable to aid in the researches of the antiquarian student. Charlevoix, Tome I, page 320 : — It was on account of the great sincerity and regard Avhich the Onondugas appeared to possess in the cause of religion, vhich induced the Governor General to send to them Fathers Cliauinonot and Dablon. The former was of Italian origin, and tlie oldest missionary who was then in New France, where he labored to an extreme old age, with unwearied zeal ; and whore his memory is yet revered. Father Dablon profited by liis arrival in New France, and was not long in establishing for himself a great reputation for wisdom and virtue. The two missionaries set out from Quebec the 19th of September, Kjoo, with the deputies of the Onoudagas, who were sent to invite them, accompanied by a great number of savages of the same nation, and tlioy waited only for the appointed time of their ministry to perform their duties. The chief •>* '' ill rl.f'. if m ONONDAGA. prevail upon him to change his purpose. Fifty Frenchmen "Were selected to form the proposed settlement, and Sieur Du- puys, an oHicer of the garrison, was appointed commandant. Father Francis le Mercier, who had succeeded Father Jcromo Lalleniant, in tiie office of Superior (Jeneral of Missions, ear- nestly desired to conduct in person these missionaries, who were destined to establish the first Iroquois Church, who were the Fathers Fremin, ^lesnard and Dablon. Their departurt' was fixed on the 7th of May, and although the harvest had been indifferent, tlu^y gave to Sieur Dupuys an abundance of provisions for his people to supply him during the year, and enough to soav the land of which they were going to take pos- session. The circumstances of this new enterprise being noised abroad, gave the Mohawks great dislike, and revived in their breasts, their ancient jealousy of the Onondagas. A general council of the nation was called, for the purpose of taking into consideration this momentous affair. It seemed to them as of tlie utmost importance ; and the result was, that tlieir united resources must be put in requisition, to oppose this new establishment. A party of four hundred men wjis imme- diately raised, and orders were issued, eitlior to disperse or annihilate the company of M. Dupuys. They failed however to accomplish their object, and only expended their Avrath upon some straggling canoes, which were plundered, and a j)art of those who conducted them were wounded. After a short stay at Three Rivers and at I\Iontrcal, M. Dupuys left the latter place on tlie eighth of June, and tlic same day fell in Avith a party of Mohawks, whom he plundered as a reprisal for the outrage committed by them. On the 29th of the same month, tow^ards 9 o'clock in the evening, they heard from the camp, a voice of a man com- plaining. The comnninder caused the drums to be beat ; and soon they perceived a savage, who approached as if in great distress. This was the young Huron (of whom I have before spoken) who had escaped from the expedition, to the Isle of Orleans. The skin upon his body was half roasted, and for MISSIONS. 175 seventeen days that he had traveled, ho had taken no other nourishniciit tlmii wild fruits, gathered by the way. The Onondagas who accampanicd the French, gave him a drink, which strengthened him in a short tijne. They gave him at'ter- wiinls, provisions also, and sent him forward to Quebec. The remainder of the voyage Avas very pleasant, except that they suffered very severely from a scarcity of provisions, (if which they had been quite too prodigal. They had calcu- lated considerably on the fisheries and upon the chase, but !iotli these failed ; and the French, who were unaccustomed to fast like the savages, would have perished of hunger, had lint the chiefs of the Onondagas sent them some canoes loaded with provisions. They learned from the same, that a large party of Iro(iuois, from all the villages, and a great number of other savages, awaited their arrival upon the shore of the Lake Genentaha ; and M. Dupuys on his part, prepared him- self to make his entrance into their country as imposing as possible. Before arriving at the place where the savages were wait- ing, ho landed five small pieces of cannon, and made a dis- rharge. lie then re-embarked, and rowing in beautiful order, "iiterod into the lake ; wliere, in less than a (luartcr of an hour, he made two discharges of all his musketry; and judg- ing from all appearances, he was received in the most cordial :in(l respectable manner possible. They wore welcomed with -peechcs, feasts, songs, dances, and with every demonstration •fjoywliich savages were capable of oifering ; in fact nothing '.vas spared on tlic occasion. On the following day, the 12th 'if July, the To Deum was sung at the end of a solemn mass. The chiefs then made presents as they are accustomed to do in making treaties of alliance ; and on the IGth, the French all partook of the sacrament of the Eucharist, with great de- vonon, which was a beautiful example, and made a. great im- pression upon the minds of the savages. The next day, they roiiinicnced the building of cabins, in which to lodge them- selves, and Father Le Mercicr visited the principal village of the Ouondagas, where he was received with great ceremony. m m m i ? 4l I'Mra 8 S ;■« 170 ONON l>A(J A. On llio 'JItli, II ^niml nmnril wiiH ImM, at wliicli FiithorH Mrrricr niul ('Imimionol, ovpliiiiMMl iil lar/^o llif viowH of the l'r«Mi('li, iiinl IfiitltTtMl llu»ir LiikI n-j^mtlM (o llicir now iioigh- Ihmm. |''n(li('r ('liiniiiiniKd H|i(il\tM»r llu> ('liiinlian rcli^idii with i\w HiXWW ( aiul KIIOOOHM, tllUt \w luitl (loUO U|l()|l ll'lH iit'rival in IIiIh villa^o. 'ri\t« mn\r (liiv lilt- il('|»iilics tif lilt' villaj^(< of year lu'lort', ami wliich otuild Mol rontain near all llii»s(> who wish.cij to lu» inslnictcd 111 oui- uivstoncs. Thcro had Ium'ii, tlmin;' tlif month of An- j^usl, i»\c('ssi\(« Ileal, which was llu< oaMiHion ol iiiiich mivoiv siokiK'Ns, Imt l>_v lln> kind atlt savaj^os, nil iho nick woro rt'i'oviMt'd in a short linio. This last mark of iho alVt'clion of iIiomo iicoplo, luM'Humlod tlio more rrcdiiloiis of lh(> h'tfiich to hcliovt', that they foiiM ill all cases rely npoii them. Novertlndess, thos(> who weiv more sagacious, ludieved it iu>eessai'y to provide nt loiust nuaiiist their ineonslaney, and they loiind it in tho end iiiuoli the wisest course to follow their etmnsel, notwithslandiiij; their Jissurances of friendship. It wns thought advisable to hold in restraint the inliahilants of this villajjje, and conseipiently a strong fort was biiill, and all duo eautitni used to prevent SUV prise, and all jnoper diligence exorcised to secure | )re- tectii>n in case of an alarm. Meanwhile supplies from Que- boc were not readilv granted for the sustemnu-e of this colony; suitable articles for jiresents \vert> wanting to draw the niiads of the savages, favorably towards the French. Kvcn the ~ ft nocessarv expenses, were relnctantlv yielded. It was stated • I ft • in reply tv> the demands necessary to sustain the colony, that all the lands of Camula were not enough to contribmc salli- oient t'or so great an outlay of expenses. The Indians iiud- ing the French slow in bestowing presents, and becoming in a il lliiroiiH of tho iHh* (if Orh'iiiiH, who did not foid uHHUiod (if their Hiifet y, took refiij^e at (^iiehi'ir, and in a niouutnt of v('Xiilit»M, had heen iihaiidontMl hy th(> Kreneh, they Hent pri- \nU'\y to the Mohawks, to have? thcMiiHtdveH a(hnitt(!d into their cimtiiii, lo heeonie as one p«'oph^ with them. They had lianlly taken lIiiH Htep h«'loni. they reh'tited ; hut the MohawkH took iluMii at their woni, and Hiunn^^ that thc^y wished to hreak thoir ciifjiil^cnient, t(M»k measures to eompcd th(!iri t(t conform to it. Tliey conniieiMMMl hy h'ttinj^' htose upon them war parties, who iimssncred or curried away nil tiiose who attempted to hsave the coiinlry, iin, they sent to Quehoe thirty aiuliasHiidors. Nothin;^ eoiihl e(|ual the ssed M. de Laiison and tlemaiidtid of him a hear- ill};, in an assemhiy of llin'ons and {''nMieh. The (Jovernor (iciioral haviii"!; consented, the chief of tin; depntation, spoke liist to the lliiroMs and said to lliem : '" My Hrother — tho time has heen when thou hast extended thy arms to entreat me to eonduet (hee into my conntry ; hut evei-y time 1 have [lUt myself in the way of my n turned towards the ({overnor (jieneral, and spoke to him in these wcu'ds : '' Onnontio — raise thy arms and give up thy children, which thou holdest in thy bosom ; for if they should commit any folly it is to be feared, that in punishing them, my blows might fall upon thee. I know," continued he, "that tlie llin-on loves ]>rayer, and that he adores the Author of all things, and that in all liis nccoasitios, he has -■:n^ !■■ ,'- i 1 • l| n% 1 I 1 I! r'f rn fill t ,j ^^1 * 1 H :[ji, I'M 1 III H 178 ONONDAGA. access to him ; I wish to make as much of it. Agree that Ondessonk, who has left me, I know not why, should return to instruct me, and as I have not a sufficient number of canoes to carry so many, do me the favor, to lend me thiiie." He then presented two necklaces and retired. They had much <^', .culty in comprehending what caused M. de Lauson to suf- fer this insolence, at a period Avhen the French had no other enemy but the single canton of the Mohawks. Perhaps he wished to see, before showing his displeasure, in what manner it might :urn the affairs at Onondaga. It is certain he did not show to the Mohawks any resentment, to the haughty speech of their orator ; this was Avell observed by the Ilurons and greatly embarrassed them. The experience of the past. and the conduct of the Iroquois, caused them to fear their ruin would be certain and complete. In this difficulty they were divided, some declaring they would not quit the French, others resolving to give themseb'es to the Onondagas, witli whom they had already formed an engagement. There was only the tribe of " Ours' who kept their word, given to the MohaAvks. These resolutions taken, the council re-assembled and although the Governor General had not taken, it appears any measures to establish his reputation, he yet wished to assist Pore la Moyne, who served as interpreter, who first spoke and said: " Onnontio loves the Hurons,they are hi'- children ; but if they do not hold themselves und'n- his pro- tection, they are of an age to take cave of themselves. He opens his arms and gives them their liberty to go where they wish. As for me, I shall follow them, wherever they go, and if they are with the Mohawks, I shall instruct them how to pray and to adore the Great Spirit. But I dare not hope that thou wilt listen to me. I know Ihee, and am acquainted with thy indocility : but I am pleased with the Hurons. As to the canoes which thou demandest, thou sccst Avell that we have not enough ourselves. Make them, if thou hast not a sufficient number." The chief of the Ilurons of " Oun" took the word and said : " My Brother— I am with thee ; I throw myself with my eyes shut into thy canoes, determined MISSIONS. 179 withal even to die : but I wish to go alone with my house- hold, (" %e,") I will suffer none other to embark with me. If in time the rest of my nation desire to follow, I shall not oppose them ; but I am well satisfied, that they sec in what manner thou wilt treat me." He then tlirew down three belts, which signified that liC engaged the Mohawks to treat him well, and to neglect nothing that would cause him to forget what he had sacrificed, and to facilitate the voyage. The deputies accepted the belts, ^nd appeared well satisfied. They went to work immediately to make canoes, and when finished, they embarked in them with the Huron and Pere la Moyne. A few days after their departure, the deputies of the Onondagas arrived at Quebec, to summon three of the Hurons, who had offered themcelves to them on their word, and were much displeased when they learned that the tribe of " Oi«-6-," had followed the Mohawks. The Hurons made luost unsatisfactory excuses and were much embarrassed. The French were no way desirous of entering into a quarrel with these people, who took so high a stand in the cause of Christianity and the affairs of the new colony. Finally, the Governor General made known to the deputies, that if they failed in respect due to tlieir Father, that a party of Hurons were ready to follow them, and as they did not bear about their persons the equippage of warriors, but the garb of friends and brothers, that the Hurons being desirous of doing things in the right way, they should return with the Onondagas and keep their Avord. To sliow that their words were not deceit- ful, the Hurons visited thciu at Slontrcal and gave them hos- tages. This reply soothed tiie Onondagas, wlio gave a great i'east and returned apparently contented. Notwithstanding these frequent altercations, the dissolution of this body of Christians, on v-hom tlie French had cherished the most lively hopes, ;\nd the hostilities of the Mohawks, caused great uneasiness to the Governor General, and to the missionaries. It is true these received consolation, from the number of conversions which took jdace every day among the people, even among those who had shown a great opposi- I i m iiiiiiiiii > V 'J r 180 ONONDAGA. tion to the Church, and by the examples of grace and virtue ■which they daily saw in their converts. The remembrances of this time are filled with very edifying traits of the fervor of these Christian savages whom we leave with regret. It is thus that the Lord keeps his ministers in continual changes of hope and fear, which nourishes in them two virtues, the most neces- sary to the duties of Apostleship — distrust in themselves, and confidence in Him of wliom they are ministers. The Onondagas arrived in the Isle of Orleans to receive the Hurons, and to carry them with them, as had been previously arrani-ed. Some of the French, and two Jesuits were to uc- company them, but they were much surprised, Avhen on the day of their departure, the Onondagas declared that the Hu- rons alone should embark with them. They relented how- ever, in favor of the French, but still persisted in excluding the two Jesuits, who on their part did not wish to leave theiv converts, were obliged to embark in a canoe which they found upon the bank, without any other provision than a small bai; of corn. This conduct of the Onondagas, for which they were wholly unprepared, augured an unpropitious beginning for the Hurons. Many foresaw the unhappy Ic t which awaited them, and their presentiments were well founded. These un- fortunate Christians had not proceeded far, before they knew they were inevitably lost. A young Avoman avIio liail refused the offer of an Iroquois chief, was shot by the savage ininic- diatcly. As if they had only waited for this signal to re- move the mask, which covered the blackest of their crimes, a great number of the most respectacle Hurons were massacred on the spot. Otliers were regarded as prisoners of war, and some were burned, Avithout knowing beforehand the cause (if such inhuman treatment. A resolution had been formed of putting tue French to the sword. Wo know not how they prevented the execution, but they avoided this d mger only to fall into another, where it appeared to them for a long time that they Avould inevitably perish. The first thing vrhich they learned upon their arrival at Onondaga was, th it a conspiracy had been discovered atiainst th." French. A band of Oneidiu MISSIONS, 181 having gone to the chase near Montreal, surprised three Frenchmen in a secluded place, killed them, and brought their scalps into the village where they Avere divided. This, with other flagrant indications of hostility, were soon given, which left no doubt in the minds of the French, that an effort would be made to destroy their new colony. Monsieur de Aillebout, who commanded at Quebec, in place of M. De Lau- son, who had returned to France, demanded satisfaction for this outrage, and to oblige the nation to render it, he gave orders that they should arrest all the Iroquois in the colony, lie was obeyed, and the first movement Avhich the news of this order caused in the cantons, was to form the most violent resolutions. These were not enforced, however, and they held to those which were formed with more deliberation. Pere le Moyne, who was with the Jlohawks, was entreated to deliver the Iroquois under arrest, under pretence of doing him honor, and of sustaining the offenses of the young men against the French. It was determined to give Father Le Moyne a nu- merous escort, with which to visit Montreal, and then to let loose parties of warriors, who, scattering themselves through the colony, where as soon as they were informed of the liberty of their men, they would pillage and massacre all the French and their allies, whom they should chance to meet. Pere Le Moyne, contrary to their expectations did not go, and their plans were thereby frustrated. But in the month of February of the following year, (1658) numerous bands of Mohawks, Oneidiis and Onondagas were in the field, ready equipped as warriors. It is not necessary so much to give the suspicions of Monsieur Dupuys, as he was very soon informed by a Christian Indian, of all of which they plotted against him. He found himself in great perplexity, and in truth saw no way of extricating himself from his present danger, without much trouble and hazard. To fortify himself and sustain a seige, was only to post- pone his destruction and not prevent it, because he had no as- sistance to hope for from Quebec. lie found himself driven to the necessity of being obliged, sooner or later, to give him- t >H».i 182 ONONDAGA. self iij), or die in fighting, or perish miserably by famine. In order to effect a safe retreat, it became necessary to construct canoes, for they had taken no precaution to secure any in case of emergency. To make them there, in a public manner, was to proclaim their retreat, and thereby render it impossible. Something must be resolved upon instantly, and thus the commander decided. He commenced by sending an express to Monsieur Do Aillebout, to inform him of the conspiracy, and then gave orders to construct, with all possible speed, small light boats, and to hinder the Iroquois from hearing of it, they went to work at them in the store room {^'- grenier') of the house occupied by the Jesuits, which was more secluded than the others, and much larger. This done, he ordered all his men to be in readiness at a moment's warning, and each in- dividual to supply himself with provisions sufficient for the voyage ; and to be careful to avoid giving the least cause of suspicion to the Iroquois. He waited only to take such pre- cautionary measures as might be necessary to embark in so secret a manner, that the savages could have no knowledge of the retreat of tlie French, until they had so far advanced as to have no apprehensions of being pursued, and this they accomplished by the following singular stratagem. A young Frenchman, who had been adopted into one of the principal families of the Onondaga s, and wlio had acquired considera- ble influence with the Indians, arose one morning and pre- sented himself before his adopted father, saying, that during the previous night he had dreamed of one of those feasts where it became necessary for the guests to eat all that was set be- fore them, and he prayed he would make a similar one for all the people of the village, and that he had a presentiment that if so much as one thing were wanting to render the feast such an one as he desired, he should surely die. The savage re- plied, that he should very much regret to see him die, and that he would make this repast immediately, and that he would have the care of making the invitations, that noth- ing should be lacking to make the entertainment precisely what ho desired it should be. Upon this the young man as- MISSIONS. 183 signed the lOtli of March, which also was the clay fixed upon for the (lepnrture of the French. All the provisions which could veil bo spared, throughout the village, were brought forward to grace the entertainment, and all the savages were invited to attend. The feast commenced in the evening, and in order to give the French an opportunity of putting their boats into the water, and to load them for the voyage, without being ob- served, drums and trumpets sounded cheerily around the place of their festivity. The boats being now launched, and all things in readiness for departure, the young man, at a certain signal, which was made to him, said to his adopted father, that he pitied the guests, of whom a great number had asked quarters, that they wished to cease from eating, and give themselves up to repose, adding that he would procure for them all, a most agreeable sleep. He immediately commenced playing upon his guitar, and in less than a quarter of an hour there was not a single Indian who was not sound asleep. He instantly rushed out, joined his companions, who were in waiting, and the little fleet in a moment left the shore. The next morning a number of savages, according to their custom at waking, went to see the French, and found all the doors closed and barred. This novelty, and the profound si- lence which every where reigned throughout the French set- tlement, greatly astonished them. Their first impression was, that the French were at mass, or that tliey might be holding a secret council, but after waiting several hours for a solution of the mystery, they knocked at the doors, but were only answered by the barking of some dogs left by the French. They saw also a number of fowls walking upon the walls, but no person could be seen or heard. They waited very impa- tiently till towards evening, and finally broke open the doors, and great indeed was their surprise on finding all the houses vacant. For a long time the savages were unable to compre- hend how the French, who they really supposed had no ca- noes, had been able to get away, and tlu ; ould not imagine *rf' % t' ' r , '1 'i 1 184 ONONDAGA. t r p li 1 1 m m !M how it was possible for tiiera to effect their escape. It was in truth the first time they had made use of boats upon such voyages ; but if they had been provided with canoes it would not have been possible to have used them, because there was yet large bodies of ice in the rivers, and this circumstance prevented the Iroquois from pursuing them with any hope of success. Monsieur Dupuys did not however believe himself entirely safe, but used such speed, that in spite of contrary winds, which detained them on Lake Ontario, he reached Mon- treal in fifteen days. The joy of deliverance from so great danger, did not however prevent this officer from feeling sen- sibly that a flight so precipitous was a disgrace to the French nation, and regretting that for the want of a little timely as- sistance, he was unable to sustain an establishment of so mucli importance, and of governing a people who acquired the power and right of insulting the French on account of their own weakness. Reception of Pero le Moyne by the Onondagas :— The next autumn they received at Quebec letters from Father le Moyne, dated from Onondaga. This missionary, having experienced many dangers in his journey on account of the Mohawks, the Oneidas, and the Senecas, who had no part in the deputation of the two other cantons. He arrived at last without any serious accident, at two leagues from On- ondaga. He there was met by the great chief of this canton, named Garakontie, who awaited him there with a numerous suite to do him honor. He was much surprised at this event, as it was not the custom of the savages to go more than one league to await the deputies; but his astonishment ceased when he knew to whom he was indebted for this act of po- liteness. Relation of the years 1659-60. Gives a comprehensive view of the country of the Iroquois, and of their customs and cruelties in war. The state of the country of the Algonkins, and of some new discoveries. Of the state of the Huron na- tion and its last defeat, by the Iroquois. The state of the remaining Hurons, after their last defeat. The state of the MISSIONS. 18") mission among the Hurons, and the opening which was made anew, and of the burning of some Iroquois prisoners at Quebec. Relation of the years 1000-01. (Jives an account of the wars which raged with great violence between the French and lro(|uois. The theatre of cruelty and rapine, Avas in the vi- cinity of Montreal, whither the Iroquois had carried the war. The French had suffered great distress, not only by the rava- ;fos of war, but by pestilence and famine. A large number of prisoners of the French had been taken, many of whom ^uftbrcd all the excruciating pains of savnge torture, crowned hy (loath itself. Several had been sj)ared this refined ordeal (if suffering, and although prisont/s of war to a savage people, were permitted to enjoy a good degree of liberty. It is said, tliere were at this time at Onondaga, not fewer than 'thirty Frenchmen. These captives by the assistance of some pious Onondagas, relics of the former mission, and some of the Hu- lons, who, since the conquest, had taken up their abode there, liiul converted a spacious cabin into a chapel, where they re- gularly assembled to say mass ; and, through all the wars be- tween the French and Iroquois, some persons Averc at Onon- daga, Avho kept up the worship of (Jod, and kept alive for a series of years, a spirit of Christianity, and an interest in the faith. This Ilelation gives an account of a conference for peace between the French and some of the Iroquois. Of the establishment of a new mission among the Killiste- nous, called that of St. Francis Xavier, towards the North Sea, on Hudson's Bay, and a journal of the first visit of the French to that quarter, and the dangers of the road, and sundry let- ters to and from Father Le Moyne. Also a marvellous ac- count of the flight of some French prisoners, who had escaped from the Iroquois, and other accounts of captive French, and savages. Relation 1001-02, by Father Jerome Lallemant. Gives a continuation of the wars with the Iroquois, and of various mur- ders. The wintering of the Pere Pierre Balloquet, with the Montagnais and the Algonkins ; also the Avintering of the Father Le Moyne in the country of the Superior Iroquois, 24 .-. if 186 ON ONI) A (J A ' it 'J (Senecas, Ciiyuga.s) which rehitcs principally tho cruelties of the Iroquois towards the French, the torture of prisoners and the persecutions of the Christians and the Church. Tho re- turn of Father Lc Moync, the deliverance of eighteen French captives, of several murders of the Gaspee savages, and others called " Papinuchionetkhr Relation, lOOi^MJ-'}. Describes certain inctoorological phe- nomena, tho grout oartluiuako of 100;}, and tho solar eclipse of September in tliat year. liclation, l<;(i:M. Treats of the missions among tho IIu- rons, Algonkins and Five Nations, and the war between the Mohawks, and the Moliegans and Abena(|uis. It gives an ac- count also of an embassy which the Irocpiois sent to the French to conclude a poaco, being alarmed at the preparations of the latter against tJiom. Relation, lOlU-f,. Gives an account, of the arrival of Monsieur I)e Traci in Now France. His reception by the savages of Canada ; his negotiations with the Iroquois ; also of the arrival of the Superior Algonkins at Quebec, and the mission of the Father Claude AUoucz, and of the first forts, constructed on tlie rivers of the Iroquois ; desci-iption of their country, and the roads thither. Journal of the second vo} age of a, Father of the Society of Jesus, to tho Lake St. Eavnabo, continuation of the wars with the Iroquois, and of their defeat at the Lac " Puizonafiami " called Lake St. John ; particulars regarding comets and si^ns which appeared at Quebec, and in that neig]il)orhood ; cir- cumstances upon tho arrival of the vessels from France ; the king interfering with the rights of Carignansalieres and a let- ter of the Mother Superior of the Hospitaliors Order of Nuns, at Quebec. Relation 1005-'G, by Pore Jerome Lallomant : There is supposed to be but one copy of this volume in the United States or Canada, and this in possession of J. Carter Brown, Esq., Providence, R. L It contains but three chap- ters. But many interesting particulars of the expeditions of the French in IGGO. Alludes to a colony formed at Ononda- MISSIONS. 187 ,,.^ — (lr.4cii)»os tlie oxpodition led by T)e Cnnrcclles in January iifiiinst the Oiieidas and Mohawks, in the course of which five humhTd men marched on snow-shoes from Quebec to Scho- noctiidy and 1)ack, a distance of three hundred leagues. The (itlicr commanded by Monsieur do Traci, then an octogenari- an, and proceeded in September following against the Mo- hawks. Chapter 2d treats of the Huron, Algonkin and Pa- pinakioises missions. Chapter M gives an account of the wars and treaties of peace between the French and Iroquois, and mentions a letter of the Mother '' Supcrieur llospitalicres," nuns of (.^lebec and New France, dated 3d Oct., IGGG, which is not here published. Relation IGGG, 'G7, by Pe>e Francis Lc Mercier: — Upon the state and condition of Canada for the last two voars; of the journey of Perc Claude Allouez in the country of the Outaouacs. On the arrival of the missionai'ies at L'ance th St. Ki^prit^ called ChagouaviH/cv;/. General Council of the nations in the country of the Outi'.ouacs. Of some of the superstitions and of the false gods of the country. Continu- ance of the niissi(jn de St. Eaprit in the Lac de Traci. a\Iis- sion of the Tionnontuteheronnous. The mission of the Ou- taouacs, Kiakakoumas and Outaona Simar/oue. The mission of the Foutconatamiouec, and those established among other tribes of Indians called Ous aki Oiickout, Agamivuck^ IlU- vmiec, Nadout'sioiu'k, Killutinoucc, Xipis IriniemH, and the voyage of the Father Claude Allouez to Quebec, and his re- turn to the Outaouacs, and to the mission of Lac St. John ; the re-establishment of the Iroquois missions ; recital of the wonders of the Church of St. Annie of the little " Cap Coste (Je Beau pray Nouvellc France.'' Relation IGGT, 'G8, by Pdre F. Le ^Mercier :— After a " resume" of the advantages derived from the mis- sions among the Five Nations ; we have in this volume the French names of several missionary posts among the Mo- hawks, Oneidas, Onondagas, Cayugas and Senecas. Refer- ence is also made in it to the drov/ning of Arent A'^an Curler in Lac Champlain on his way to visit Gov. de Traci. In ■M f¥ 188 ONONDAGA. conclusion, it contains a letter from Monsieur do Petrea, first Bishop of Quebec, on tiie state of the Church, and an account of the death of the Jlcv. Mere Catharine. As this Relation con- tains many things relative to Onondaga, wo again resume, and insert somewhat at large. The Fathers once again made strenuous eftbrts to re-establish the Christian Church anioncr the Mohawks, but owing to the dissolute habits of these peo^ pie, and their constant hatred of the French, the mission was not eminently successful. This year, KiOT, the mission of St. Francis Xavier was established among the Oneidas. Father Jacques Bruyas, having arrived among the Mohawks, in com- pany with Fathers Frcmin and Pieron, separated from tlioni in order to pass towards the Oneidas' village, which is the second nation of the lower Iroquois ; the least numerous in- deed, but the proudest and most insolent of all. We arrived there in the month of September, KJOT, to lay the foundation of a new Church, which Providence had destined to be es- tablished hero. I cannot better begin my narrative than by relating what has passed this very day, in which I have had the consolation of saying the holy mass, for the first time in my little chapel, which has just been finished by the hands of our Iroquois themselves. I hope that the feast of the glorious Archan^re] St. Michael, will bring a good omen {'■' ainjure') for us, be- cause he is the prince of the Church. I trust he will take especial care of this one, which is but newly born, and give it protection and increase. Next follows the account of the establishment of a new mission at Onondaga, styled that of St. John the Baptist. We follow the locations in the order of our chapters, for after the nation of Mohawks and that of Oneida, between the south and west, Ave meet Onondaga, a large village, which is the centre of all the Iroquois nations, and where every year a sort of State's General council is held, to consider the differences which may have risen amongst them during the course of the year. Their policy in this is very wise, since their preserva- tion depends upon their union. As it is very difficult amon'^ MISSIONS. 189 a people, where the most unlimited license in every thing pro- vails with impunity, especially amou^ the young men, ko it seems necessary that soinothing should keep them in restraint, that nothing may occur capable of causing a rupture, and of producing discords among them. Each year they hold a general usseml)1y at Onondaga, where all the deputies of the other nations meet to make their com- plaints, and receive the necessary satisfactions, by mutual presents, by which they best keep on good terms with each iithcr. On this account it is, that amongst all the Iroquois missions we shall find here that with which wo have most cause to 1)0 pleased. IJesidcs, as we have before said, Onon- (la<'ii, first of all, received the light of the gospel, and this may pass for the most ancient Church of the Iro((uois. Providence has taken a favorable occasion to create, or rather to re-establish in its first estate, the (Christianity which was once tndy fiourishing there, and which still would be if the treachcrios of some of those barbarians had not forcibly driven off the Fathers, some ten years since, througli the war ivliich they then carried on against the French. Father Ju- lian Gamier, having gone up in the course of last summer to Oneida, to labor there, conjointly with Father Bruyas, for the salvation of those people, found himself obliged by every mo- tive of charity, to proceed as far as Onondaga, which is but a short journey distant. He was there received with every testimony of cordiality, affection and benevolence, which could be Avishcd for from a people who although barbarians, were strongly affection ed towards our Fathers, so much so that they liad committed a gentle violence upon him to prevent his re- turning to his post, undertaking to satisfy him in all things lie should desire of them. As he had declared to them that he could not remain alone and without a chapel, Garakontie, that famous captain of whom we have before spoken in preceding Relations, resolved to gratify him to the utmost of his wishes. In fact in a few tlays he built a chapel, and immediately after undertook a voy- age to Quebec to visit the Governor of Canada, who had long 4 % r 5 ' 1,' I ^l %ki Nir 11)0 ONONDAGA. -• I' I doflircd to 806 this grcHt nn.l good man, so ohVi^mif towards the French. One principal object of liis vinit was, to take away with him some of the Fathcri., whom ho wished to con- duct into his own country. In order bettor to .succeed in his ombassy, ho tnkes with him the four principal nu-u of the villnRo, who represent the principal Caiuilics o[' which it is composcl. With this com- pany he arrived at (.>uel)ec, on the L'Oth of last Ai.^'ust, whore having appeared before the Governor and Intendant, lu^niade five presents, which were to be the interpreters (,f five speech- es whi.-h he hrou-ht in behalf of his whole nation, (iura- kontio goes on to niak(> and explain liis presents, first, how- ever, he speaks to the French Governor as follows : *' I for- meriy boasted, to have done for the French nation what no frien.l among us had over done for another, having ransomed more than twenty-six of their people fr.nn the hamis of those who would certainly Imve burned them, had they not been liberated by my hand. But now I dare boast no longer for what r have done in this respect. Since you, Onnontio, have y the Andastes." Father Gonneau, upon entering Onondaga, said, it was Onnontio, who had commanded him on his departure from Port-R;.ya\ ^o visit our poor nation, and see the condition it M I H S I O N H , 191 was in. This courteHy 1ms ho glatMencd our lioarts, that wo have lavisiiod upon him many cnchnirmontH, ami have en- treattMl him not to leave us. He liaHaj^reod to thi.s, provideil we wouhl huihl for him a chapel, and seek out a companion for him. Wo have now done botli, the chapel was completed two days after his ttrrivul, and now behold us here, first to thank you, because you have remembered us, and after this, we ask of you a priest, ('' Noir robe,") and also that you will ;'ivo us a hunter. You cannot doiiijt my fidelity. I pray you to believe, that all our nations, will henceforth live in the terras which they have proiuised rhe great Onnontio. Do not listen to the fugi- tive llurons, Avho wish to make you distrustful. We have never, never held the ^^ Lonps" as our enemies, vet they slay us. Therefore cause the voice of Onnontio to resound in their country, that they may no longer infest the roads, which we keep open in order to visit each other. If you do not, they will proceed to kill you, as well as us. After the chieftain had thus spoken, he was answered in as many words, accompanied by five presents. The answers wore given, on the 27th of August, 1(;)(J8, to the words of the Iro(iuois, through the nation of Onondaga brought by the ^•I'eat cliieftaln Garakontic. The French iigree Avith the nations, and are assured that they are rightly esteemed and highly regarded, on every oc- casion, and cannot doubt the truth of the Avords of the great chief. Thus has it given a testimony of its pleasure, and marked its gratitude to thee, for thy good offices which are esteemed meritorious since they are sustained, by the most exemplary conduct. We hope that time Avill never cause your sentiments to vary, and that thou wilt ins])ire thy brothers, :i '^ ^'y children to keep their faith inviolably, towards the French, since thou perceivest in them, such good feelings of compassion and clemency, and art persuaded, tiiat being able to destroy thy brothers and children, they have had the good- ness not to do so. Let the tliought be foi-gotten then — only cherished by some inconsiderate youths, that if the French '.'# '>! »k, ■ij^' mw wt I 1 Jii % m 11 III 11>2 OiNONDAGA. had not destroyed the village of Oneida, it was because tliey could not, or dared not. Make them understand, that even if there were no troops liere at present, capahle of such an en- terprise, tliat great Onnontio, called King Jiouis, is so powerful and so jealous of the respect, which his children owe him, that he could send here twenty times as many troops as there arc hero at present, upon the sliglitest information, that any of the Iroquois, should have done the least injury, not only to his own subjects, but also to such of the savage nations us are under his })rotection, and who have recognized him its their sovereign, as thou hast done for the Five Nations, TIio interest which the French have taken, expressed by tears of grief, for thy brothers slain by the Andastes, shows the fath- erly tenderness the king lias towards thee, as his ehild, and the gratitude, wliieli thou sliowest for the favor which he has done thee, will oblige him to continue them o?i every occasion. Thus always pursuing the course of testifying gratitude for benefits received, liecause it is the surest nu'thod of preserv- ing his good will towartls thee, ami to perpetuate his favors. As this distinguished chieftain figures largely in the Onon- daga mission, and seems also to have been a great as well av a good man, we deem it not inappro])riate to give his charac- ter in the language of the lli;-torian Charlevoix, who says (Tome I., page •5')^.) (Jarakontie was by birth and educii- tion a savage. With the many excellent qualities with which by nature he was endowed, he was enabled to elevate himself to the highest place in his nation. He possessed a noble nat- ural nninner with great afiability, a disposition of much swcct- 7iess, a superior genius, with mueli integrity and ujtrightiic.ss of character. His braveiy in Avar, liis dextrous dijiloniacy. his lively spirit in council, had acquired f^r him the greatest esteem in his nation. His most comuKin employment was, ti' moderate the violent resolutions of the national council, and to cultivate peace with the French, which he sincerely wished to preserve, lie had given to the French the most sincere and indubitable proofs of his aifection, in recovering from the hands of tlie English a great number of prisoners, and all MISSIONS. 198 itioiis. Tlic those who were actually captives in his own canton. And in the other cantons many were under the greatest obligation to him for their lives and liberty. After thus describing the chiiraotor of this illustrious chief the same author gives us (Tome i. page 427) the following account of his Baptism. Through the pruishop who was present, lie conjured him to receive him among the children of God, ^vithout delay. Every thing seemed to encourage the prelate to grant to so illustrious a proselyte, that which he asked for with so much earnestness,— Apostle as he had been, before declaring himself a Christian. J le had always seemed to take as much at heart in the establishment of Christianity in his nation, as the missionaries themselves, and the whole colony '.vas always under great obligation to him. Uesides all this, there was nothing which Avas bettor calculated to give credit m\ character to our religion, among tlio nations of this con- tinent, than to render their deputies witnesses of the conver- sion ■ a, man, so generally esteemed. The Bishop therefore, made no objection, to admitting this illustrious proselyte, to the bosom of the Church. He knew him to be sufficiently instructed, and he baptized him himself. The Governor Gen- eral insisted on being his God-Father, and Mademoiselle de Bouterou(i, daughter of the Intendant, was his God-Mother. B,. 1* ' I 194 ONONDAGA. From the former, he received the name of Daniel, which was his own name. Nothing was omitted to give celebrity to this ceremony— all the deputies of the nations were assistants and witnesses, and after the exercises, all were regaled profusely. It was to this great chief, that the French, were under great indebtedness for the establishment about this time, of a colony in the country of the Onondagas. This colony was supposed to have been located on the Butternut creek, about one mile south of Jamesville. The circumstances and facts relating to it, were taken froui a Jesuit's Journal, and from the sachems of Onondaga. As the history of this colony is re- lated almost solely on the authority of the late Dewitt Clinton, being part of a discourse delivered before the New- York His- torical Society, we give it in his own words. "From the Jesuit's journal, it appears that in the year 1666, at the request of Garakontie, an Onondaga chieftain, a French colony was directed to repair to his village, for the purpose of teaching the Indians the arts and sciences, and endeavor, if practicable, to civilize and christianize them. We learn from the sachems, that at this time the Indians had a fort, a short distance above the village of Jamesville, on tlie banks of a small stream near ; a little above which, it seems the chief, Garakontie, would have his new friends set doivn. Ac- cordingly they repaired thither and commenced the labor, in ^vhich being greatly aided by the savages, a few months only were necessary to the building of a small village. This colony, remained for three years in a very peacea- ble and flourishing condition, during Avhich time, much addi- tion was made to the establishment, and among others, a small chapel in which the Jesuit used to collect the barbarians, and perform the rites and ceremonies of his Church. About this time, (1669,) a party of Spaniards, consisting of twenty- three persons, arrived at the village, having for guides some of the Iroquois, who had been taken captives, by some of the southern tribes. It appears evident, that this party came up the Mississippi, passed Pittsburgh and on to Olean Point, where leaving their canoes, they traveled by land. They had MISSIONS, 195 been informed that, there was a lake to the north, whose bot- tom was covered with a substance shining and white, which they took from the Indians' description, to be silver. Having arrived at Onondaga Lake, and the French vil- lage, and finding no silver, they seemed bent on a quarrel with the French, Avhom they charged with having bribed the Indians, so that they would not tell where the silver might be found. A compromise was finally eifected. They agreed that an equal number of French and Spaniards should be sent on an exploring expedition. The Indians seeing these stran- gers prowling through the woods, with various instruments, suspected some design to be in operation, to drive them from their country. Tliis jealousy, was much increased by the ac- cusations of the Europeans themselves. The Spaniards told the Indians, that the only object of the French was to tyran- nize over them. The French on the other hand asserted, that the Spaniards were laying a plan to rob them of their lands. The Indians, by this time becoming jealous of both, deter- mined in private council, to rid themselves of these intruders. Having privately obtained the assistance of the Oneidas and Cayugas, they agreed upon the time and manner of attack. A little before daybreak, on AU Saints Day, 1GG9, the little colony, together with the Spaniards, were aroused from their slumbers by the discharge of firearms, and the war-whoop of the savages. Every house was immediately fired or broken open, and such as attempted to escape from the flames, were killed by the tomahawk, and not one of the colonists or Spaniards were left alive to relate the sad disaster." " The French in Canada, on making inquiries respecting the fate of their friends, were informed by the Indians, that they had gone towards the south, with a company of people who came from thence, and at the same time, showing a Spanish coat of (u-ms, and other national trinkets, confirmed the Canadian French in the opinion, that their unfortunate countrymen, had indeed gone thither, and in all probability perished in the nnmonse forests. This opinion was also measurably con- hrmcd by a Frenchman, who had long lived with the Senecas, H,u , ; I, .li'i' 196 ONONDAGA. and who visited the Onondagas at the time the Spaniards were at the village, but left before the disaster, and could only say he had seen them there."* Thus perished the second Christian colony, so far as known that was attempted to be settled in western New- York. The first at Lake Genentaha, having been broken up in 1656, and those who composed it, were compelled secretly to leave for Canada. Relation, 1667-68. Gives an account of a newly estab- lished mission among the Cayugas, and of a colony of Cayu- gas newly established on the north coast of Lake Ontario. Father Estienne de Carheil and Lc Pe're Millet, went up among the Iroquois to share their labors and cares ; the one destined for Onondaga, the other for Cayuga. There is a fourth Iroquois nation about thirty leagues distant from Onon- daga, always going up between the west and south. These people are well disposed, for Iroquois. It can never be said they have borne arms against the French ; and, if some of them, have done so, it has been by small parties, in simple skirmishes, without any preformed design or concert of the whole nation. They are quite susceptible of kind impressions ; we have often experienced this, even ten years ago, when we were much among them; the same mind still proves their kind- ness and docility ; in proof of which, they have erected for us a chapel in their village, which is well attended. They were very willing the faith should be reestablished there. Father Carheil came, who has just revived their church, composed of Hurons and Iro(|uois. The fear of enemies, obliged many of the nation to leave, and to plant themselves on the North coast of Lake Ontario. This detachment of the Cayugas, or of this new nation, needed pastors to confirm the spirit of the faith in this new church, Avhich we had cherished for two years, and this has been well done, by Eev. Monsieurs Fenelon and De Trouvc, two fervent missionaries, * Notes on Ihe Iroquois. MISSIONS. 197 who have been sent here by the Bishop.* But as they set out only at the end of summer, as -well as the two Fathers, none of them have yet been able to send any news of what has ta- ken place in this new church. The Relation continues, by giving an account of the Huron church at Quebec ; remarkable conversions and deaths of cer- tain Iroquois converts. A letter from the Bishop of Petrea, to Monsieur Poittevin, Curate of St. Joff, Paris. An account of the mission of St. Michael into the fifth nation of the Iro- i[Uois Scuecas, and a circular letter on the holy death of a hospital nun at Quebec. llelation, 1(508-69. The establishment of a mission, St. Francis Xavier, to the country of the Onoidas, or the nation of the "Stone." The nation of Oneida, is about thirty leagues towards the south and west, from the Mohawks, and one hundred and forty from Quebec ; arc of all the Iroquois, the least tractable ; and the arms of the French, not yet having penetrated so far, they fear us only, through the experience of their neighbors, the Mo- haAvks. This nation, which despises the others since their defeat, is in a disposition contrary to the Christian faith, and by its arrogance and pride, tries the patience of a missionary, very sorely. It was necessary that Divine Providence, should assign them a peculiar man, and choose for them a spirit, who might by his mildness conquer or allay their wild and fierce disposition. Father Jacpics Bruyas, has been the man, whom Divine Providence has destined for their service, but his la- bors have generally been rewarded, only by rebuffs and con- tempt. He does not however think his time wholly misem- ployed, since he makes it his joy to suffer. He writes in one * By the recent investigations of Mr. Robert Greenhow, it would appear almost beyond a doubt, that the llev.Mo}isienr Finibii, here mentioned, was none other person than the illustrious M. De i^t';u'fow, afterwards Archbishop of Caniliray. U" the identity of tlie two personages can be conclusively established, (and we think :t is by Mr Greenhow's showing) then the great and good Fenelon, is connected by the most sacred ties, with the history of our country. And it may yet appear that his labors have been abundant at Onondaga, at this time, the seat of Iroquois missions and the great centre of Indian missionary attraction. 198 ONONDAGA, •it«i- of his letters, that he considers all his labors well rewarded when he can baptize some dying child, and by this means se- cure its salvation. The number of baptized, amounts already to near thirty most of whom are already in glory. Such is the state of this mission, to which the Father has given the name of St. Fran- cis Xavier, who is the protector of this new world. As such he is honored here each year, by a solemn festival, which the' bishop of P6tre'a has established throughout France. Relation, 1668-69. New mission of St. Jean Baptiste, in the country of Onon- daga, or Nation of the Mountain. After the nation of the Mohawks and Oneidas between the south and west, wo meet Avith Onondaga. This is a ]ar(57, '71, gives an account of the embassy of Saonchior/oua, chief of the nation of Cayugas. lie having visited Quebec, as an ambassador from tin; Senccas. Also gives an account of the conversion of this chief captain of the Cayugas, under the name of Louis S\innchio(/oua. He labored incessantly to ac((uit himself of his mission, with Avhich he had been charged by the Senecas. He held a council with the Governor, who placed at his disposal all the captives Avhich had been taken from the Senecas, the chief at the same time making the most solemn protestations of submission and obedience of all his orders. The Governor and suite regaled him and treated him with no little kindness and respect. All things being well done, the chief next turn- ed his attention to the salvation of his soul. Ho conversed earnestly with Father Chaumonot, who has charge of this Huron mission. No great time was re(iuired to instruct and enlighten him in the knowledge of our holy mysteries, as ho 20 k It.} !5: h 1 |l " t ».fil > * t >fi 202 ONONDAGA. fi ii'!. had been sufficicMitly informed respecting them, for more than fifteen years, when he hud the good fortune to be present at an assembly of distinguished men of the Five Irocjuois Na- tions, hehl iit Onondaga, soon after our arrival in the country Avhero Father Cliaunionot had taught in the faith. The mis- sion is reported for 1(571, as being in a very prosperous state, three Imndred and twenty souls having been added to tlie Church, many of whom arc in Heaven. The mission of St. Francis Xavier at Oneida, 1071, was successfully continued and reported as fast growing in the af- fections of the peoi)lc under the missionaries who established it, and who now occuj)ied this grouiul. Of the mission of St. Joseph, at Cayuga, Father Estienne Carheil writes, that the advancement of the faith, and the progress in the salvation of souls being the only consolation which your Excellency expects each year, from our missions, I cannot give you more pleasure than in informing you of the progress of the Church, regenerated by the waters of baptism. Sixty-two received the life of grace, thirty-five having gone to live in glory, will be cause of consolation and rejoicing to you. The greater part who died after baptism, were children, whose age does not permit us to doubt their happiness, ^hi- ny were adults, whose demeanor allows me to believe that tliey have deserved, by the cooperation in grace, what those little innocents have received by the operation of the sacrament above. With respect to the mission of St. John the Baptist at Onondaga, the llelation goes on to say : We have been infornuul of two things of great comfort, in the mission of St. .John the Baptist, at Onondaga, which gives us reason to believe, that the faith has made great progress in this country. One is, that thirty-nine persons had received the grace of holy baptism, twenty of whom, a short time after, entered into full possession of their glory. This can- not be doubted, in the case of sixteen inf\ints and four other adults, who gave in their death, great marks of predestina- MISSIONS, 208 tion, particularly a young man nf twonty-fivc or twenty-six years of ago. Sonic of these people state, that after having })eon ill treated by some Frenchmen, they were well received by wonio of our priests of Montreal, which seemed not a little to bring them to God. The family of this young man, most of whom had |)iv>vionsly embraced the faith, Jiavo often manifested their gratitude, and he was eager himself for his salvation. His mother, was the first to teach him to pray to God, and to in- vite Father Millet, to instruct him. A short time before his (lentil, she herself went promptly to give information of the (l;inger in which her son was in, in order that ho might die hippy, and his death corresponded faithfully, to all his graces. I hope, says Father Millet in his letter, that he will not be the only Christian, nor the only predestinated one of this family. The joy which they ex})erienced, after his death, in the lio[)0 of his eternal h;ippin(fss, is no slight mark of their faith. Besides thev seem not far removed from the kincdom of God, through the great desire they manifest, of meeting him one day in heaven, and give us reason to hope, of seeing them all children of the Church. The other point which ought to cause joy to these soul.^, to see God glorified, in the c(uiversion of those people is in the constancy of the Chief, Daniel Garakontie, in ludding fast the faith, and in nuiking every Avhere, a high and impos- ing' profession of Christianity. lie solemnly made it two years since, when after having been baptized at Quebec, lu' declared on his return in a public assembly, he should no lonrrcr perform any duties of his station, which did not coti- form to the commandments of God. lie yet made another (leclaration in a more generous manner, in New Holland, in presence of the Europeans, who commanded in that country ami the chiefs of all the five Iroquois nations, who had been called together, to conclude a peace with the de Loups. The Father has informed us in his last, that he manifested a truly Christian courage, in the case of a young person in sickness, Avhich had reduced him very low. His parents and all his li'* ■U m I'f » ipj t 'ft ft- 1 20! n\(»\ I) A(i A, Iril.c rt'iniii;,' Ills ilr.itli, .sMlicitnl him with \n\u:U iiii|)()rtuMitv, tn |Miiiiit ihMii hi (iiiipluy Cor his rcctivcry, th(! onliimrv ^\i<>tiif/iiir.<," whu |>iiss lor |ihvsiciiiiis in this coiiiitry. Ho ri'Histt-d ihciii stntn;.';ly. Nfvcrlhchvss, they pci'loriiuMl mhii. |u'rHtitiniis cffcuioiiy in his \vin;\\iiiii, luronlinj^r t,, ihoir j,i-„i.. tici' when they iiii old men, who li('Iit>viii;^' him near dciitli, nunc in ii hody to tnkc of him II Inst liircwcll. 'I'lic sick ninii riiiscd liis hciid, siiyiii;^': "mv l''iitlicr I liMvc Iiccii much ti'oiiMcd tuiLiy, in coiisci|iicncc df tlic ceremony, which has Iteeii iicrloniied wilhoiit my kimwl. i'dM;e, and out td' my si;:;lit at iIh- t';irlliiver. Uiit my I'^atl I have not chaiii'ed iiiv sentiments sin ce my haptisiM ; I UT, nil no loiii^er a iu:iii to einiseiil |o these loojerics, I h MAC (illly licimitl llieiii to sa<'ril iiid to shed a liltl(< lilooil lur llir testament. I'miI I helieve in this, ik.I to have ollciidcd (I.mI. I letd too deeply, my l''atlie!', and I have pi'omised •otidi!, too solemnly to kt'cp hi^^ holy I; Mv all mv life, ever to retiiri to' m V aneit'iit ciistoiib wiucli I I lave I'lven iiii willi all mv heart. No my l''athei-, I would never a^aiii li as 1 1 KIVi oe«'ii. Ill' I' .atlier coiilirnied liim in these i.rood seiitiiiiciits. with \\]\\r\\ the eoi K'taiiv weri' liiirlilv edilu Ail erwarus, one prosi'Iytt> lia\ imr reeovei'ed his health, proceeiled to Meii- ti'cal, as Jill ai'.ihass.ador of |Ih« lro(piois nations, to Iiolil a Council with tlu> Aliioukiua ami Anfoinh-Icx, who tliere lia4 their rendezvous, as well lor the transacti(Ui (d* luisiness, as I'm- the sale of their I'lirs. It was in this convoy of one lain- asst'inhled to preserve Mons. DeCoui'- Celle, irovernor of the country, for whom all these peo))le liail a particidar regard. (.Jarakontie manifested his spirit and liis good sense, Imt particularly his faith and his zeal ; for, after * havin-ji; terminated their Imsincss, and confirmed tho treaty of peace, hy nits, he n MISSIONS. 205 peace, by in'W |irot(!Mtiiti(tiis of rriciiilMJiip and nuiiprocal prca- iiits, lie riiiM('(l Ills voiro to Hiiy to llu'iii, lliiit lie liiul forincrly liot'U iiH they were, in ij^'hoi'iinri) of tlio tiiU) ( lod, and a l)«!lio vor III itll tlicir siipcrslitioiis ciistonis. iSiit, that now ho wtiH a Christisiii, and that he lived liappy in keeping tho coininand- iiii'iilH oCiiod, and in thcliopc of eternal life. Ho concluded ills el(M|iient haran^iio, according to his custom, hy iiivitin;^ thciii to ri'llow him. Sucii a disfoMrsc comin;^' IVom the mouth of a fViciidly sav- ijjt', dcclariii;^ thus IVaidviy the sentiments of his heart, often jifiMJuces more olfeet upon such minds, than ono from tho most •iiiious misni(»n:uy. Mehold another examph! which lias come Id iiur kno\vled;.'e. The sanu* l)ani(d (larakontie, says the I'l'i'e he liamlierville, in hin letter of 2-»il (d" Septond)or, hav- 1111.' met on his return to lii:< eonnfry, on(! of his parents sick iitilo death, eanu' to ii\e to ask for her some remedy. "My liiotiier," said I to him, "the only renmdy which will ho of iiM' to her in her present stale, is haptism, to preserve her :Viiiii hell ; liiit she has no (ii'positinn I'or this sacrament, she inTsists in wishin;^; to ^^o to the |>retended country of souls. It'tlioii hast any trui' alVection lor her, put lorth all thy efforts to render her more docile; hut hasten thys(df, she has not a ioiii; time to live. These are the words of the Father." lie has nothin;i: of the Irnqiiois savnp;o in him, hut the l)irtli ;iii(l the name. J le went to \isit her instantly ", produced hy , lii.s zeal inid earnestness ati eflect so wonderful, tluit slio was iiiiuiLMliately instructed sulfuMiMitly to receive bai)tism, to the ,:,'i'i'at joy of all the fannly. The Father was not able to ap- pruaeh another dyin^ creature, to sjx'ak of her salvation, be- (';uise she numifested so ji;reat an aversion to Christianity, and stuli an ineredibl(> attaehnu'nt to the su})erstitions of her coun- tvv. In this diiliculty, he had recourse to a friendly woman of tiiis fandly, v.ho was not yet a catechumen, neither had she boon known to come to jirayers ; she had, however, some kiu)wledelio()l where ^'irls are tau<;ht needle work, knittin;.', writinti, roadin;:, &c. The results of both these missions are, that the Mi)liinvks, Tuscaroras and Oneidas, are entirely Christians ; the Onondarras and the few Dclawares mostly so, the latter hoinji recent converts. Of the Seneci'S, not so many as half hiive been baptised, and the Cayugas hold out obstinately, al- li'ilaiajr that thev have not been well treated bv the British."'' Both these stations are adorned with beautiful chui'chcs, and the one at the ^Slokawk settlement has one half of the valua- hlc connnunion set, originally fui-nishe ii ■ f. • fi I ; f f f '* 220 ONONDAGA. yet directed to the spiritual wants of tliis lonp; ncfrlected and much injured race, and if it was increased, it would greatly ameliorate their lot. The Hernhutt, or Moravian Brethren, who were organized as a society in 1722, under the patronage of Count Zinzen- dorf, also formed the idea of establishing an affiliated society in America, and a mission among the Indians, about 1740. Their principal settlement and scat of operations, was at Beth- lehem, in Pennsylvania, where they had an establishment of considerable importance. This little colony was formed at first under the strict laws of the original society, viz : " Se- clusion from the world, enjoyment of a contemplative life, and possession of all worldly goods in common." They were for a while very successful in their enterprises among the Indians, the Delawares, Shawnese, Lenna-Lenapes, and made a de- cided and strenuous effort to establish themselves among the Iroquois, of which the following is the history : Account of a German ^Mission at Onondaga in 1750 : — Tt is a matter which has been often doubted whether or not the Dutch had ever established a mission at Onondaga. The Indians themselves retain no knowledge of it by record or tra- dition. The following from the Indian Historiographer Hecke^Yel- der, sets the matter at rest. Loskiel mentions the same facts in substance. The individuals engaged in this mission were Moravian Brothers. Heckewoldcr says : The most remarkable occurrence of 1750, was the journey of Bishop Cammerhof and brother Da- vid Zeisbergcr to Onondaga, the chief town of the Iroquois. They set out from Betldehem on the 14th of jNIay, having ob- tained a passport from the Governor of Pennsylvania, request- ing all subjects of the British Government to forward their undertaking, and to lend them all possible assistance. The inhabitants of Tioga, a considerable Indian town, as Avell as those of other places, were surprised to find that the Brethren were going to Onondaga, and were ac(|uainted with the head chiefs of the Six Nations. And as their guide purposely MISSIONS. 221 spread this account wherever they came, it gained them great respect. On the 19th of June they reached Onondaga, the chief town of the Six Nations, situated in a very pleasant and beau- tiful country, and consisting of five small towns or villages, through which runs the river Zinoehsaa. They Avere lodged at the house of Gronassatako, who received them with much cordiality. The object of this visit was Ijoth to fulfil the promise of a visit to the great council of the Iroquois, made last year to the deputies at Philadelphia, and to obtain leave for some bretliron to live either at Onondaga or some other chief town of the Iro'^uois, to learn the language, and to preach the gospel. Bishop Canimcrhof and David Zeisberger having notified their urrival to the council in the usual manner, they were ad- mitted and received as the Deputies of the Church of the United Brethren, and their message taken into consideration. The council then consisting of twenty-six elderly men of ven- erable itppcarance. The consultations upon the message last- ed long ; many questions were put to the Brethren, ond many belts and fathom of wampum delivered. The Brothers choos- ing to let the subject rest for a while, proceeded to the settle- ments of the Cavugas and Sonecas. On their return thev found that the chiefs had made no advances in their cause. They therefore renewed their petition, and were so successful that on the 20th of July, with the usual ceremonies, they re- ceived the followins decision : That the Iroquois nnd the Brethren on both sides of the great Ocean, should regard each other as l^rothevii. That this covenant should be indissoluble, and that the two Brethren should have leave to live at Onondaga or some other town, to learn their language. The mission was for a season very suc- cessful, many wore converted and led a new life, being bap- tized in the faith. The Brethren returned to spend the win- ter in Bethlehem. In July, 1751, the Brethren Zeisberger and Godfried Rundt and Martin Mark, set out for Onondaga, agreeable to the it Eii'f^B.'H ' I i I ' ml 'ill 222 ONONDAGA. ■- i.j ; :■] 1, i. !':'!r:. p-'g H,g |! ^ "."■' ' '■iffiW B'sa I , i 1 ' ii III t * <& t' 11 y i I 1 treaty, by which the f^rcat council permitted two Brethren to reside at Onondaga and learn the language. The Oneidas were opposed to the introduction of these missionaries at On- ondaga, and did tlieir best to prevent it. The Brethren, how- ever, would not be repulsed. They were gladly received and highly flattered by the Onondagas. They were lodged in the chief's house, and all things prospered. The Brethren were treated Avith great esteem for near a year, when, by the advice of a great council, and on account of the troubles and war they were advised by the Onondagas to retire to their lionK's. In 1754, Zeisberger returned to his post in Onondaga, with a brother named Charles Frederick, and resided there almost a whole year. The chiefs erected a house for him, which proved such a comfortable retirement that they resolved to spend the winter, which they did, but left for Bethlehem early in the following summer. The missionary Zeisberger was adopted as the son of the principal chief, Canassetago, and had much influence with the Onondagas. This zealous missionary at no time lost sight of the importance of this mission, aiid althouglv not a laborer on the ground, his mind Avas occupied, and his hands and heart engaged in preparing for an effectual and permanent estab- lishment in this fruitful land, of a prosperous and happy mis- sion. The same author says, (page 428,) Zeisberger, about the year 1768, wrote and completed two grammars, one written iu English, and the other in German, adapted to the Indian lan- guage, and a copious dictionary, German and Indian, contain- ing seven quarto manuscript volumes of more than seventeen hundred and seventy pages of writing, consisting of German words and phrase; , with their translation into Indian ; upon which he justly remarks that there are not many dictionaries of this size, and if this is filled with genuine Iroquois^, it is in vain to speak of the poverty of that language. In 1776, he published a spelling book, and other primary books for learners, with juvenile devotional books, calculated to advance the cause of Christianity among the Indians. We ■'^ma MISSIONS. 223 find no permanent fruits of this mission, or that it was ever re-established, although feebly continued for several years. In 1770, the Rev. Mr. Ashley, who was a missionary at Ocquaga, states that he had occasionally preached at Onon- daga to the Indians, and that a Rev. Mr. Crosby had succeed- ed him. He also mentions the names of the Rev. Messrs. Peter and Henry Avery, who had preached among the Tus- caroras, Onondagas, and Ocquagas. The next mission of note among the Iroquois, was that es- tablished by the Rev. Sanmci Kirkland, among the Oneidas, which commenced about the 1st of August, 1760. Since a brief account of this mission was written, and since this work was in press, the author acknowledges the receipt of the Life iif Samuel Kii-kland, by his grandson, Samuel K. Lothrop, number XV. of American Biography, conducted by Jared Sparks, with tlie author's permission to use it in this connec- tion, whicli has been made available. Samuel Kirkland was born at Norwich, Connecticut, on the 1st of December, 1741. His fatlier was the Rev. Daniel Kirkland, who was pastor of the Third Congregational Church in Norwich, the parish of Newcut. His mother was Hannah Perkins, daughter of a very respectable gentleman of Wind- sor, Connecticut. Samuel was the tenth in a family of twelve children, of whom five were sons. The ancestors of the Kirk- liind family were from Scotland. At the age of twenty we find Samuel Kirkland a student, at the Rev. Dr. Wheelock's School at Lebanon, Conn. In the autumn of 1762, he en- tered the Sophomore class, at Princeton College, New Jersey, which was a place of resort for Indian youth, who were desir- ous of procuring a classical education, and others who were desirous of becoming missionaries among the Indians. At Lebanon and Trinceton his studies were pursued with a con- stant and determined reference to his preparation for a mis- sionary among the Indians. In this benevolent design, he was cheered and encouraged I'y the celebrated Whitefield, and the Rev. .Air. Kirkpatrick, ifather of the late Dr. Kirkpatrick, of Salina,) to proceed^ 8 W''' tmi \ n^, ^Wn 1 ' « I 1. ilii ',; f" 224 ONONDAGA. and by their suggestions and advice, was induced finally to lo- cate himself among the Oneidas. While at school, he had ac- quired some knowledge of the language of the Iroquois. In the autumn of his senior year, he left College for the purpose of visiting the Senecas, and to learn their language, habits and dispositions, and thus become qualified to be their spiritual teacher and guide. In November, 1764, he set out for his mission, and in hit- course, spent some time with Sir Wm. Johnson, at Johnson Hall. On the IGth of Jan., 1765, ii. company with two Senecas, he set out for the Indian country on foot. The weather was severe, and the earth covered with a great body of snow, over which they had to plod their way by the help of snow shoes. Our young missionary was burdened with a pack, containing clothes, provisions, and a few books, in all weighing about forty pounds. The whole country was a wilderness, and the last vestige of civilization was seen at Johnson Hall. Every thing looked gloomy and forbiding, but the fervent heart of this pious and devoted youth, beat with hopes too high to languish, and with aspirations too holy to relent. On the fifth day, the party arrived at a village of the Onei- das, where they rested and were refreshed. Afterwards they proceeded to Onondaga, where they remained a night, and nearly all the next day. The object of Mr. Kirkland's mission was explained to the Indians in the council house, "a building nearly eighty feet long, and containing four fires, in which they assembled in crowds about ten o'clock in the morning." Towards the evening of this day, they left Onondaga, and proceeded on their journey. On the 7th of February, towards evening, twenty-three days after leaving Johnson Hall, they reached Kanadasegea, the principal town of the Senecas. In due time the object of his visit was explained in council, and he was permitted to remain with them, and was taken into the family of the head sachem, by whom he was ultimate- MISSIONS. 225 ly adopted. During his stay among the Senecas, his life was often in peril, and after the death of his host, which occurred soon after, he visited Johnson Hall, and on his way spent a night at Fort ^^ Bennington,'' (Brewerton,) where he was sup- plied with provisions by the commanding oflScer of the gar- rison. After visiting the Hall, he returned to the Senecas on the 29th of June, where his arrival was hailed with joy. Hia intercourse with the Senecas was full of interest and adven- ture. (See Lothrop's Life of Kirkland.) He left the Senecas country in May, 1766, and we find no traces of his return to them again as a missionary. On tlie 19th of June, 1766, Mr. Kirkland was ordained at Lebanon, and on the same day received a commission from the " Connecticut Board of correspondents of the Society in Scotland," as an Indian missionary. He set out for his new mission on the 7th of July, and commenced his labors among the Oncidas, as before stated, about the 1st of August, 176G, with whom he remained up- wards of forty years. He at once earnestly engaged in the good work of teaching the Indians the principles of the Chris- tian religion, and in preaching to them the gospel. He made himself master of their language, became intimately familiar with all their customs and fancies, and greatly endeared him- self to them by the kindness of his disposition, his assiduous attention, and by liis amiable and sympathizing spirit. He soon gained by these rave qualities, the unlimited confidence of a very large majority of the Indians, and especially of two principal chiefs, Good Peter and Skenendoah. All looked upon him as a friend and father, all were anxious to hear his words, and listen to liis instructions. He was particularly in- strumental in banishing from among the Oneidas that bane of tlie race, intoxicating drinks, an article which had been freely furnished by traders, and which, through his influence, would not be received even as a gift, and when offered in one instance, the answer Avas, '• It is contrary to the minister's word, and our agreement with him." On the 19th of September, 1769, he was married to Jeru- 29 K. I i :.: . 1 1 )] }" 226 ONONDAGA. sha Bingham, a niece of Dr. Wheelock. She was a v^oman of uncommon energy, sterling good sense, with a vigorous understanding, and a most devout heart, with a mmd deep y imbued with the principles of Christianity, and with a lively interest in the cause of propagating the gospel among the In- dians; she was therefore well qualified to be a partner and help to her husband, and to share with him the labors and sa- crifices of an Indian missionary. Mr Kirkland continued his residence and labors among the Oneidas, with such success as the turbulent state of the times admitted. The storm of impending revolution lowered oyer the western horizon, and even the distant wilds of Oneida were not deemed secure from its portentous fury. Mr Kirkland was in religion and politics a pure American patriot His influence was eagerly sought by the master spirits and actors in the grand drama that was about to open to the world, and his advice and opinions were solicited .vith an earnestness which proved the character and excellence ot the man. and the estimation in which he was held abroad. ^_ By a vote of the Continental Congress, 18th July, li.o, the Commissioners of the Northern Department were recom- mended to employ the Ilev. Samuel Kirkland among the Six Nations of Indians, in order to secure their friendship and to continue them in a state of neutrality, with respect to the controversy between Great Britain and the Colonies. For this purpose, Mr. Kirkland was employed, and to accompLh the object he exerted his powers to the utmost, took long jour- nies among the Indian nations, and atteu'ded councils at Al- bany, German Flats, Oneida and Onondaga At first he .as flattered with a prospect of success, and felt confident that the Six Nations would not take part In the approaching con- test But through the wiles and machinations of those most in the Interest of the crown, his hopes and expectations .'crc defeated, and all but a portion of his faithful Oneidus we ranged in the ranks of Britain. L the commencement of the great contest of the revolu- tion, Mr. Kirkland removed his family to Stockbridge, Mass,, MISSIONS. 227 a woman for fear of danger which might arise from proximity to a hos- tile foe, while living in a location likely to become the theatre of sanguinary war. He still continued his labor as an Indian missionary among the Oneidas ; his healthful influence over them, it is thought, contributed materially to secure the neu- trality, and in several instances the friendship and services of a considerable portion of the Oneidas to the American cause. He was appointed a chaplain to the garrison at Fort Schuy- ler and other posts, Avith rank and pay of Brigade Chaplain, and when duty permitted, still continued his labors among the Oneidas. In 1779, he was Brigade Chaplain with General Sullivan, in his Indian campaign, after which he returned to his family at Stockbridge. During the remainder of the war, he was part of the time at Fort Schuyler and the neighborhood, de- voting his services to his country and to the Indians. After the close of the war, (in 1784,) Mr. Kirkland, at the earnest req^iest of the nation, resumed his missionary labors at Onei- da, and received some pay for special services rendered dur- ing the war. Harvard College rendered him some assistance, and altogether, comfortable provision was made for his sup- port. He was on several occasions employed as an interpre- ter in the formation of treaties, and every where possessed an influence which could not well be dispensed with. The summer of 1788 was spent by him in visiting the wes- tern nations of the confederacy, as far as Buffalo Creek, the main object of which was to learn their disposition towards the Christian religion, and the prospects of the usefulness of a missionary who might reside among them, and to be present at a treaty to be held in their country. For his valuable services, Messrs. Phelps and Gorham granted him two thousand acres of land, which they subse- quently confirmed by deed, bearing date, April 22d, 1792. This land was located in Ontario County, township No. 7. In 1790, the State of New York and the Indians, granted to Mr. Kirkland and his sons, in the neighborhood of Oneida, 111 i P i J' U i ' 228 ONONDAGA. about four thousand seven hundred and sixty acres of land. During this time, his labors were incessant as a Christian minister. Ho preached three times on every Lord's day. He held evening and daily conferences during the week, and often visited remote villages of the Indians. In 1792-3, he projected his " Plan of Education for the Indians, particularly of the Five Nations," in addition to smaller schools, which had previously been in operation. Out of this "Plan," grew the Hamilton Oneida Academy, which was incorporated early in 1703. Soon after the charter was obtained, he endowed the institution with a valuable donation of lands, amounting to several hundred acres, including a lot of about twelve acres, on which a large and commodious build- ing was erected. In 1810, it was elevated to a college, and received liberal additions to its funds from the State of New- York, and the donations of sundry public spirited individuals. Additional buildings have from time to time been erected, and the college has held a reputable rank omong the classical in- stitutions of the State. The establishment of this institution of learning, for the mutual benefit of the frontier inhabitants and the Indians, was the last important act of Mr. Kirkland's life . Afterwards, however, so far as strength and health would permit, he continued his missionary labors among the Indians; and, as a citizen, took a lively interest in everything pertain- ing to the welfare of society, and the rising prosperity of the country. The remaining fifteen years of his life, were marked with peculiar vicissitudes. Ill health, bodily infirmity, pecu- niary embarrassments, family bereavements, and many pain- ful events, that may not here be dwelt upon. He was a man of unbounded benevolence and hospitality, and daily supplied the necessities of numbers of his red brethren, from his own board ; a custom which, though burdensome and expensive, could not be departed from. He loved the Indians, and by them in turn was he most sincerely beloved. Among missionaries, there are few who have been more faithful and devoted to the cause of truth, or have made larger sacrifices, exposed themselves to greater perils and hardships, MISSIONS. 229 or had their efforts crowned with a greater measure of succeas, than the Rev. Samuel Kirkland, Missionary to the Onei- (las. He lived and acted through a most interesting period of our history, was identified with many important events and trans- actions, was well known, and his worth appreciated by most of the great men of his time, and sunk to his rest amidst the regrets and lamentations of his countrymen. He departed this life on the 28th of February, 1808, in the 78th year of his age, after a short but severe illness. His remains were conveyed to the village church at Clin- ton, and after appropriate services, which were conducted by Rev. Dr. Norton, they were deposited in a private grave near his dwelling, where they still await the summons which shall cause the sea and the earth to give up their dead. On one side lie the remains of his Avidow and a daughter, and on the other, those of the venerable Shenandoah. If the character of a man may be estimated by the good he Joes to his fellow men, by the privations he endures in their behalf, by the blessings he confers upon them, by the labor lie performs in the advancement of the Redeemer's kingdom, then the character of Mr. Kirkland stands preeminent. He stands forth a shining example to youth, a noble precedent to manhood, and a profitable model for old age. Mr. Kirkland was the intimate friend of the Rev. Samson Cecum, a thoroughly educated Indian, who was ordained a minister by the Suffolk Presbytery, on Long Island, in 1759. He came to Oneida from Long Island with a party one hun- dred and ninety-two Montauks and Shinecocks, among the Stockbridge and Brothertown Indians, as a missionary in 1786, and was eminently useful as a preacher of the Gospel among the simple sons of the forest. Mr. Occura was the first red man educated by the celebrated Rev. Dr. Wheelock at his Moore Charity School at Lebanon. Mr. Occum left this school in 1742, and for several years was engaged as a teacher among the Long Island Indians, to whom he was greatly endeared. He passed the early part of his life on J I ' ^i'll h . 230 ONON nA(J A. Long Island, tlio pliico of his nativity. After his ordination ho waa Hcnt to Enghiiui, hy Dr. Whciolot-k, in company witli Mr. Whitakor, to solicit benofactiona for a college. The ap- pearance of Mr. Oecum in England, excited strong Honsationa in the minds of all intelligent people, particularly the pious and benevolent. Benefactions were solicited with a success which greatly outran the most sanguine expectations. Among the patrons to the proposed college, were the King, and many persona of rank and distinction; a la' go anm of money was collected and forwarded to America, whore others cotitributed liberally to swell the amount, lie often preached to very crowded houses, and was the first Indian clergyman who had ever visited that country. In those days, it was considered a great novelty. The noblest chapels in the kingdom were open to him, and oven the pulpit of the great Whitefield, was filled with acceptance. After his return, he labored in his mission among the iStockbridge and Brothertown Indians, several years, with great success, and even to this day, among the few survivors of his race, his name and mem(n*y are held in grateful remembrance. He died in July, 17!>2, at New-Stock- bridge, Madison County, New-York, aged sixty-nine years. Both he and the Rev. Samuel Kirkland, were well accpuiintcd at Onondaga, often visited and occasionally officiated there among the Indians. By the early settlers we have been in- informed, that Mr. Kirkland, on several occasions, preached to them in their dwellings and in their barns, and was proba- bly the first Potestant Clergyman wlio ever officiated in our county. Bishop llobart's establishment of a mission at Oneida, in 1816 :— In 1816, Mr. Eleazar AVilliams was selected to take charge of this important mission. lie was a son of Thomas Wil- liams, who was a distinguished chief of the St. Begis branch of the Mohawk nation, and a descendant of the Bev. John Williams, of Deerfield, Mass., who with his family and parish- ioners was taken captive at the sacking of his native town, by the French and Indians, in 1704. MISSIONS. 281 Mr. Eloazar Williutns had received a liberal education for the purpose of being useful as a missionary among his people, and was appointed by IJisliop Ifobart and the committee of the Protestant Episcopal Cliurcli, for propagating the gospel in the State of New-Y(n'k, a catechist, lay-reader and school miwtcr, to the Oneida nation. He had been educated in u different communion, (Presbyterian,) but connected him- self with the Protestant Episcopal Church, from conviction. Mr. Williams arrived at Oneida Castle, and entered on hi.«i duties, --Jd of March, iHlfJ. One large portion of the Onei- das had previously adhered firmly to the religion of their fath- ers, and had always been denominated in business transac- tions, the '"'■ Payan purty of the One Ida nation." Mr. Williams, in taking upon himself this new responsibili- ty, felt it a duty first incumbent upon him, to prepare a translation of portions of the Holy Scriptures, the Liturgy, and other devotional portions of theComraon Prayer Book, into a language they could luore easily understand than the English. This, in duft time he effected, by following Brant's transla- tions of the Gospels and Prayer Book of the church of Eng- laml, which were altered and amended to suit the circumstan- ces of the case. It is worthy of remark, that these translations of Brant's, of the Gospels and Prayer Book, are to this day in use, as devotional books, with some trifling alterations, among all the tribes of the Six Nations, even among those who are not Episcopalians. At this period, a large portion of the Oneid ..rcct a suitable school house, and employ a teacher. The petition was favorably received, and in April, 1846, an act was passed autliorizing the agent of the Onondaga Indians, by consent of tho chiefs of the Onon- daga nation, to cause to be built and furnished, a suitable and sufficient school house on tho Ouaudagu Reservation, at an expense not exceeding three hundred dollars. The sum of two hundred and fifty dollars annually, was also appropriated for the term of five year.^, for the payment of teachers' wages, and other expenses of maintaining said school. The following season a suitable and well arranged school house was completed, under the direction of tho Indian agent, and a numerous body of citizens attended its dedication, among whom were several clergymen of dificrent denomina- tions from tho adjacent villages. The services on this occa- sion, were of a highly interesting character. A school ivas commenced under very favorable uuppices, and promised all that its most devoted friends could anticipate. A comptlent teacher, Mr. L. B. Whitcomb, was employed, who fur a time kept up the interest at first excited. Few persons can realize the disadvantages and discouragements which present them- selves in a purely Indian school. Not a single family uses the English language in their intercourse among themselves or neighbors. The children only learn if at a more advanced age in their communications Avith the whites ; consequently the teacher meets in the beginning, pupils who cannot under- stand perhaps a word he utters. A new language is to be learned, new ideas formed, new objects present themselve?, and tl relish for application is soon lost, after the novelty Avhich new scenes at first present, has died away. !3o far as they can learn by observation and imitation, many of the pu- pils make respectable proficiency. Hence, in drawin- and in MISSIONS. 245 mental arithmetic, as stolveil on the bhick-boniHl, in vocal mu- .je, iic, they exhibit talent and progresH not une■ measure, and until there is more unanimity of sentiment, the subject of education will noi reach e elevated position anticipated by its Viends. 246 ONONDAGA, CIIArTER VIII. EARLY HISTORY OF TIIK ONONDACAS, AND INCIDENTAfXY THAT OF THE SIX NATIONS. I H Bahbauitiks ok tuk Troquoib Caitains, CoMi'AKrn with IIkhoks ok ANciEfrr AN1> Monr.IlN TiMKs — NoTlCKH (IK TlIK O.NtlNDAltAS, IIY K.iKI.V I llrtTOlllANH— FiKST Intkiicoubhr ok TirK lndyooi.s \,-iTii TlIK l''iiKN(Mi — Aruuai, OK Mow Ohamvimin— IFis Visit toOnondaoa IN 11115 — Ok Moss. 1)k Tiiaoi wini fnui NI8TS ANi> Hoi.niEKS — KAKi.y ('r.Nsi'soKTiiK Iiioyi.oirt — M. Dki.a Uariik— Mar QUiH I)k NiiNVM.i.K — Invasion ok Montukai, iiythk Iiioyt'ois in ItlSH — Oreai DiSTBKHS OKTIIK FltKNC'll DkPUTAI'ION FUOM N KW-IiNliL^NDTOTlIK luoQlOIH— Dk Fim .iknai'sNk(;()TIati()Ns wiTiiTiii'; Fivn Nations — Sn; William I'liii'i'. Exl'KDITIUN i" diUKIlDC InC'IIIWIONO OK TUK KlVF, NaTIONH TO C VNAIIA, l690-i)l — FttKNOH Attack upon tuk. Mohawks — Nkuiotiations k(,ti I'kack— Fkkncii 1'kki'auation kok an Atiack upon (JNONKAm — Tin; Attack and DlSAPPOINTMKNT OK TUK FuKNOIl — WaK CoNIINlKl) — !'KAt.'K OK RVHWllK' 1697— KwoLian NEiiOTiAxioNa with thkFivk Nations. The two folUming chapters containing an account of the civil and military history of the Onondagas, and incidontalh that of the Five Nation;^ is taken mainly from Charlcvoi.x. Historic de Nonville Frsvncais, Francis Creuxius Ilistoroc Novae Francine, Colden's Five Nations, Smith's History of New-York, Brodhead's Collection of London Do(!ument8, and Marshall's Life of Washington. Many of the early historians, in describing the character of the Iroquois, set them down as vindictive, (rruol and blood- thirsty, without one redeeming quality, or a. single human feeling of compassion, virtue, honor or gr;ititude, and univer- sally stigmatize them, as barbarian and savage ; while others. viewing them in a higher light, are lavish in their pruisc. By '|..iil EARLY HISTORY. MV Golden, Do Witt Clinton, and othors, thoy have been styled tiio Uoinans of Americii ; and tho French tourist, Volney, coinpan'H tlioiri to the ancient Spartans. " Notwithstanding 1 havo seen much of tho savai^es of America, I persist more firndy in tho comparison herctoforo made, for I find that tho first book of Thucydidos, and all that part whicli gives tho customs of the ImcedemonianB, proves them in every respect similar to the Five Nations; I do not therefore, hesitate to declare tho Spartans to be the Iro- ijunis of tho old world." Were we strictly to compare tho Iroquois with civilized nations, the real dificrence would not bo as wide as at first iraairined. It is wonderful how custom and education are able t" soften tlio most revolting actions among learned, polite and Christian people. Whoever attentively reads the history of ancient or modern heroes, will find them little better in many respects than the distinguished war chiefs of the Iro- quois. Does Achilles' behavior towards the dead body of the valiant Hector, appear less savage ? Does King David's saw- ing the Amoritcs in sunder, or harrowin^r them with harrows of iron, or driving them through burning brick kilns, appear less barbarous 'i Does the infamous example of Napoleon at Jaffa, appear less horrid, or the murderous scenes on board the British prison ships at New-York, or tho quartering and exposure by hanging, of the mutilated body of the valiant King Philip of Mount Hope, appear less revolting, than the most detested acts of Indian barbarity ? The horrors of the Inquisition, the auto-de-fe, or the scourgiugs and burnings of New-England, for opinion's sake, and the sale of helpless In- dians to West Indian slavery for sordid gain, are all far be- yond the capacity or imagination of Indian refinement in cruelty. Father Henepin, speaking of the Iroquois, says : Lib. 1, page 17. The Iroquois are an indolent and barbarous people, that has shed the blood of more than two millions of souls, in that vast extended country. They would never cease from » i t- :i'i : Jfli j .If',!' 248 ONONDAGA, disturbing the repose of the Europeans, were it not for fear of their fire-arms. Again at Piigo 23. The Five Cantons or districts of the Iroquois, do inherit, for the most part, the south side of the Lake Ontario. The Mohawks and Oncidas are the nearest neighbors to New-IIolland. The Onondagas or those who live in the mountains, are the most warlike people of all those nations. The Cayugas and Senecas, are the most populous of them all. There are also on the north side of the lake, three Iroquois villages, viz. : Tejajagon, Kente and Ganne- ousse, which is not distant from Frontenac above nine leagues. Lib. II, page 104, he further says : Tiie Onontagues or Iro- quois lligliianders, are more subtle and crafty than the rest. They deliberate maturely upon everything, and endeavor to understand merchandize before they trade for it. They steal very cleverly. Charlevoix in his letters to the Duohess De Lesdiguieres, speaking of the Iroquois, country of Onondaga, says :* All the coast along this country, is variegated with garden grounds and highlands, something sandy, and covered with very fine trees, especially oak, which appear as if they had been planted by the hand. A Jesuit Father, P. C. Rageneau, in his Relation, 1657-8, in describing the country of the Onondagas, remarks : The country of the Iroquois, which they occupied before their con- quest, is situated between the fortieth and fiftieth degrees of north latitude. However, ve are ignorant of the extent of their ancient dominion, Avhich has been gieatly extended on all sides, by their military valor. Our demesne (Onondaga) is between the forty-second and forty-third degices of north latitude, ou the shores of the small Lake Genentaha, and would be one of the most splendid lo- cations in the world, not even yielding to the rising grounds * " Toute la Cote dans cet espace est variee de Marais et de Torres haiites ua peu siibionneuses couvertes de tre-jcau arbres et surtout de chunes qui seniblanl avoir etc plaiUus a la niaiii.'' EARLY HISTORY. 249 of the River Loire, were its inhabitants as polished and affable. In another place he says, the word which signifies a moun- tain in the Iroquois language, has given name to the village called Onontac, or as others call it, Onontaguo, because it is upon a mountain. The people who inhabit it arc consequently called Onontav.;ronnons or Ouontagucoronnons. Charlevoix, Book I, page 270-1, says : Seven or eight leagues Avest of Oneida, between two l)eautiful prairies, is sit- uated the canton of Onondaga, contiguous to a beautiful lake, called Genentaha, about which there are many salt foulitains, the shores ot v.hich are always covered with very fine salt. Two leagues further off, drawing towards the Canton of Cayu- ffa, we find a fountain, the Avatcr of whicli is white as milk, having a very strong odor ; which, being put upon the fire, becomes a kind of salt, as acrid as lunar caustic. All this country is charming and well adapted to all kinds of tillage. Francis Creuxieus, a Jesuit, who wrote a large quarto vol- ume in Latin, which was published in Paris, 1074, entitled a History of Canada and New France, in ten books, to the vcar 1(J;jG. After describing his par-sage along the shores of the Cadnraqui, (Ontario) he says : Lib. X. page 7-30, (literally translated) therefore, four days afterwards, with a great com- pany, wc were conducted to the place fixed upon for the set- tlement and abode of the French, four miles distant from where we had first ;.et ouv foot. It is scarcely possible to find anything naturally more perfect. And if it was aided by art as in France and other parts of Europe, it would not suffer in a comparison with Baiix;.* A grove of beautiful cedars near the hank of the Lake Genentaha, surrounds on every side an extensive meadow,, whither tlie four principal nations of the Iroquois were able easily to asseml)le in their canoes, as it \vere at a centre, and from which in turn there \*as the most easy access to each of the nations, through the rivers and lakes. * Bairp, a town oi' raini);uiii;i, notoii by Cicero for its fertility and v, arm baths, and as a favorite resort for the Romans, the gardens of which were irrigated witJi :ts tepid waters. 32 1 , ♦■''"^^", 260 ONONDAGA. i II i M The supplyofvenison compares with the abundance of fish, and that nothing may be wanting, tortoises collect there at the opening of spring, in such great numbers, that they may be taken with a net. Indeed, so great is the supply of fish, that there are said to be fishermen who in the space of a single night, take a thousand eels with a single hook. Two foun- tains intersect the meadoAV about one hundred yards from each other. The salt water of the one, furnishes an abun- dant supply of the best of salt, and the clear pure water of the other, is excellent for drinking, and what is truly wonder- ful, each bubbles up from the same hill. While the French admire these things, the Iroquois present a mournful spectacle, which affects us with great grief. Wentworth Greenhalgh in 1677 made a journey among the Five Nations, and visited their several villages. His journal is preserved among tlie Brodhead papers and is entitled "Ob- servations of Wentworth Greenhalgh, in a journey from Albany to y'e Indians westward. Begun May 20th, 1677 and ended July y'e 14th following." He thus remarks upon his visit to the country of the Onondagas. " The Onondagoes have butt one towne, butt itt is very large ; consisting of about one hundred and forty houses, not fcnoud, is situate upon a hill thatt is very large, the banke on each side, extending itself att least two miles, all cleared land, whereon the corne is planted. They haVe likewise a small village about two miles beyond thatt; consisting of about •24 houses. They ly to the southward of y'e Avest, about 36 miles from tlio Onyadas. They plant aboundance of corne, which they sell to the Onyadas. The Onondagoes are said to be about 350 fighting men. They ly about 15 milcf. from Tshii'oqui."* At the time the French commenced the settlement of Canada. in 1603, they found the Iroquois at war with the Adirondacks, * Tshiroqui is mentioned in a preceding part of the paper, as Lake Teshiroque uear the village of the Onyadas, and is evidently Oneida Lake, at the outlet ol *-hich was an Indian village of considerable extent. EARLY HISTORY, 261 then the most powerful nation in North America. The Adi- rondacks had always a contemptible opinion of the Iroquois, who then had settlements in the vicinity of Montreal. The Iroquois were driven from their homes, and took shelter on the banks of the great lakes, where they have since inhabited. As they had been losers in the war, it obliged them to apply themselves more vigorously to the use of arms, in which they daily became more expert. They conquered the Satanas, and adopted the remnant of them. They soon carried the war in- to the heart of the Adirondacks country, and forced them to leave it, when they settled near where Quebec is now built. Soon after these changes, the French arrived in Canada, and settled at Quebec, and at once thought it advisable to gain the confidence and friendship of the Adirondacks, in whose country they had settled. Mons. Charaplain, the first Gov- ernor of Canada, joined the Adirondacks in an expedition against the Five Nations. They met a party of two hundred men of tlie Iroquois, in Corlear's Lake, afterwards called Cham- plain, and both sides went on shore to prepare for battle. The French kept themselves undiscovered till the battle was joined, when they interfered in favor of their friends : and bv the discharge of their fire-arms, surprised the Iroquois, who were soon put to confusion, having never before seen such weapons. This affair it is supposed occurred in 1009. There is a traditionary account of the wintering of Monsieur Champlain in the country of the Onondagas, based upon the conversations of an old Frenchman, fifty years ago, with Mr. Thomas Wheeler, of Salina. By this it would seem that Champlain, with a party of French and Algonkins, made an attack upon an Iroquois fort, late in autumn, and that the hunting and fishing was so favorable that the party resolved upon spending the winter, and did so, and it was said they did so on the shore of the Onondaga Lake. In confirmation of this tradition, Mr. 0. II. Marshall, in a communication to the N. Y. Historical Society, gives the fol- lowing, which goes in part to establish the tradition, and which proves conclusively that Monsieur Champlain did visit the ^^^■; 252 ONONDAGA. V" -ill 1 Onondagas as early as 1615 : " In the summer of that year, accompanied by an interpreter, one French companion, and ten savages, Champlain embarked from Quebec in two ca- noes, ascended the Ottawa River, visited the Algonkins and Hurons living near its sources. He had been preceded a few days by ten Frenchmen, well armed, and by a Franciscan Fa- ther, Joseph Le Caron, who had gone to found a mission in the Huron country at that early day. Soon after his arrival among those tribes, Champlain was induced to join them in a warlike incursion against the Iroquoia,dwelling south of Lake Ontario. The expedition left in September, 1615, accompanied by Champlain and the armed detachment of the French. The details which he gives are so meagre that their route cannot easily be traced. After discovering the lake which perpetuates his memory, and Lake Huron, our bold adventurer and his companions were the first white men who sailed on the Avaters of Ontario. The river avo descended, says he, entering into the great lake of the Untouhonoroiis, (Lake Ontario.) Proceeding east- ward, we crossed the eastern end of the lake, from which flows the River St. Lawience, we passed large and beautiful islands on the way." It is supposed the party traversed by a circuitous route the wilderness, from tlie southern shore of Lake Ontario to On- ondaga, crossing the Oneida River at tlie fishing place, now Fort Rrewerton. After crossing this river, they mot a party of Iroquois going to the fishing, about four leagues from the fort, of which they were in search It must, therefore, be concluded that the fort was southerly from this place about four leagues. The following is Monsieur Champlain's own account as translated by Mr. Marshall, of Bufi'alo. (See proceedings of N. Y. H. S., March, 1840.) After describing their passage across the eastern end of Lake Ontario, the substance of which has already been given, the narrative proceeds as follows : — "After wards the of the lak woods nea over a sai pleasant C( which emf ries, and s and vines, agreeable All the is eighty L by land tw crossed a i which emp This lak thirty leag Iroquois cr On the 1 met and Cii tlieir fisher tives consii girl. The savf by cutting buked the ( to desist fn On V'.e 1 fort of the ilians, whic' until the nc the desire t un the ener eJ with my never befor * Oneida Ls EARLY HISTORY. 268 "After going fourteen leagues in a southerly direction, to- wards the territories of the enemy, we reached the other side of the lake, and the Indians concealed all their canoes in the woods near its bank. We traveled by land about four leagues, over a sandy plain, where I remarked a very beautiful and pleasant country, watered by many creeks and two small rivers, which emptied into the lake. Besides these were many prai- ries, and smaller lakes, abounding in game. Beautiful forests and vines, and groves of chestnut trees, bearing a small but agreeable fruit, were also noticed. All the canoes being thus concealed, wo left the lake, which is eighty leagues long and twenty-five broad, and proceeded by land twenty-five or thirty leagues. During four days we crossed a number of streams, and a river issuing from a lake,* which empties into the lake of the Entouhonorons. This lake, in which arc beautiful islands, is twenty-five or thirty leagues in circumference, and is the place where the Iroquois catch their fish, of which there is great abundance. On the 9th of October, as our Indians were scouting, they met and captured eleven Iroquois who were on their way to tlieir fishery, distant four leagues from their fort. The cap- tives consisted of three men, four women, three boys, and a girl. The savages commenced the usual torture of the prisoners by cutting off a finger of one of the women. Champlain re- buked the chief who was guilty of the act, and induced him to desist from further cruelty. ^ On t'v 10th of October, at 3 P. M„ we arrived before the fort of the enemy. Some skirmishing ensued among the In- dians, which frustrated our design of not discovering ourselves imtil the next morning. The impatience of our savages, and the desire they had of witnessing the effects of our fire-arms on the enemy, did not suffer them to wait. When I approach- ed with my little detachment, we showed them what they had never before seen or heard. As soon as they saw us, and ♦Oneida Lake and its outlet. :^f^;r.mmfi^ ■ati:mi* 254 ONONDAGA. El ' ' ii^ heard the balls whistling about their ears, they retired quietly into the fort, carrying with them their killed and wounded. We also fell back upon the main body, having five or six wounded, one of whom died. The Indians now retired out of sight of the fort, and re- fused to listen to the advice of Charaplain as to the best mode of conducting the siege, lie continued to aid them with his men, and in imitation of the more ancient mode of warfare, planned a kind of moveable tower, sufficiently high, when ad- vanced to the fort, to overlook the palisades. It was con- structed of pieces of wood placed one upon another, and was finished in one night. The village, says Champlain, was enclosed by four rows of large interlaced palisades, thirty feet high, near a body of unfailing water. Along these palisades the Iroquois had placed conductors to convey water to the outside, to extinguish fire. Galleries were constructed inside of the palisades, pro- tected by a ball-proof parapet of wood, garnished with double pieces of wood. When the tower was finished, two hundred of the strongest men advanced it near to the palisades. I stationed four marks- men on its top, who were well protected from the stones and arrows which were discharged by the enemy. The French soon drove the Iroquois from the galleries, but the undisciplined Ilurons, instead of setting fire to the pali- sades, as directed by Champlain, consumed the time in shout- ing at the enemy, and discharging harmless showers of arrows into the fort. Without discipline, and impatient of restraint, each one acted as his fancy pleased him. They placed the fire on the wrong side of the fort, so that it had no effect. When the fire had gone out, they began to pile wood against the palisades, but in such small quantities that it made no im- pression. The confusion was so great that nothing could be heard. I called out to them, and pointed out, as well as I coold, the danger they incurred by their imprudent manage- ment, but they heard nothing by reason of the great noise wL.h they made. Perceiving that I should break my head EARLY HISTORY. 265 in calling, that my remonstrances were in vain, and that there vrere no means of remedying the disorder, I resolved to effect, with my own people, what could be done, and to fire upon those we could discover. In the meantime, the enemy profited by our disorder. They brought and threw water in such abundance, that it poured in streams from the conductors, and extinguished the fire in a very short time. They continued, without cessation, to dis- charge flights of arrows, Avhich fell on us like hail. Those who were on the tower, killed and wounded a great number. The battle lasted about three hours. Two of our chiefs, some headmen, and about fifteen others were wounded. The uns(i(!cessful issue of the assault, induced the besiegers to think of retiring until they should be joined by a reenforce- ment of 500 men that was daily expected. Champlain was twice severely wounded with arrows, the first time in his leg, and the second in his knee. Tliey remained before the Onondaga fort until the 16th day of October, when, in opposition to the remonstrances of Cham- plain, and their chiefs, they raised the siege, and began their homeward march. Champlain being unable to walk, wa« placed in a basket of wickerwork, and so doubled up and fas- tened with cords, that he was unable to move. Thus bound and confined, ho was carried by the Indians on their backs for several days. The Iroquois pursued them for half a league, in hopes of cutting off some stragglers, but their arrangements for the retreat were such that they suffered no loss. The wounded were placed in the centre, and tlic front, rear, and wings were protected by chosen warriors. When they arrived on the borders of Lake Ontario, they were rejoiced to find their canoes had not been discovered and broken up by the enemy, Champlain was now desirous of returning to Quebec by way of the St. Lawrence, a route yet untraversed by the white man, but the Indians refused him a canoe and guides. He was thus compelled to accompany them home, and pass a long and dreary winter in the Huron country. ' ih I ml 256 ONONDAGA. fie did not reach Quebec until the following June, where he was received aa one risen from the grave, — the Indians having reported his death a long time previous." It is thus satisfactorily shown, that this Iroquois fort was on the shore of Onondaga Lake ; and, it is highly probable, that it was on the grouiMl subsequently occupied by Sieur Du- puis in 1GG5, and also by Count Frontenac, in his expedition against the Onondagas, 1696, and by Col. Van Schaick, in 1779. The locality was always described by the Fathers, as being destitute of trees, and as a place of surpassing beauty. The Iro({uois were delighted with the stratagems of war, and no superiority of force ever made them neglect them. They amused the French and their allies, the Ilurons, by sending to the French and desiring peace. The French de- sired them to receive Jesuit Priests among them, in hopes these prudent Fathers would, by some art, reconcile them to their Interest, and engage their affections. The Five Nations readily accepted the offer, and some Priests went along with them. But after they had these in their power, they used them only as hostages, and thereby obliged the French to stand neuter, while they prepared to attack the Adirondacks and Hurons, Avhom they defeated in a dreadful battle within two leagues of Quebec. This defeat, in sight of the French set- tlements, struck terror into all their allies, who were at that time very numerous, because their trade with the French fur- nished thorn with many of the most useful articles ; for, be- fore this time, the Indians had no iron tool among them. The neighboring tribes, the Utawawas, the Nipecerins and the rem- nant of Ilurons, left their territory, and fled for safety to the remote wilds of the south west, beyond what was thought to be the reach of the Five Nations. The successes of the Iroquois had so emboldened them. that th^y gave out, that the following winter they should pay a visit to the Governor of Canada, Under this pretence, they fathered over a thousand men, and set out. But meeting on the way the famous Pi.skaret, a chief of the x\dirondacks, they professed only a visit of fiicnd.shlp, and obtained from EARLY HISTORY. 267 him the information that the Adirondacks were divided into separate parties, engaged in hunting. After learning the lo- cation of these parties, and by their address, securing all tho information necessary to their success, they murdered the un- suspecting warrior, who had for a long time been a terror and a scourge to the braves of the Five Nations. Thus, at the hands of professed friends, perished one of the bravest chiefs of Indian history. The Five Nations also divided into two parties, and fell upon the unsuspecting Adirondacks, sur- prised them, and completely cut them in pieces. This proud and high spii'ited nation, were now completely conquered and nearly annihilated, by a people they at first contemned. Thus norished tho most numerous, haughty, polite and warlike na- tion. then in North America. The Five Nations afterwards discovered the retreat of the Ilurons and UtawaAvas, and not having fully glutted their ven- ireance, soon satisfied their enemies, that no distance could hinder their ap})roach, or time set limits to their master pas- m\\. These })eople being apprized of their approach, silently left this home for another, among the PottaAvatomies. The Five Nations pursued, and finally entered into an agreement for peace. This is said to be the first time (1G50) the Five Nations had visited these Avestern tribes, Avho were so much overaAved by the presence of these victorious warriors, that many of them left for places of security, further Avestward, leaving these indomitable braves in quiet jjossession of their territory. A ncAV accession Avas made to the French forces, by the ar- rival of Mens. De Traci, in June, IGt)"), Avith four companies of foot soldiers ; and in September of the same year, Mens. Coursel brought Avitli him a regiment of soldiers and several families, Avith conveniences for the permanent establishment of the colony. Their forces being now considerably aug- mented, the French Governor feeling his superiority, resolved to chastize the insolence of the Five Nations ; and for this purpose, the folloAving Avinter sent a strong party against the Mohawks, which expedition proved highly disastrous, and 33 •i b If I . , J 258 ONONDAGA K*.. •would have proved cntiroly ho, but for the hospitality of the Dutch, who kindly rurnishod them provisiona in thoir great diHtrosH. The followini^ year, WM, th(( whole disposahh- forco of Canada was eonwutrated with a view of inakitij; a descent in- to the Mohawk (!ouutry, and if possible to annihilate them. Tboir march was ;i hold one, considering the iinmense dreary forests through wliich tlicv were conipelled to traverse, Sdinc ei"ht hnndrcd or a thousand miles. On the approach of this warlike host, the Mohawks retireij to the forests, with their women andchihiren, leavinj^ the French the in;zlorious triumph ofhurninj; their hamlets and mnrderinj); sonuMd" their ageii warriors, who prcl'errcd to die rather than desert their lamies. The ill success of this expedition, h'ssened in a f!;reat do- cree, the i)ride and vanity of tlie l-'rench, who had felt suro of an casv conquest of the eomitrv. lint the fati<^ue and loss consequent upon so tedious an expedition, without an oppor- tunity of giviuL!; Iiiittle, made th.in desirous of ])eace, which was finally brou'jht about llu" following yeiir, l(l; in with a party of French, maU' ba'ale upon them, slew several, ami carridl one home a pvi-ouer to their own country. Monsieur Do Coursel threat em 'd the Five Nations with imni'diate war, in case they would not yield up the jjartieipators in this act ot hostile treache.-y. And the F'ivo Nations, to show their rea- diness to yield satisfaction, sent Agariata, the captain of the London Docunieiits, vol. 11. p. I.m. KARI.V HISTORY. 269 company that connnittcd the ajrf^roHsion, with sonic forty oth- ers, to ht'g pardon. But Monsieur ('oursel instantly hanged .\;^ariata na an example, hul'orc the faees of hi.s country- inon, wlio returned panie-stricken by this severity of the French. The fieace however was maintained for several years without itiiVaetion. In 1(17-, the subtle Count Frontenac, who was now Gover- nor of (Janada, jxTsuiided the ehiefs of the Five Nations to ;ilI()W iiini to build several forts within their territory under pretence of stores for tiicrehandize, and the scc^urity of Ills traileis. The En<:;lish an. Dutch, on the contrary, prosecuted tlicir uicasures only by th(.' arts of peace. In 1 x^ IMAGE EVALUATrON TEST TARGET (MT-S) /. r/- 1.0 I.I 11.25 |50 "™^^ ^ i;^ 12.0 2.2 1.8 14 IIIIII.6 1 ilL;(ugi.apIliLi Sciences Corporation 23 WEST MAIN STREET WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580 (716) 872-4503 m. ■^ iV iV N> "9> >^.. ^> \ M ■%" 6^ «^ u. /. 260 ONONDAGA. respective colonies. But from what can be gatliered, the French were by far tlie most enterprising and persevonn<^ ; often pushing their emissaries far beyond where the whites had ever been, they every v.here spread the fame and splen- dor of the " Grand 3Ionarque." It must be acknowlodccd that for a long period, the French had a decided snperioritv over the English in the Indian trade, who in their Indian af- fairs, always entrusted the chief management to the special care of the Governor and principal oificcrs of the jirovince whereas the English left it almost entirely to their tnulers, who Avere mostly personally interested, and men who had lit- tle knowledge of public affairs. The French, with the greal- CBt perseverance, pushed their traders, and built forts for their protection far in the interior. The only opposition they met with was from the Five Nations, who continually allowed the English traders to come among them. The local advanta-'es which the English possessed over the French, caused the lat- ter much alarm, for thej'' plainly foresaw that the Enirlisli would not only bo dangerous rivals, but would be able to un- dersell them with their goods, thus their trade would become ruined, their labor lost, and the interest destroyed, which had been gained at great expense. The Iro-juois carried on war with many of the nations, wlio yielded a profitable trade to the French, and frequently intercepted supplies of goods and ammunition and converted them to their own use. This in a measure weakened the French power and influence, for they saw clearly thr.t they were not able to protect their allies from injury or insult. The Senecas always had a peculiar aversion to the French, and could scarcely ever be induced to receive any priests among them. They were consequently more firmly attaciied to the English, who constantly supplied them with powder, arms, &c. The (xovernor, Do la Barre, for these reasons, made complaint to the English Governor, Dongan, (a profess- ed papist,) of New York, 1084, stating the injuries the Sene- cas had done the French. To which the principal Seneca sachem returned a spirited reply, vindicating the conduct of EARLY HISTORY. 2C1 his nation. Monsieur Do la Barre, at this time, Lad gathered the disposable force of Canada, at Cadaraqui. His design was to throw a French army into Onondaga, and thus fright- en the Five Nations into terms of his own proposing. This avmy consisted of nearly two thousand men, including Indian allies, which for that time was a formidable force. While stationed at this place, in the heat of August, his a^my suf- fered so much from sickness, fatigue and hunger, that he was completely unable to accomplish any thing, except by treaty. Accordingly, Monsieur Ue la Barre passed across the lake with as many men as were able to travel, and arrived at the Kaihohage River. The Indians, especially the Mohawks and Senccas, had little inclination to treat, while the Onondagas, Oneidas and Cayugas, over whom the resident Jesuits held considerable influence, were more favorably inclined. Al- though strict alliance and friendsliip existed between the two crowns, still tlie English, seeing it much to their advantage, advised the Five .Nations not to be influenced by the French. It Avas at this coancil, held at Kaihohage, that De la Barre, on the part of the French, and the famous Garangula, on the part of the Five Nations, carried on one of those remarkable debates which sometimes so effectually brings out the charac- ter of the diplomatists of sovereign nations. The firmness of Garangula very much frustrated the plans of the French, who had calculated upon the easy control of affairs, and of manag- ing things entirely in their own way. On the 2d of August, 1684, the Onondaga and Cayuga sa- chems made proposals to the Governor of New York asking permission to be taken under the protection of the King, stat- ing that they were willing to grant to him their lands ^'on the Susquehanna River to prevent the colonists of Pennsylvania from settling on them, and to protect themselves against the French.* The following is the speech of the Onondaga chief Dekan- issora, on the occasion :f m M i' Hi * London Documents, vol. 4, ]\ 1S2. t Ibid vol. 5, p. 107. f'i 262 ONONDAGA. "Brother Corlear — Your sachem is great and we but a small people. When the English came to Manhattas, that is New York, Aragiske, which is now called Virginia, and Ja- quokrandgare, called Maryland, they were but a small people and we a great people, and finding they were a good people, we gave them land and treated them civilly ; and now since you arc a great people and we but a small, you will protect us from the French, which if you do not, we shall lose all our hunting and beavers, and the French will have them, and be angry with us for bringing them to you. Brethren — We have puL all our land and ourselves under the protection of the great Duke of York, the brother of your great sachem. We have given the Susquehanna River, which we won with the sword for this government, and desire that it may be a branch of that great tree that grows here, whose top reaches to the sun, under whose branches Ave shall shelter ourselves from the French or any other people, and our fire burn in your houses, rnd your fire burn Avith us, and we de- sire that it always may be so, and will not that any of your Penn's people shall settle on the Susquehanna River, for our young folks and soldiers are like wolves in the wood, as your sachems of Virginia know, we having no other lands to leave to our wives and children. We have put ourselves under the protection of the great sachem, Charles, that lives over the great lake, and we give you two white dressed deer skins, to be sent to the great sa- chem, Charles, that ho may write upon them, and put a great red seal upon them. That we do put the Susquehanna River above the Washiata or falls, and all the rest of our land, un- der the great Duke of York, and no one else. Our brethren, his servants, were as fathers to our wives and children, and did give us bread Avhen Ave Avere in need of it, and we Avill neither join ourselves or our lands to any other government than his, and Ave desire that Corlear, the Governor, may send over to your great sachem, Charles, that dwells over the great lake, with this belt of Avampum-peag, and another smaller belt for the Duke of York, his brother, and we give a beaver to Corlear to se; of Virginia, ( ginia,) we let in Corlear's 1 (juehanna Rii under his goA of what Ave n your friend tl are a free pe( and do give ^ The Marq government ( from France, cover the fad continued thi themselves ui encouraged i who bought French. In arranged ano they repaired visions. The Montreal, cor dians. Order as possible at agara in ord( force of Fren Five Nations used every e They sent to plied by the ] and destroye( ated near the ments, who a fidy. It was between the I pedition, det( EARLY HISTORY. 263 Corlear to send over this proposition ; and your great man of Virginia, (meaning the Lord Effingham, Governor of Vir- ginia,) we let you know that great Penn did speak to us here in Corlear's house, by his agents, and desired to buy the Sus- quehanna River ; but we would not hear!:en to him, nor come under his government, and therefore desire you to be witness of what we now do, and that we have already done, and tell your friend that lives over the great lake, we know that we are a free people, uniting ourselves to what sachem we please, and do give you one beaver skin to establish it." The Marquis De Nonville succeeded De la Barre in the government of Canada, in 1685 ; having brought with him from France, a considerable reenforcement, he resolved to re- cover the fading honor of his nation. The Five Nations still continued the war with many of the tribes who had placed themselves under the protection of the French. They were encouraged in these predatory excursions, by the English, who bought their furs, the other nations selling theirs to the French, In order to divert the Five Nations, the French arranged another expedition in May, 1687. For this purpose they repaired the fort at Cadaraqui, and supplied it with pro- visions. The whole disposable force of Canada was gathered at Montreal, consisting of fifteen hundred men f .ad five hundred In- dians. Orders were then sent to Mackinaw, to assemble as many as possible at that post, when the whole were to move on to Ni- agara in order to make an attack upon the Senecas. A large force of French and Indians were here congregated, and the Five Nations being informed of these mighty preparations, used every exertion to give the enemy a warm reception. They sent to Albany for ammunition, and were liberally sup- plied by the English. In the mean time, the French attacked and destroyed two small settlements of the Five Nations, situ- ated near the Cadaraqui Fort, destroying their prisoners by tor- ments, who all the while upbraided the French for their per- fidy. It was on account of the strong attachment existing between the Senecas and English, that the French by this ex- pedition, determined to chastize them. The party from the M Hi' 264 ONOiNDAGA. west met M. De Nonville's party at lerundequat. Here the French erected a fort, where four hun(h-ed men Avere left to guard the baggage and canoes. The sole object of the expedi- tion, was to stoj) the English trade. The French proceeded to search out the villages of the Senecas, and coming near their principal settlement, about seven leagues from leruii(lc((u;it, found it entirely deserted. Whereupon they concluded to try and overtake the women and children, and make them prison- ers, thinking thereby to accoinplish their object by treaty. During their march to the Seneca towns, they had passed a body of Senecas, who lay in ambush near where the French had passed. The French finding no traces of them, for a while concluded all had fled beyond their reach ; but suddenlv, while on their march, they were attacked by a large body of Scnecas, who loudly raised the war cry, and discharged their firearms with deadly effect upon the French, who were thrown into complete disorder ; and, had it not been for the friendly Indians, they would probably have been irrecoverably I'outed. Then- loss as it Avas, amounted to over one hundred slain. The Senecas lost about eighty. The French commander, De Non- vdle, was very much disappointed in this unexpected turn in affiiirs, and his men ineeting so bold a reception, could hardly be persuaded to 'renew the attack. Having taken time to rest, M. De Nonville concluded to mai'ch on and burn the Senecas' village; but on their arrival, they found it in ashes, and not an enemy to be seen, except two aged warriors, who. like devoted martyrs to their country's glory, died heroically under the most excruciating torments inflicted by the French. They also destroyed a few hamlets that fell in their uay, and much corn in the fields. After these exploits, they re- turned to the banks of the lake, where the little garrison had been left, and proceeded to Niagara. Before the French left for home, they erected a strong fort at Niagara, and left a garrison of one hundred men, and eight months provisions. Upon the breaking up of this armament, the western Indians returned thanks to the French General, for establishing so strong a fort for their protection against the Five Nations, EARLY HISTORV. 265 and both mutually pledged themselves not to make peace with them. Tiio garrison of which wo have just spoken, was soon so closely besieged by the warriors of the Five Nations, that they all perished of hunger, except seven or eight, who es- caped through the interference of some of the western Indians. The French gained notliing but shame and disap.pointment through the whole of this affair ; and to make a show, and to keep up appearances, sent thirteen of the Iro(juois whom they liiid formerly surprisf.'d at Cadara(iin, to France, as trophies of their victories, and to the everlasting disgrace of the French, thoy were placed in the galleys as rebels against a Christian king. From this bold irruption of the French into the strong- est hold within their borders, the Five Nations had just cause of alarm, and the Onondagas made the following pro- position to the-'' ancient ally, the Mayor of Albany : Dokanissora speaker — We have heard that the French are going to make war upon us. We have been to Cadaraqui ,in(l taken some prisoners. We have not seen the Maquas. We desire of His Excellency to send for our fort at Onondaga, SIX great guns. The Governo'- of Ca(hu'aqui desired us to come to him this spring, but wo did not go. V>'e desire to deliver the French prisoners to your Excel- lency. The F'rench have a fort at Onyngara, (Niagara.) The Cayougas and Sinnekes begin to groAv faint-hearted be- cause the F'rench are strong. His Excellency spoke of making a fort, which was pro- posed to be made at Kajonhare, but we are of opinion, that it would be better to be at Sowego, (Oswego) a place a day's journey from Onondaga. We renew the covenant chain and give a belt of wampum ten deep. Answer — by Peter Schuyler, Mayor, and Aldermen, who commends them not to go to Canada, oi to hearken to the visit of the French Governor ; for if you do, says he, you will suffer as have the Senecas. He recommends them to be firm and united, and they will be protected by the English. 34 K' 206 ONONDAGA. He advises tliem to winter at Catskill, Rooloffe, Johuson'a Kill, and other eonvoniont places. Let none stay at the castles but such as are fit for war. The women and children should he protected. The Mayor recommends the Five Nations to send one hun- dred men from the Senecas, fifty from the Cayugas, sixty from the Unondagas, fifty from the Oneidas, ami forty from the Maquas, to be at Schenectady this winter, (17H7-8) to join the militia, for it is expected the French will come by way of Corlear's Lake. This message was acceptable to the chiefs, Avho send with joy to acquaint the brethren. Hth February, 1087-8. Col. Dongan, Governor of New York, declares to the chiefs of the Five Nations, that the French shall deliver up all prisoners and goods taken from tne Indians, and that he will protect them against all attacks of the French, threatening war if they continue opposed. The French, he declares are the sworn enemies of the Five Nations, and states that they have declared to him that they built the fort at Onyagara to protect themselves from harm agjiinst the Five Nations. He states that an armistice of fifteen months is agreed up- on to give time for the two governments to agree upon terms of peace, and proposes to assist them in the prosecution of the war by furnishing men and arms, if the war should be continued. Answer of the Six Nations to Governor Dongan, through Dekanissora, chief speaker : — The sachems return thanks. for the care of the Governor. and because he resents the acts of the French, and for not hiding any thing from them. We condemn the claim of the French to any part of our territories, and demand that their forts be speedily demolished. They have no claim even to Cadaraqui or Mont Royall, nor none of our lands towards the Otowawas, Diondadies, Twichtwichs. They claim title because they burned our cabins and destroyed our corn. If that is a title, we have a title to the whole of Canada, for there we subdued whole nations of Indians, and der i EARLY HISTORY 267 Indians, and deinolislied their castles, in so much, that great trees grow where they were built. Our lands have been placed under the protection of the English King, and ho must protect them and suifor no en- croachments. We formerly had a friendship for the French, but it was held l>y the left hand ; that is broken off now, and the English htivo the right hand, fast and firm, and we renew the chain, that it may bo firm and lasting. If the Governor of Canada will not restore the prisoners and goods, we will continue the war. But we leave the whole business with the Governor of New York, and whatever he and the great king agrees to, we stand by, whether peace or war. The great captain of the Onondagas, called " Canadgcgai," (Black Kettle,) Avas invited in to the house of Madam Toulon and there met Pore Valiant, who desired a discourse. And upon Avhat Avill you discourse, said the captain 'i Do you speak first. "Whereupon the first asked how it was with the Five Nations, and how they were inclined ? Why do you ask mo how it is with them, Avhen you daily converse with the Gover- nor, who is their head ? I should rather ask you how affairs stand, that have been so long in agitation with him, to whom he referred all things, and whose commands we only obey ? The Five Nations Avere advised by their English allies not to listen to any proposals of peace from the French, and they were promised supplies of arms and ammunition for carrying on the war. But in spite of all the efforts of the English to prevent, the Five Nations continued their wars with the south- ern Indians. Through the influence of the Jesuit priests, many of the Five Nations about this time settled in Canada, for the sake of enjoying religious instruction ; but declared, that if a Protestant priest was settled among them, they would return. M. De Nonville called an assembly of the chiefs of the Five Nations at Montreal, and all French officers were ordered to cease hostilities till the deliberations should be . M t >1j 1 1 t \i It Li y i lii 268 O N O N D A G A . known, for he confidently expected to conclude a peace with the Five Nations. In the mean time, Adario, the great chief of the western Indians, finding that his nation had become suspected hy the French, since the time they had shown so much favor to the Ihiglish, when they attempted to trade iit Mackinaw ; resolved hy some notahle action against the Five Nations, thereby to recover the good opinion of tne French. For this purpose, he set out from Mackinaw with one hun- dred men, and ciiiuc to Cadara(|ui for intelligence of M. De Nonville. lie was informed by the commander of the I'arri- son, that a negotiation for a peace was on foot, and that am- bassadors from Onondaga would be expected in about ten days at Montreal, and he was advi^sed to I'eturn to Mackinaw with- out an attempt to accomplish his wishes. Adario, surpviseil at this news, was greatly alarmed for the safety of his nation who he thought would become a prey to the rapacity of the Iroquois, through the perfidy of the French. He dissembloil his concern, and instead of returning to Mackinaw, as tiie French oliicer i)roposed, he concluded to wait at the Cadaraijiii Falls, a place which he knew the ambassadors must pass, and intercept them. After a suspense of four or five days, the deputies came along, guarded by about forty warriors. They were surprised, and all killed or taken prisoners. The ambassadors being greatly surprised at this piece of what they supposed to be French perfidy, told Adario the de- sign of the journey, Avho instantly assumed an air of ani^er towards M. De Nonville, and promised revenge upon him at the first opportunity, for making a tool of him, to commit so horrid a treachery. After mutual explanations, the crafty Adario dismissed his prisoners with presents and provisions, at the same time declaring, he should never be at ease till the Five Nations had been fully revenged upon the French. The manner of Adario was so perfectly in keeping with his asser- tions, that the deception was complete. The ambassadors were all Onondagas and Oneidas, with the far-famed Onon- daga Chieftain, Dekanissora, at their head. They had all along, through the influence of the Jesuits, entertained great EARLY HISTORY, 269 affection for tho French. 15ut this triui.suction greatly changed their mindH ; and instead of friendship and love, revenge and (li.'tj.'ust pervaded their hearts, and tho Five Nations resolved unanimously, to prosecute the war with vigor against the French. It was not long before tho French felt the bloody effects of this fell passion. For on the 2(!th of July UiHH, twelve hundred of the Irocjuois invaded the Island of Montreal, with- out the least previous notice, and the Froncli had not the least suspicion of such an attempt. They burned, sacked, plun- dered and laid waste all tho country around, and made a ih'eadful slaughter of nu'n, wdiuen aiul children. Over a thou- sand French are supposed to have perished by this invasion, iind they were, as it seems, completely at the disposal of the Indians. Several French were carried away captives, greater part of whom, miserably pei'ished under the most excruciat- ini!; t(U'ments. The whole colony was thrown into conster- nation, and Valrenes, the commander at Cadaracpii, by order 'n De Nouville, abandoned the fortress at that place. The 'larharities of the massacre are too shocking to relate."- The Five Nations lost but three men in this expedition, and those arc said to have been drunk and were left behind. The Five Nations were far from jjcing satiated by this invasion, for in the October following, they attacked and destroyed all the lower part of the Island of Montreal, and carried off manv prisoners. The consequence of these exjicditions, was the abandonment by the French of fort Cadara([ui, and their liiiht vessels upon the lake ; and they were completely shut up on the Island of Montreal, in comparatively very narrow limits. The news of the success of the Five Nations, spread through all the Indian tribes. It had the effect to bring the French into very low repute among them, and their affairs were thrown into great disorder. The great body of the west- * Charlevoix says, " lis ouvireiit le seiu des tcniniC!) tnoientt's pour en arra- liier le fruit qi'i files |K)rtoient ils iiiirenl des enlan,« tout vivnns d la broche. El iL'or.traignirent les meres de les tourner. pour lea faire rotir." ; ) h 'lit TW^l 270 ONONDACJA. orn IndiariH, had already faultcrcd in tlioir allogianco to the Fri'iicli, and many were making ovorturos to tho EniTJish throuf^h tile Fivo Nations. At this cri.sia, tho French oom- niandor at Maokiiiaw oxpericiKied groat dillioulty in niaintuin- ing his post, lint tho oMt('ri)risiiig and sagacious Mons. Pe- rot had tho prudonoo and sncooss of divortitig this order of allairs, .so tiiat tho contomphitod sohonios of a general union wore not fully carried into ofToot. Tho colonists of Cainida were in a most doplorahlc condition ; their men had heen con- tinually harrassed hy watching and fighting tho Five Nations, and in extending their enterprises among tho western Indi- ans, so th;it tillage and hushnndry had heen entirely ncs- lected. During the several incursions of small parties of tlic Five Nations, the French lost several thousands of their in- habitants. It is difficult to conceive the deplorable situiition and distress they were in — none could plant or sow, or pass from one place to another, wit'iout danger of being killed by a skulking foe. The whole country being laid waste, famine began to rage, and a mi.-orablo end was like to come of the colony. Had the Indians understood tho method of attack- ing fortified places, nothing could have saved tlie French from entire destruciion. Considering the state; of Indian af- fairs during this p(M-io(l, that the Five Nations were divided in their sentiments and measures, that the Onondagas, Cayu- gas and Oneidas, wci'o more or less inllueneed by French Jesuits, and were by them diverted from pr(jseeuting the war against (';inada, by urging these three nations against the southern Indians, and persuading them to send their war par- ties that Avay ; considering that the Senecas had a war at the same time with the western Indians, and that the mea- sures observed by the English, during all the reign of King James II., gave the Indians rather ground of jealousy than assistance ; whoever considers these things and what the Iro- quois did actually perform, will hardly doubt that they at that time were an overmatch for the French in Canada. In September, 1689, a deputation was sent from the New England colonies, to renew the friendship of the Five Nations, I i:ari,v II I hto uy. m and to engage thorn imains«t the eastern Indians, who made war upon those (:()h)ni('(4, and wore instigated by the French. The eastern Indiiins had ahoady preceded them, by four mes- Mges on tho sanie errand, and the En^'lish were anxious to know the reception they had met with. The were willing' to briglitt'ii tho chain of friendship, and ex[iressod in unmeasured terms their hatred of the Krench, and to continue tho strug- gle 80 h)n;; as a Frenchuian remained alive, even to their own .lestruction. 'i'hey couhl not be prevailed upon to engage in •nvar upon the eastern Indians, but declared their intention iif living;; and dyiiijix iu peace with them. The Kngiish in New- York and Albany, having fears of the French in Canada, and their Indian allies, held a private con- tVroncc with the chiefs of tho Five Nations at Albany, 2r)th September, wheri' they engaged to stand by their English t'ricnils in any emergency whatsoever, and to continue their war with the French. On the 27t'i December, TOSH, the Mayor of Albany, Peter Schuyler, was notified that a council would be held at Onon- daga, to consult on injportant business, with a desire that the English would be represented there. But little notice was taken of tho invitation ; only to send three Indians to dis- suade the Five Nations from entertaining thoughts of peace, or yielding to a cessation of arms. On the 22(1 of .January, a general council was opened at Onondaga, consisting of eiglity sachems. The Albanians had sent a messenger to attend this assembly. Sadekanaghtie stated that tho Count Froutenac had returned to the govern- ment of Canada, and invited an assembly of the Five Nations to meet him at Cadarai^ui, and in particular, that Dekanissora should be there to treat of peace. Some of the sachems, who were favorably disposed towards tho French, advised their meeting the French Governor in the spring. But after a long and tedious debate, it was concluded not to send Dekanis- sora with a delegation to Cadaraqui, and finally sent word to ill: T Pit. 272 ONONDAGA. Governor Frontenac that they had little faith in the French, and could not rely on their treaties, nor trust their professions of friendsliip. The Count Frontenac was still desirous of rousinn; the drooping spirits of the French in Canada. The English and French wore now engaged in war, and to rally the coi'vago of his desponding countrymen, it was arranged that i/iirce several parties shouUl make sepai-ate at*^acks upon the English colonies in liopes to lessen the confidence the Five Nations had in the English. One coniniandod by ^^ D. Ail- lebout, M. D. Mantel, and 1*. Le Moyne, made a descent upon Schenectady, in Fcl)rnary, ](!8iJ-l,)0, whicli conii)lete!y dcso- hvtcd that village. The colonists of both countries were now heartily engaged in the war ; the course the Five Nations de- cided to pursue, was of infinite importance to both. The very being of the French colony depended upon it, as well a; the .safety of the Englisli. Affairs were >iow destined to take a turn decidedly favorable to the Froich, and tliis in tlio main was owing to the .-(ubtloty, wisdom, prudence and pensevorance of M. Do Frontenac, in whom the colonists of Ciinada had unhesitating coTiildence i'l respect to his public spiiit and ca- pacity. They entered into all his measures with alacrity, and obeyed his commands with cheerfulness, whereas the English people held their colonial Governors in no very higti esteem. The Count Frontenac Vr-as in hopes the Five Nations would incline to peace, and uifoi'ed further proposals, l)nt Ids ambas- sadors were taken prisoners, and after being compelled to run the gauntlet, were delivered to tlio English. This conduct satisfied M. Do Frontenac, that tliere was little hope in nego- tiation. Tiic French were continually harrassed by small par- ties of the Five Nations, on their route to remote posts, and also in the immediate neighborhood of Montreal, oftentimes victorious, spreading alarm and desolation throughout the whole country. The English at this time did not render the jissistance the Five Nations expected, in consecpience of which the Mohawks, being neareat to the English, sent one of their chiefs to Monsieur De Fi'ontenac with a view of negotiating a peace. The ambassador found the Count ready to treat on terms of friem to his nation, and friendship cute the war w operate. The idle words of ] ly to the work would succeed on the M'ar by an attack upor hundred men, ter Schuyler, \ expedition of 1 command of S Montreal, bein force such a re Ham, by his im ment, and was i gage that had failed, and not tinned their ex rence, from Mr Notwithstandin continual hara> under of keepi ground, or of r tress throughoi added to the 1 kept up his woi anee of convin with the Englif afraid, — that 1 invasion. The eitirely engro> In lian allies W( mon enemy, wl among them. EARLY HISTORY. 278 Til terms of friendship, and gave a belt, with proposals of peace to his nation. Thoy also renewed their professions of peace and friendship with the English, and their resolution to prose- cute the war with the French provided the English would co- operate. The Five Nations were no longer to be amused with idle words of English professions, and unless they came bold- ly to the work, there was every reason to believe the French would succeed in making peace, and leave tho English to carry on the war by themselves. Finally a plan was arranged for an attack upon Quebec and Montreal. A land force of five hundred men, and a large body of Indians, under Major Pe- ter Schuyler, were to advance by Lake Champlain, and a naval expedition of thirty sail, by the Gulf of St. Lawrence, under command of Sir Wm. Phipps. M. Do Callieres, Governor of Montreal, being apprised of these intentions, gave the land force such a reception as obliged them to retire, and Sir Wil- liam, by his imbecility and inactivity, let slip the golden mo- ment, and was repulsed with the loss of all the cannon and bag- gage that had been landed. The whole expedition signally failed, and nothing was accomplislied. The Five Nations con- tinued their excursions in small parties all along the St. Law-- rence, from Montreal to Quebec, and destroyed many persons. Notwithstanding the French preserved their country, these continual hiirassiug^, and the necessity they were continually under of keeping guard, prevented them from cultivating the ground, or of reaping the harvest. This occasioned great dis- tress throughout the colony, and the miseries of famine were added to the horrors of Indian war. The aged Frontenac kept up his wonted energy ; he was well aware of the import- ance of convincing the Five Nations, that their joint attacks with the English had neither digcouraged him or made him afraid, — that he was as vigorous for war as before the last invasion. The distractions in the province of New York, so entirely engrossed the attention of the English, that their In lian allies Avere left almost alone to contend with the com- mon enemy, which was the cause of considerable disaffection them. They had made proposals of peace through 35 1.1 '1 i i *. I .1 among 1 < m 274 ONONDAGA. the Mohawks to Count Frontenac, but through the interposi- tion of Colonel Sloughtcr, then Governor of New York, it was not consummated. The Five Nations continued their incur- sions during the whole winter, (1090-01,) greatly distressing the French. In the summer of this year, Major Peter Schuy- ler, then Mayor of Albany, made, witli a party of the Five Nations, a bold irruption upon the French settlements by way of Lake Champlain. This expedition was successful. The Enirlish returned victorious, which inspired the warriors of the Five Nations with new vigor and new hopes. They con- tinued their hostilities under their favorite leader Kanahjeaga, who with his warriors, and by his frequent incursions, kept the country in a constant state of alarm, and continually har- rassed the French borders. In the midst of these distresses, the French Governor preserved his accustomed sprightliness and humor, animating every body around him. He learned that a considerable body of the Five Nations were hunting beaver wc;>t of the Niagara lliver in fancied security, and he resolved at once to surprise them. For this purpose three hundred young men Avere sent forward under command of •Monsieur Beaucouv, in the heart of winter, and the party suffered severely during the march from cold and want of provisions, having none but what they carried on their backs. After an almost incrediljlc march, for so severe a season, they succeeded in surprising about eighty of the Five Nations, who made a brave defense, and only yielded after they had lost most of their men dead on the spot. The French re- treated to Montreal, with a few prisoners to grace their tri- umph. This was a severe expedition, but it tended to revive the flagging spirits of the French, and taught the Five Nations that they were by no means a despicable enemy. In return, the Five Nations, took possession of all the passes, and entirely c; structed the communication of the French with their western allies, intercepting every traveler who chanced to pass that way. Kanahjeaga, with a large band of warriors hung around the Cadaraqui River, in hopes of meeting parties from the upper lakes, or of French, proceeding that way succeeding ii the country { had with hin the country j The populati diers had stri tirely on the jeaga had be length began four hundred least cxpecte French had the Indians f ing twenty r French lost fc caped from th puting the p captain, who, was himself I French for t the forts, and his scalp. T when he four bravados of h his good nam torture of t\ cruelty, M. II could invent, treaty was en of the Englisl June, 1092, a dislike, becaui sistance as h reason to exj after much coi edr This CO Not EARLY HISTORY, 275 succeeding in his designs, he resolved to carry the war into the country around Montreal. The French accounts say, he had with him six hundred men. This famous chief overran the country as the sweeping torrent does the lowly valley. The population sought shelter in fortified places, and the sol;- diers had strict orders to remain within their forts and act en- tirely on the defensive. After the warriors under Kanah- jeaga had become weary of slaughter aad desolation, they at length began to retire. Mons. Vaudreuil pursued them with four hundred men. He overtook them at a time when they least expected it; a desperate battle ensued; although the French had nearly surrounded about two hundred of them, the Indians fought bravely, and cut tlieir way through, leav- ing twenty men dead on the spot ; the rest escaped. The French lost four ofBcers and a number of privates. Having es- caped from this attack, we next find them below Montreal, dis- puting the passage of a flotilla under convoy of a French captain, who, as he passed through the isles in Lake St. Pierre, was himself killed and his whole party entirely routed. The French for the whole summer, were obliged to keep within the forts, and not a man could stir out without danger of losing his scalp. The Count Frontenac was pierced to the heart, when he found that he could not revenge these insults and bravados of his enemies. At this time, he signally tarnished his good name and venerable character, by the murder and torture of two unfortunate captives. Notwithstanding tliis cruelty, M. De Frontenac, used every device his imagination could invent, to bring about a peace, but without success. A treaty was entered into between Capt. Ingoldsby on the part of the English, and the chiefs of the Five Nations, at Albany, June, 1692, at which time, the Indians manifested considerable dislike, because the English did not so fully render them as- sistance as had been agreed, and as the Five Nations had reason to expect, considering they were at open war. But after much counselling, the chain of friendship was " brighten- ed." This council was managed on the part of the Five Na- 3li '^ 276 ONONDAGA, tions by Ohedaun, an Oneida sachem, who made a long and very sensible speech. The Count De Frontenac knew well, that unless some bold and successful enterprise should succeed, it would soon be too late to effect a reaction. An attack upon the Mohawks was contemplated, for the purpose of showing that the English would not protect their nearest neighbors. The winter was chosen as the most appropriate season for surprising their ene- mies, who could not keep scouts abroad at that inclement sea- son, or the English render timely assistance. An army, con- sisting of French and Indians, amounting to seven hundred men, and supplied with snow-shoes and everything necessary for a winter campaign, set out from Prairie de Magdaleine. 15th of January, 1693. After a march of incredible hardship through pathless for- ests, they passed Schenectady on the 6th of February, and succeeded in capturing the three lower Mohawk castles, with little opposition. Three hundred Mohawks were made pri- soners, and several slain, the French having lost thirty men. On the retreat of the French, they were pursued by a party of Albany militia, under Major Peter Schuyler, but nothing decisive accomplished. This invasion of the French into the immediate neighborhood of the English settlements, produced the greatest alarm, and had the eff"ect also to dishearten the Mohawks, but still, through English influence, they were in- duced to continue the war. Hitherto, for a number of years, the French had been unable to bring down their furs and pel- try from Mackinaw, and they had so accumulated, that there were large stores on hand. The Five Nations had so blocked up the passage, that there had been but little communication. But now, a time had come, when it was so, that two hundred canoes loaded with furs, had arrived safely at Montreal, which caused as much joy there, as ever the richly laden galleons did in Spain. By the bold stroke before related, the warlike ardor of the Five Nations was considerably abated, and as it was the pohcy of the French, to secure a peace on as favorable terms as pos- sible, negotii tinned throu the Jesuits, caused them oil for that p of Albany, ^ arras, ammui to the Five cas, Cayuga for continuii Mohawks, m( held back, ambassador informing th considered, head of whoii is said to ha\ He rehearse(] of the Engli have done ho nation, with is said to ha\ tiation was ] praying Indi branch of tli French and attachments, vention at All raissioners wc ehusetts and were desirous which were, t fort at Cadar English shou; dians. But French shoult raqui, nor inc EARLY HISTORY. 277 sible, negotiations for that purpose were set on foot, and con- tinued through the years 1693 and 1694. The influence of the Jesuits, and the disappointed hopes of English assistance, caused them more willingly to yield to the opening of a coun- cil for that purpose ; but, through the agency of Col. Fletcher of Albany, who distributed timely and liberal presents of arras, ammunition, knives, hatchets, clothing, provisions, &c., to the Five Nations, the negotiation was staid. The Sene- cas, Cayugas, Onondagas and Oneidas, felt more in mood for continuing on friendly terms with the French ; but the Mohawks, more under the immediate influence of the English, held back. The four nations met and resolved to send an ambassador to the Governor of the French, but not without informing the Mohawks and English, whose advice was to be considered. Several sachems were sent to Albany, at the head of whom was Dekanissora, whose speech on this occasion, is said to have been a brilliant effort of native tact and genius. He rehearsed the aff'airs of the French, and the pusillanimity of the English, with an accuracy and ingenuity, that would have done honor to the most skilful diplomatists of the polished nation, with which he was then in contact. Sadekanashtie is said to have taken a part in this council. While this nego- tiation was pending, Dekanissora visited Montreal and the praying Indians, in order to secure the cooperation of that branch of the Five Nations. But they, true alike to the French and their Jesuit priests, remained unaltered in their attachments. Dekanissora returned, and laid before the con- vention at Albany, an account of his mission to Canada. Com- missioners were present from New- York, New-Jersey, Massa- chusetts and Connecticut. His report was, that the French were desirous of peace only on their own terms, the chief of which were, that they should have the privilege to rebuild the fort at Cadaraqui, and keep a garrison there, and that the English should not be encouraged to trade with Canada In- dians. But the policy of the Five Nations was, that the French should not be permitted to rebuild H^-, fort at Cada- raqui, nor include their Indian allies in the p\.'a> o, with whom ' m < iJ] Sl-!l 278 ONONDAGA. the Five Nations wished to be at war. They were dismissed with a large supply of presents, and many fair promises in case of compliance. They threatened the Five Nations with utter destruction, in case of their refusal of the terms they had offered. The Five Nations refusing to come to the terms proposed, the Governor resolved to force them, and as he suspected they continued obstinate through English influence, he resolved to make an attack upon the Mohawks, but a prisoner, learning his design, escaped and informed them, and the expedition was abandoned. In the summer of 1695, the Count Do Frontenac sent a body of French and Indians to repair the fortifications at Ca- daraqui, which were found to be in a much bettor condition than was expected. The French certainly possessed them- selves of a great advantage in this place, as it was considered one of great security to their traders in passing from Macki- naw to Montreal. It served as well for stores, as a place of security and retreat, in all enterprises against the Five Na- tions, an ''. it greatly exposed them in their irruptions to the neighborhood of the French. The English were exceedingly uneasy when they found that the French had regained posses- sion of Cadaraqui, and blamed the Five Nations for not pre- venting it. The French were also troubled upon hearing that the western Indians had nearly concluded a peace with the Five Nations. Had the western Indians perseveringly ad- hered to their first intentions of making peace, it would pro- bably have ended the colony of the French in Canada, for without their aid it Avould have been impossible for them to continue. These nations being continually at war with the Iroquois, they were obliged to keep at home a large force to defend themselves against those nations, otherwise the Iro- quois would have been able to throw their whole force against Canada. Having secured the alliance of the western Indians, and failing of making a peace with the Five Nations, the Count Frontenac resolved upon a signal effort to conquer and subdue them. Ilaviuj now called by 1 ammunition an and wounded i Nations feel tli ing his terms c assembled all t body of Canac mustered, consi Adirondacks, i Indians of the Instead of waut ai' ()s\vkc;o — Kxtr ait from the Journal OF Conrad Weiskr — Of the sevkkai. Nations incoruorated with the Iii(>- chuy]er and Captain John Bieeker, were dispatched by the Governor and Council, with all possible expedition, to inform the chiefs of the Five Nations, that their sending messengers to Canada Avas very ill received by the Governor of New-York. Those gentlemen were charged to use all possible arguments to dissuade them from a repetition of such evil practices ; to break up their correspondence with the French ; to revive the ancient covenant chain, and renew the Governor's promises of protection ; reminding them, that the French were always first to do ihem harm. Baptist and Arnont were to be left at Onondaga to watch the motions of the Indians, and prevent their deputies from ,,'oing to Canada, and from holding any sort of correspondence vith the French ; persuading them to go to Albany as usual, and promising them, if they desired to be made Christians, the government would provide fit persons to that end, and by all means to prevent the Jesuits from remaining among them. In a council, held at Onondaga, on the 1st and 2d days of May, at which Averc present John Baptist Van Eps, and Arnont Viele, interpreters, and Johannis Schuyler, and Jo- hannis Bieeker, with chiefs and head men of the Five Nations. The Earl of Belomont's instructions were submitted for the i - Ja:!! :iir ^n -..JlL^' 288 ONONDAGA. consideration of the Five Nations, which were treated with great decorum and respect, while the belts of the Governor of Canada were received Avith contempt by the Indian depu- ties, who kicked them about with every demonstration of in- dignity, declaring they would hold no correspondence Avith the French. Dekanissora took the lead in this council on the part of the Five Nations, who at this time expressed great anxiety about the Christian religion being introduced among them, inasmuch as Jesuits had been prohibited from being ad- mitted into tlieir country. Tliey ask that assistance may be granted them against the French and western Indians, and gave assurances that they would hereafter hold the great coun- cils at Albany, and that one should be 'ndd at that place at the expiration of fourteen d;iys. They demand that goods shall be made cheaper to them, and that they shall be more lib- erally supplied witli powder and lead. At the close of this council, which lasted several days, John Baptist Van Eps was sent to Albany, as bearer of dispatchcti, and upon his presenting the demands of the Indian nations to the Governor and (Jouncil, they were acceded to and ap- proved. Upon this Islr. Robert Livnigston, Secretary of In- dian Affairs, was dispatched to Onondaga, and raakes the fol- lowing report and observations of his voyage in April, 1700, for the consideration of the Earl of Belomont, of which we here give the substance : — Many of the Maquas moved to Canada, thereby very much lessening the numbers of that nation, more than two-thirds of whom had removed. These Avere clothed and maintained by the French, Avho took particular pains to have them in- structed by their missionaries, in the Roman Catholic faith. He attributes the cause of removal to tAvo sources. First, fear, — seeing the French so formidable as to be able to sub- due them, and the English not able to render any protection. Second, neglect, — by not sending missionaries among thcni. He recommends that the Maquas should come nearer to Al- bany, and that a stockade fort should be built, and have a minister to instruct them, and provision made for him, Avith servants, tha seven or eigh He recomr grant it to th dians, that oi That the ( remove neare ing attacked miles nearer The Onont them, and avc once settled ; in converting redound not < would keep tl to Canada, ai have got of la of those in the He thinks to the Englis the passes to the mouth of Oneidas' Rive Five Nations be a key to t He recomii ti'oit,) anothe Howatoa,'' (I risons to be 1* sliould be gai employed in I itrms should 1 ven to the ch cannon, bate each carrying; Cadaraqui wa drcAT many o EARLY HISTORY. 289' servants, that he may keep a horse and caw, and be withia seven or eight hours ride of Schenectady. He recommends that the king should purchase land and grant it to those nations, to be located so near the praying In- dians, that one minister might serve for both. That the Oneidas and Onondagas should be persuaded ta remove nearer to Albany, on the river, out of the way of be- ing attacked by the French. The Onondagas to come twelve- miles nearer Oneida, on the same account. The Onondagas are much inclined to have a minister among them, and were willing to maintain him. If ministers were once settled among them, it would not only be a pious work in converting them to the Christian faith, which honor would redound not only to His Majesty and the English nation, but would keep those firm to us, draw the rest home, who are gone to Canada, and prevent " that diabolical practice ivliieh they have got of late, in poisoning one another, by tohich^neans most of those in the English interest are dispatched out of the way." He thinks it impossible to keep and secure the Five Nations to the English interest, without building forts, and securing the passes to their country. A strong fort should be built at the mouth of the Onondagas' River, where it intersects the Oneidas' River. This being well fortified, would secure all the Five Nations from the inroads of the I^'rench, by water, and lie a key to the Indian country. He recommends the building of forts at ^^ Iktroett,'.' (De- troit,) another between " Sweege,'' (Ontario) Lake, and " 0. Howawa," (Huron) Lake, and other forts westerly, and gar- risons to be kept in them. That the fort at Onondaga River, should be garrisoned with one hundred youths, partly to be employed in boating and carrying provisions. That the king's arms should be put up at all the castletS, and silver badges gi- ven to the chiefs to wear about their necks. Magazines of cannon, bateaux, clothing, provisions, &c., should be kept at each carrying place. He made complaint that the fort at Cadaraqui was not destroyed, and that the French, by threats, drew many of tlie Indians away fiom their allegiance, who. t« 290 ONONDAGA. would otliovwise be serviceable to the English in vrar. That the Governor of Canada threatens to erect forts in the coun- try of the Five Nations, one at Onyagara, (Niagara,) another at Irondequot, a tliird at Kaneenda, (near Fort Brewerton,) a fourth at Kahioghage, (Sackctt's Harbor,) a fifth at Ojcen- rudde, on a branch of tlie Mohawk River, three days jour- ney from a village of the Mohawks, called Dekanage. That the French are continually circulating reports, that the Eng- lish design to destroy the Indians by depriving them of pow- der and lead. That the English government would not clothe them, which reports were proved to be false. The Mohawks earnestly desire, that a minister maybe sent among them, and wonder why the English cannot do so as well as the French. On the 2otli of April, 1700, Col. Schuy- ler, j\Ir. Jjivingston and Mr. Ilanse, held a council at Kacli- nawaacharcgo, a fishing place eight miles north of Onondaga^ at which tlireo Onondaga sachems were present, who said, the Governor of Canada, had charged them not to hearken to Corlear ; for, if they did so, he Avould take them off by poi- son ; that Pero Bruyas, threatens tlie English with war, uidess they consent to the admission of priests among them. The commiHsioners thence proceeded to the Onondaga Castle, ami examined s?\'eral Indians, who confirmed the tidings of the chiefs below, of the acts of the French. The Five Nations again desire iho English, to erect forts in their country. Th« Earl of Belomont, tlirough the commissioners, proposes to meet tin; Five Nations, in council at Albany. Strenuous efibrts are made, to secure the favor of the Five Nations, with assurances, that they may rely on the King's protection ; sta- ting, that th'-'V were in daily expectation of liaving the King's commands fo.- building a fort in their country, and for send- ing Protestant ministei-s among them, to give them instruc- tion in the Christian religion. The commissioners are op- posed to their holding correspondence with the French, and recommend, that their dwellings should be compact, and near together, for greater security. On the 21st of June, 1700, five hundred pounds were paid IS to Mr. Cham wards buildir ence money ^ April, to the Majesty's shi (juantities of the value of Nations. Tl dians, create Dekannissi council, and complaint to had killed m they would n Five Nations The affecti the English ; with presents resolved, to 1 tre of the Fi\ to send one." " It is the are baptized our people t^ that they ma gion, as oftei through the them ministei go, unless fori ordered a for pense, and wi out a suitable Schenectady proposes to h; guage, and g poses, that tl EARLY HISTORY. 291 to Mr. Champete, to be remitted to the Earl of Belomont, to- wards building a sod fort in the Onondaga country. Subsist- ence money was paid him for the soldiers, from the 24th of April, to the 19th instant. These were shipped on board His Majesty's ship, Adair, with four hundred light fusils, suitable (quantities of lead and powder, clothing, and other valuables, to the value of eight hundred pounds, for presents for the Five Nations. This was done to remove the jealousies of the In- dians, created by the French. Dekannissora Avas the leader of the Five Nations in this council, and through him, on the 30th of June, they make complaint to Corlcar and Quider, that the western Indians, had killed many of their men, and the French had declared, they would not take the hatchet from their hands, unless the Five Nations Avould submit to the French. The affections of the chiefs were in a degree alienated from the English ; they often visited the French, who loaded them with presents. Said the chief speaker : " All of us here, are resolved, to have a Protestant minister at Onondaga, the cen- tre of the Five Nations, as soon as your Lordship shall please to send one." " It is the custom of the French, to feed and clothe, all that are baptized into the church. This is a great inducement for our people to become Papists. Our people express a wish, that they may be instructed in the Protestant Christian reli- gion, as often as they visit Albany." The Earl :snggcsted, through the commissioners, that he was in favor of sending them ministers, forthwith; but, that they were unwillin-^ to go, unless forts were first erected for their security. We have ordered a fort to be built, and a tax levied, to defray the ex- pense, and will immediately send the King's engineer, to look out a .suitable site. The Indians arc told, that Albany and Schenectady shall be fortified, and that the Earl of Belomont proposes to have Rev. Mr. Lidius, of Albany, learn their lan- guage, and get the Bible translated for their use ; and pro- poses, that they should send two or three of the sons of the 1' .n I h f'' ''m ii JM 292 ONONDAGA. Bachems of each nation, to New- York, to be educated at the King's charge. On the 26th of August, 1700, the council was reconvened at Albany, agreeable to arrangement. In a speech of some length, the Earl of Belomont reassures the five nations, of the King's protection ; laments, that the French Jesuits are so successful in making them believe the English design to de- stroy them. He informs them, that he has sent for ministers, to instruct them ; and, in the mean time, has settled Mr. Vree- man at Schenectady, who will learn their language in one year, and then be able to teach them in their own tongue. He promises them another minister before winter, and hopes they will learn the difference between the Protestant and Ro- man Catholic religions ; advises them to use all means to draw those Indians the French have seduced, back to their own country. On the 2d of August, eleven Mohawks, six Oneidas, eleven Onondagas, eleven Cayugas, eleven Senecas, and fifty war- riors, were present. Sadekanaghtie, the chief speaker, replied, that they came hither, by his Lordship's order ; that they will discredit the idle tales of the French, and are resolved, to continue firm to the crown of England, if it will protect them from their ene- mies ; that they were thankful for the promise of Protestant ministers. "The French also promise us, Jesuits, through Fathers Maricour and J. Bruyas ; but, we are determined to stick to the religion of the King." The Indians agree to furnish two hundred men, to work at the fort, for the same pay as the English, and the fort to be completed within three months ; and, that they will seize all Jesuits, and send them prisoners to Albany, for which they shall receive a hundred pieces of eight, for every Jesuit. The Earl remarked to them, " We have a law for seizing and securing all Popish priests and Jesuits ; and I would gladly put that law in execution against these disturbers of mankind." In answer fore him, an His Lords be large en( hundred En^ be added, an The India to assist in b " As to yc " that is a si women entin Colonel R country, and gas were cho ration. Whi nish provisioi fish. On thi ing list of f hundred weig of lead, two dred knives, Ions each, si bacco, &c. 31st of A steadfast in tl religion, and " God hatl shined long i and union to^ taught to be , Let us theref were liere bei v.hen you wei and cherished to you, if yoi that matters ; may not be tt EARLY HISTORY fl98 In answer, they promise to seize them, and bring them be- fore him, and prohibit their coming into the Indian country. His Lordship tohl them, that the fort at Onondaga, should be large enough to receive two hundred men ; always, one hundred English, and in case of war, a hundred Indians should be added, and cannon should be forwarded for defense. The Indians agreed to send twelve men from each nation, to assist in building the fort at Onondaga. "As to your oifcr to educate our children," said the chief, " that is a subject, not under our control ; it belongs to the women entirely." Colonel Romer was selected as the engineer to explore the country, and fix the site for a fort, and four young Ononda- gas were chosen to accompany him on his journey of explo- ration. While engaged in building, the Indians were to fur- nish provisions for the workmen, of corn, venison, pigeons and fish. On this occasion, the earl gave the sachems, the follow- ing list of presents, viz. : two hundred bags of balls of one hundred weight each, two hundred fusees, two hundred pounds of lead, two thousand flints, one hundred hatchets, two hun- dred knives, two hundred shirts, forty kegs of rum, two gal- lons each, sixty-three hats, three barrels of pipes, with to- bacco, &c. Slst of August, Sadekanaghtie answers, that they will be steadfiist in their resolution, to be instructed in the Protestant religion, and declares it in the following words : " God hath been pleased to create us, and the sun hath shined long upon us. We have lived many years in peace and union together, and we hope by your instructions to be taught to be good Christians, and to die in the Christian faith. Let us therefore go hand in hand and support each other. We were here before you, and were a strong and numerous people when you were but young and striplings. Yet we were kind and cherished you, and therefore, when we propose any thing to you, if you cannot agree to it, let us take council together, that matters may be carried on smooth, and that what we say may not be taken amiss. When we are to be instructed in the li \m 294 ONONDAGA. Protestant religion, pray let not such severity be used as the Jesuits do in Canada, who whip their proselytes with an iron chain ; cut oft" the warriors hair ; put them in prison, and when the men commit any heinous sin, the priest takes his op- portunity when they are asleep, and beats them severely. Now as a token of our Avillingness to be instructed in the Protestant religion, we give nine beaver skins." The Indians stipulate for free trade of the French at Albany, and desire that a smith may be sent among them at the same time with the minister to Onondaga ; state that Pere J. Bruyas wished to come among them as a physician and surgeon, but his request had been refused. Sadekanaghtie returned thanks for the presents and for the attention the delegates received, and the council adjourned. The following are the instructions of Lord Belomont to Col. Romer, Ilis Majesty's chief engineer in America, with respect to locatinc the fort at Onondaga. " First, you are to proceed with all possible dispatch to the Onondagas' country, where you are to find out the best place for erecting a fort for the defense and security of that nation and the other nations, if it may be so, taking in your way thither, visiting the Mohawk and Oneida Indians. Second, you are to proceed on to the Oayugas' nation, after you have well viewed and visited the Onondagas' country, and from thence to the Seneca nation. Third, you are to observe the country exactly as you go and come, with the lakes, rivers, woods, plains and hills, that you may make a report thereof to me, and that a map may be made thereof, tc be laid before His IMajesty; and you are to take a particular view of the carrying places, and to report unto me your opinion, how much they may be shortened by clearing and making the creeks navigable for boats and ca- noes. Fourth, you are to inquire out and view the salt spring. which is said to bo in the Onondagas' country, and to taste the water, and to give mc your opinion thereon. You are to inform yourself about the salmon fishing, which is so much spoken of, ant that country- the inhabitant Fifth, you eight miles be told me, blaze into it. Sixth, you as you can, bj protection, an power to then vince shall be that they neet You Avill do they continue pondence with priests and Jc are carefully I vice. Given undc tembor, A. T>. Col. Romer until he came build a fort, the ledge calk that the prope He fulfiled returned in du From this ti ered as entirel English. Eai of New-York every popish f This was prov who Avere cont * See Loudon '. EARLY HISTORY 29,' spoken of, and also about other fish in the lakca iind rivers in that country — wiiat sorts of fish — wliat i)lenty — wiiat ways tho inhabitants have to take tlio fish. Fifth, you are to go and view a well or spring, which is eiglit miles beyond the Senecas further castle, which they have told me, blazes up into a flame when a lighted coal is put into it. Sixth, you are to encourage all the Indian nations as much as you can, by assuring them of the king's care of tliem, and protection, and you are to magnify the king's greatness and power to them, and assure them that the frontier of this pro- vince shall be Avell fortified and secured in a short time, so that they need not to fear the French of Canada. You will do well to assure them of my kindness, provided they continue faithful to the king, and keep no sort of corres- pondence with the French in Canada, nor receive any of the priests and Jesuits among them. All which instructions you are carefully to observe and perform for His iNIajesty's ser- vice. Given under my hand, at Albany, the third day of Sep- tember, A. D. 1700, and in the 12th of His Majesty's reign."* (Signed) "BELOMONT." Col. Romer explored the Onondagas' country, passed down until he came to the Oneida liiver, but found no fit place to build a fort. They passed on to a place called Quichook, near the ledge called Kagnewagrage, (near Oswego,) and reported that the proper place for a fort should ])e in that region. He fulfiled his instructions in visiting other localities, and returned in due time to Albany. From this time forward, the Five Nations may be consid- ered as entirely wedded and devoted to the interests of the English. Early in 1700, the Earl Belomont and assembly of New- York had passed a law, (severe indeed,) for hanging every popish priest, who voluntarily came into the province. This was provoked by the great number of French Jesuits, who were continually tampering with the Indians. * See London Documents, vol. 13, p. 430. 296 ONONDAGA. In 1701, tho King of England gave five hundred pounds, for erecting a fort in the country of the Onondagas, and eight, hundred pounds to bo laid out in presents to the Indians. In return, tho Indians conveyed a large tract of tho Mohawk country to tho English, to prevent the necessity of submit- ting to the French, in case of war. The government of New- York, was not insensible of the importance of the Indian in- terest, and of the infinite acts of the French to seduce theui from their English alliance. The propriety of making suitable presents to the chiefs and warriors of the Five Nations, was strongly recommended ; a list made out of wliat the articles should consist, together with an estimate of tho charge. Funds were soon raised, and the presents purchased and dis- tributed. In 1709, an expedition by the American colonies, was pro- jected against Canada. The Indians of the Five Nations were engaged, through the indefatigable exertions of Col. Schuyler, to join heartily in the attempt. To preserve the friendship of the Five Nations, without which, it would have been impossible to prevent the western frontiers from becom- ing deluged in blood, he studied all tho arts of insinuating himself into their favor. He gave them all possible encourage- ment and assistance, and very much impaired his own fortune by his liberality to their chiefs. They never came to Albany but they resorted to his house, and often dined at his table. By these means he obtained an ascendency over them, which was attended with advantageous consequences to the colonies, for he could in a great degree, obviate or eradicate the preju- dices and jealousies, by which the French Jesuits were inces- santly laboring to debauch their fidelity. As a further means of securing their cooperation, Col. Schuyler, at his own pri- vate expense, visited England, accompanied by five principal chiefs of the Iroquois, to pay their respects to the Queen, Anne, who had all along taken a lively interest in the afi'airs of these people. The arrival of the five sachems, created a great sen- sation throughout the kingdom. Splendid garments were prepared for them, and great parade and solemnity attended the audience tli ted in splendid Chamberlain, v royal presence, the 19th of A I The attempt The French a New England ' at this period, their Indians, ■ for the peace o land with Col mended tho re reduction of C the northern C( apprised of thi General, sent ( the works he possible, and should be in r The western Ii Messrs. St. P took up the lu But the trca settled definiti\ ish crown bee cerned, to the Nations. There being and English, t ward and resii the Flat-Head ties they rctui who came off ; The death oi greatly aft'ecte been to them, j EARLY HISTORY, 297 the audionco they had of Iler Majesty. They were conduc- ted in spknidid (ioachos to St. James' pahice, and the Lord Chamberliiin, with much ceremony, introduced them into the royal presence. Their speech on this occasion was made on the 19th of April, 1710, and is preserved. The attempt to make attacks upon Canada proved abortive. The Frcncli and Indians ravaged the northern frontier of New England with impunity. A treaty of neutrality existed at this period, between the confederates, and the French and their Indians, whicli was the only security the colonists had for the peace of their frontier. The chiefs who went to Eng- land with Col. Schuyler, having returned, strongly recom- mended the renewal and prosecution of the scheme for the reduction of Canada, as the only effectual means of securing the northern colonies. The French in Canada, were not un- apprised of these designs. Mons. Vaudreuil, the Governor General, sent orders to the Sieur De Beaucourt, to complete the works he was engaged upon at Quebec, as speedily as possible, and commanded that all the regulars and militia should be in readiness for a march, at a moment's warning. The western Indians arrived at Montreal, at this time, under Messrs. St. Pierre and Tonti, who with the Caughnuagas, took up the hatchet in favor of the French. But the treaty of Utrecht, concluded 81st of March, 1713, settled definitively the Avhole m-itter. By this treaty, the Brit- ish crown became entitled, so far as the French Avere con- cerned, to the entire sovereignty to the country of the Five Nations. There being now a prospect of peace between the French and English, the Five Nations turned their attention south- ward and resumed hostilities against their ancient enemies, the Flat-Heads, living in Carolina, and after a scries of bat- tles they returned, and soon after adopted the Tuscaroras, who came off from that country a vanquished people. The death of Queen Ann, in 1714, was a circumstance which greatly affected the chiefs of the Five Nations. She had long been to them, as a mother to her children, and the many instan- 38 |i if i 1 it! I !:'# ' H 298 ONONDAGA, ces of her kiiulnoss and jifTcction towiirda those sons of tlip forest, wore long lioM in lively ronien»l>rance. In behalf of the Five Nations, at a council hold at Albany, •list Aiiiijii.st, 17ir>, Dt'kaiiissora coiif^ratulatod the Governor on tho aoci'sjiion of Cieor;,'o I. to tho throne, and renewed with Xroiit pomp ;ind Holniinity the aneicnt covenant eliai!! of the Five NutiiMis, promising the Hanio should he kept invi'iliihle. desiring nn uninterrupted course of prosperity and peace. The Five Nations were solicited to use their iniluenee in restoring' peace between the Catawbas and tho colony of Carolina, wh(» had been at uar. A proposition was made by the Five Nations, 2d of Sep- tember, 17 IT), at a council held at Albany, at which was pre- sent iviilian Van Rensselaer, Teter .Matthews, Jojin Cuyler, llendrick ILinson, Teter Van iJrugh, and several sachems of the Five Nations, witli Dekanissora at their head. Here tlie liead chiefs engaged to renew the war with the southern Indians, should tliey persist in continuing hostilities against the whites, and to ratify the matter, desired an appro- priation of arms and ammunilion to be made at once, that they might Itc in readiness, whenever called upon, to march in a body, and not in detached parties, and destroy them at once. The connnissioners in due time returned the answer of the Governor, stating that arms and ammunition were i-endv for them, bat were not to be delivered till such time as it beeume ne- cessary for their warriors to depart. In the mean time, the Five Nations sent eight ambassadors to tlie southern Indians to treat of peace, and had during the past year made a success- ful attack u])on the southern rebel Indians, and returned with some scalps and prisoners. Governor JTunter assures the chiefs of the Five Nations, in council assembled, ISth June, HIT, of tlie good will of his master, the king ; rencAvs the league of friendship, and allays their apprehensions about evil designs of the English towards them. In this reply, is a curious appeal to the superstitions of an inconstant peof introduction of •.'DCS on to say, ly the small po allies. But wo iif that kind, as an breaking of ries, and tho lik wo have a like i there is not one and at present i Jerseys, and wc the practieo of fn tho same c tir, that the Fr i]uat, in tho co Mipply the Inili asrninst tho sout which stops nuv country. In 1720, Wil t-rnraent of tho necessity of cul the Five Natio secure tho com friondship of tl French, in conf ahing the sea cc Mana. With t; trading house a vision t'' bo ma( the Senecas an from the Frenc This year, a I'onunissioners, uiicient friendsl Nothing coul KAIILY HISTORY, 299 inconstant people. They Imd previously complained of the iiiti'oductiun of the small pox ainoiij^ them, ami the (xovernor ;.'i)es on to Hay, " I am sorry for the loss that han happened liy the small pox to the hrethren, or any of your friends or allies. Hut wo Christians look upon that disease, and others ,if tliiit kind, as punishments for our misdeeds and sins, such ;iH lireakinii; of covenants ami promises, murders and rohbe- rics, and the like. Wliatever sh;ire we have had in these sins, \v(> have a like share in the punishment, for in I'ennsylvania tliL're is not one {Christian family that has escaped the disease ; ami at present it rages, and luis the last twelve months, in the iorspys, and we firmly believe it will, sn lonr^ as wo continue tlio practice of these sins, our plafjue will also continue." fu the same conference, Dekanlssora informs Governor Ilun- ti'f, that the French had erected a tradinji; house at lerondo- iiiiiit, in the country helonrriu-^ to tiie Senecas, where they supply the Indians with powder and lead, to pursue the war aiiJiinst the southern Indians, and also with goods ami clothing, which stops much of the peltry coming down from the upper country. In 1720, William Burnet, Esq., took upon himself the gov- rrnmcnt of the Province of New-York. He early foresaw the iK'Cossity of cultivating amicable relations with the cliiefs of the Five Nations, and concluded it was highly necessary, to secure the conunand of Lake Ontario, as well to retain the friondship of this people, as to frustrate the designs of the Froiich, in confining the English colonics to narrow limits, along the sea coast, by a chain of forts from Canada to Loui- . The same Lake Ontari had scarcely had been le rously attacl repulsed Avitl flict. Mean and investei the siege, th upon which A battle was lish were vie by Avhich th( The authc expedition, i book of Ser Highlanders the archives H. R. Scho ance to inser lished. " On the i Johnson, wit pedition agai 19, 1759, af Boats, baj EARL Y HISTORY. 8D9 nel Bradstreet, in the mcth of August, took the Fort Fron- tenac, with its larpfc miigizine of military stoves, from which all the south-wostcrn posts drew their supplies, it being the principal depot for articles designed for the Indians. Nine armed vessels also fell into the hands of the English. Having razed the fort, and demolished such stores as could not be easily removed, Colonel Bradstreet recrossed the Lake Ontario to Oswego ; the expedition throughout having been attended with unexampled success. Ticonderoga and Crown Point, yielded to the English arms, under General Amherst, in July, IToD. The same month, July, General Prideaux embarked on Lake Ontario, with an army destined against Niagara. He had scarcely departed from Oswego when that place which had been left in command of Colonel Haldimand, was vigo- rously attacked by a body of French and Indians, who were repulsed Avith considerable loss, after a somewhat severe con- flict. Meanwhile, General Prideaux proceeded to Niagara, and invested that fortress in due form. In the progress of the siege, the General was killed by the bursting of a cohorn, upon which the command devolved upon General Johnson. A battle was fought on the 24th of July, in which the Eng- lish were victorious. A capitulation Avas immediately signed, by Avhich the garrison became prisoners of Avar. The author having in hand, a manuscript relative to this expedition, it being no other than that of the original orderly book of Serjeant John Degarimo, of the 44th regiment of Highlanders, company of Capt. John McKenzie, found among the archives of the NcAv-York Historical Society, presented by H. R. Schoolcraft, Esq. We think it of sufficient import- ance to insert entire, inasmuch as it has never before been pub- lished. " On the 21st of June, 1750, Gen. Prideaux and Sir William Johnson, AA'ith the army, set out from Oneida Lake, on an ex- pedition against Niagara, Avhich terminated at OsAvego, August 19, 1759, after the capture of that post. Boats, bateaux, &c., were prepared for the conduct of the ri «10 ONONDAGA. whole army. Among which arc mentioned, masons, sawyers bricklayers, wheelwrights, colliers, carpenters, house and ship! joiners, turners, blacksmiths, gunsmiths, &c., &c. Orders were given, to have all the bateaux ready in three divisions, each one to be numbered, as soon as a sufficient number of them shall be assigned to each. During the march, tho most particular regard was paid to order and precison in dis- cipline. On tho 23d, the army passed Fort Brcwington, and encamped at Three Rivers. On the 24th, at 5 o'clock, A. M. all were ordered to bo in readiness for the March. The pi- quet guard, and quarter guard, to march along shore. 24th; arrived at the great falls and encamped, and re- mained there the 25th and 26th. On the 27th, arrived at Oswego, and were engaged in procuring provisions, 28th, 29th and 30th, and in making preparations for the march. July 1st, moved on to Osenodus Bay ; next day moved on to Nidenindequeat, and were there through the 3d at Prideaui Bay on the 4th, and at Johnson's Creek, 5th, 6th, and 7th, and before Niagara, from the 8th of July, to the 2d of Au- gust ; during which time, it was duly invested and taken ; af- ter which, the army returned to Oswego, on the 6th. The journal closes with the 19th." Another journal by the same hand commences with a col- lection of troops from Massachusetts, Rhode Island, New- Hampshire, Connecticut, and New- Jersey, with the 44th Highlanders, under command of Colonel Woodhull, and their march to the frontiers of New- York, being at Albany, May 3d, 1760, and terminating at a camp near Fort Ontario, July 16th, 1760. These troops were nearly all collected by the 1st of June, and were ready to proceed on the 9th. On the 10th, they were mustered at Schoharie ; June 15th, encamped at Willihea ; 10th at Frey's ; 19th to 29th at Canajoharia ; Ju- ly Ist at Fort Stanwix, and at Fort Brewington on July 6th. The journal thus goes on, "July 6th, 1760, camp at Fort Brewington. No man to presume to damage any thing be- longing to the Indians, on penalty of receiving one Imndred lashes, without benefit of court martial. The officers com- manding com bateaux, with what species. stay with it a that man is t of each com] o'clock, to th Camp at I The third board their b at ten o'clocl mediately. Camp at 1 R. 0. Ai such prisoner Capt. Yates, Cannon, mei The army They arri\ closes with tl nal gives the turn of Gen< close of the ending at So From a m Library of tl lowing relati dagas, &c. : July 17, 1 Brewerton,* chem of Gai der to suppo of the dearn &c. After ' ties had beei * It iB « little ia spelled Brewi EARLY HISTORY. 811 manding companies to give in a return of -what number of bateaux, with the number of barrels each will contain, and of what species. That a man shall be assigned to each boat to stay with it all night, and keep her always bailed out, and that man is to be answerable for it. A return of the state of each company to be given in to-morrow morning, at six o'clock, to the serjeant major. Camp at Fort Brewington, July 7ih, 17G0. The third New-York Regiment to bo ready to embark on board their bateaux at half past nine o'clock, and to push oflF at ten o'clock. The Serjeants to see that their men cook im- mediately. Camp at Three River Rift, July 8. R. 0. A regimental court martial to sit immediately, to try such prisoners as shall be brought before them, consisting of Capt. Yates, President ; Lieuts. Deneyck, Vrooman, Hanson, Cannon, members. The army proceed to Oswego Falls, and again encamped." They arrived at Oswego on the 9th July, and the journal closes with the army at Oswego, July 20th. The same jour- nal gives the orderly's record of the same regiment of the re- turn of General Bradstreet's army from Detroit, 1764, at the close of the Pontiac war, beginning at Sandusky Bay, and ending at Schlosser and Niagara Falls, Nov. 13, 1764. From a manuscript journal of Sir William Johnson's in the Library of the New York Historical Society, we glean the fol- lowing relative to Indian councils, held with the Oneidas, Onon- dagas, &c. : July 17, 1761, Sir William Johnson having arrived at Fort Brewerton,* west end of Oneida Lake, Sequarisero, chief sa- chem of Gauayhsaragey, came to his tent to buy some pow- der to support his family in hunting, and complained greatly of the dearness of goods and the low prices of beavers, furs, &c. After which Sir William asked him whether any depu- ties had been sent by the Five Nations in the spring or sum- * It is a little singular that at this time, and at nil times, the name of this place is spelled Brewington and Brewerton— the latter is right. ''I 312 ONONDAGA mor, either by the Indians living about Detroit, or to tnj other nations of Indians. To wliich ho answered, that there were some sent by tiio Senecas, and that the Cayu^ruH wc-o to have sent some also, but that on the arrival of the Cayuga Indians in the Scnocas' country, ho was toM it would not be prudent to go so far alone, whereupon they proceeded without him. To confirm what had on a previous occasion been said, tho journal continues, '' I then sent by an Indian a string of wam- pum to desire the Brant, and other chiefs of the Onondagas, to meet us at Oswego in order to talk over the business with them, as also to deliver the medals sent by (Jeneral Amherst, to all those of that nation, who ai^eompanied tho army to Montreal the last year, but on mentioning some particular chiefs. Sir William was informed by tho Tuscarora sachem that they were gone, on tho Governor of Pennsylvania's invi- tation, to attend a meeting of deputies of that'jjrovince, ad- ding that this nation and the Oneidas refused sending a depu- tation thither. Sunday, July 10th, Sir William Johnson arrived at Oswe- go. On the 20tli, several Messasauguas and other Indians waited on Sir William, whom he informed of the cause of his going to Detroit. Two o'clock P. M. Two Onondagas arrived and acquaint- ed Sir William that forty of their nation were on their way to meet him agreeable to his summons." At a meeting held at Oswego, Tuesday, July 21st, 1761 present, Sir William Johnson, Part., Maj. Duncan, Capt. Gray,' and several officers of the r).5th regiment, Lieut. Guy Johnson! acting as Secretary, with interpreters, and upwards of forty sa- chems and warriors of Onondaga. Sir Willlnm opened the con- ference by welcoming them to Oswego, and after the usual cere- mony of condolence for their friends slain at Niagara, acquaint- ed them with the reasons for his not calling them to a gen- eral council, since his return from Canada ; Informed them of the cause of his journey to Detroit, and of his discovery of the evil intentions and proceedings of tho Indians, and cautioned thr ho expected t ing which ho hunting and i lish during hi idle reports w ing to create dians. He t gas, and del General Ami they withdra^ returned, wlu turning man through tho i of wampum ; ly been given go against Ni " Brother army to the s ing with our of tho rest of trade, so as likewise prom ort ourselves whicii we cli you to Nlagai the wounds wl we find ourse] people in trad ral posts. Tl our expectatic of much unea meet with bet we shall be Ir told us Avoulc Selt given. "We are si KARLY HISTORY. 818 cautioned thorn againHt haviiif^ any hand in them, and that ho ox|)(!CtiMl tlic Five Nation.s would have attended the nicot- ing which he Wiis },'oiii<^ to call ; advised them to nund their huntinj^ and trade, and to hohave friendly towards the Eng- lish duriii;^ his absence, and by no means to pay re^jard to any idle reports which mi;^'ht bo cireidated about tiio country, tend- ing to create a misumlerstandinf; between the English and In- dians. He then presents a, belt to the cliiei' of the Ononda- gas, and delivers iti groat pomp the medals forwanh'd by General Amherst, to all the chiefs of that nation, after which they withdraw to consider an answer. In about an hoin- they returned, whereupon the chief speaker stood up, and after re- turning many thanks for what Sir William had said, wont through the usual ceremony of condolence, gave three strings of wampum ; then pulling out a large belt wiiich had former- ly been given them by 8ir William, when they were called to go against Niagara, he proceeded : " lirother Warraghiyagey — On your setting out with the army to the seige of Niagara, you then promised us a meet- ing with our nation. That after the reduction thereof and of the rest of the country, you would be enabled to regulate trade, so as to reduce the exhorbitant price of goods, and likewise promised us good treatment forever, should we ex- ert ourselves in conjunction with the army against tlio enemy, which wo cheerfully agreed to, and accordingly conducted you to Niagara, and assisted you in taking it, as a salve for the Avounds which you had received. Notwithstanding Avhich, we find ourselves very much wronged and ill treated by your people in trade, and frequently ill used, without cause, at seve- ral posts. This proceeding, so contrary to your promises and our expectations, has greatly alarmed us, and been the cause of much uneasiness. Wo therefore entreat you, that we may meet with better usage from the English in future, otherwise we shall be induced to believe what the French have so often told us would be the consequence of your reducing tliem. Belt given. " We are surprised, to find you are going to call a counctt W tli'f I ■ -^ m lLi 21''* h| ll rll 314 ONONDAGA. at Detroit, as you know that the chief and only council fire burns at your house, excepting that whicli we have at Onon- daga. Besides, the Avestern Indians, as aggressors, oucrht rather to have attended on you. You recommend to us to mind our hunting and trade, and to live on good terras with our brethren at the several posts, than which nothint^ could be more agreeable to our inclinations. But Ave are sorry to observe that your brethren do not seem desirous of living on any good terms with us, from the frequent acts of violenco offered, as well to us as to our women, and also from their hindering us from fishing or hunting about the posts, although in our own country, and frequently taking from us what we have killed or taken, contrary to promise and the friendship subsisting between us and you. We therefore beg, brother, that you Avill interpose and see justice done us — that Ave may have a free and reasonable trade, Avith powder allowed us, and that there may be, also, interpreters fixed at the several posts, who may prevent any future misunderstanding, Avhich otherAvise might happen, through our not understanding each other's language. " Brother — With regard to Avhat you spoke to us, concern- ing the intelligence sent from Detroit, and to your kind cau- tions to us on that head, Avhereby you advised us to avoid en- tering into any such idle project, Ave can truly answer, that we knoAV nothing of any such plot, neither are Ave, or shall re get drunk and suffer ourselves to grow giddy, being deter- mined to hold fast the coA^enant chain, and hope you will do the same on your part, so that Ave may both live together, till we become gray. This belt, Avhich you have delivered us, shall be sent to the soA'eral nations, our allies, to acquaint them Avith Avhat you say, Avith our resolutions thereon, Avhich we hope Avill be a precedent for them to follow, and Avhen they are all acquainted therewith, you Avill receive a belt in return. "Brother — We esteem it a great favor that the general hath thought proper to remember those Indians who attended him to Monti eal last year, by rcAvarding them Avith medals, and we return you thanks for delivering them to us, assuring arose at t nations rt may with to their w you must guished tt war. " Broth adaeta, w spring, wl: kettles, a then goinf you will i been grea chase clot " Broth came here leturn. ^ much the; which ren the maint( it, even fo wampum, have a coi until your to be forg In replj instances out in no length ass ment of tl of the On &c., on pr ceptable t Miruii^ EARLY HISTORY. 315 you that you may always depend on our remaining true allies to the English, and although, through misunderstanding which arose at that time, several of our and of the other Indian nations returned back, after the taking of Fort Levis, you may with great truth acquaint the general that it was owing to their want of zeal and inclination to serve the English, as you must know, that several of them have particularly distin- guished themselves in your cause, during all the rest of the war. " Brother — Here is one of our people present, named Kan- adaeta, who had his hunting house plundered (during the spring, while he was absent hunting) of thirty buckskins, two kettles, a gun, axes and other things, by some of the English, then going to Fort William Augustus. He therefore hopes you will inquire into it and obtain some redress, as he has been greatly reduced thereby, not having wherewithal to pur- chase clothing. " Brother — I now speak at the request of the warriors, who came here to see and wish you a good journey, and safe return. And I am, in their names, to let you know how much they are distressed for want of powder for hunting, which renders them unable to obtain skins for trade, and for the maintenance of their families, not being able to procure it, even for their money. They therefore, by this bunch of wampum, desire you to consider their wants, by letting them have a couple of casks of powder, with a proportion of ball, until your return, which they shall look upon as a favor never to be forgotten." In reply. Sir William reminded the Onondagas of the several instances of their perfidy, bad faith and fickleness, and deals out in no unmeasured terms, threats and rebukes; but at length assumes an evener tone, and finally threatens punish- ment of the marauders of either party, and grants the wishos of the Onondaga chief, by promising him the powder, balls, &c., on promise of future amendment, which proved very ac- ceptable to the Onondagas. 316 ONONDAGA. Sir William continues his journey, and holds other confer- ences at Niagara and Detroit. In September, 1759, the English forces, provincial and re- gular, with a large body of Mohawk and Onondaga Indians, were concentrated at Quebec, under General Wolfe, which even- tuated in the decisive battle on the plains of Abraham, and the surrender of the fortress and city of Quebec. In this im- portant battle, fell the illustrious commanders of both English and French ; General Wolfe and M. de Montcalm. Deaths more glorious, and attended with circumstances more pictu- resque, exhibiting more nobleness of soul and heroic fortitude, can scarcely find parallels in the annals of history. With this event, fell the power of the French in Canada. By the treaty of peace, which succeeded in 1762, the French King ceded to Great Britain, forever, all the territory to which France was entitled, on the eastern bank of the Mississippi, except the Island of New-Orleans. The cessation of hostilities between these two great powers gave also rest to the warriors of the Six Nations ; but, not- withstanding their favor was courted by the English, the ser- vices they had rendered to the colonies were of too import- ant a character not to be substantially remembered ; and, even at this late day, it becomes us, not to forget, in our reminis- cences of the past and our felicitations of the present, those distinguished braves who so freely shed their blood for their English allies ; nor feel reluctance in bestowing the due meed of praise to those heroic warriors and brilliant orators, who figured alike conspicuously in our history and their own. The great council fire for the transaction of business between the English and Six Nations had been usually lighted at Al- bany ; while that, for theiv own affairs, shone abroad with un- diminished lustre, from their time honored Onondaga. Had it not been for the long continued friendship of these distin- guished people, and the inestimable services rendered by them in the English wars with the French, it is not at all certain that the English would have been successful ; and it is nossille. if not probabl( the French. After th( the mother which at fii happiness, i storm gave ■ Lexington, ; at Bunker I came the p possible, of were unsucc neutral part in their cabi part against The Onoii war path, ar to the crown treated thoii In the treat_^ there was n( the legislatu them from a but, by the k the rash act the Six Nati( at Fort Sta sented by th part of the 1 *In 175S, tli( Johnson and otli title of the exten lakes. The com triu't oC upwards Brotherton. Th coininissii)ners, n Raritan. The ex The Mohawks present, to the m EARLY HISTORY. 8i*r not probable, that the colonics would have been governed by the French.* After the conclusion of this war, the difficulties between the mother country and the colonies, thickened. The clouds which at first cast their faint shadows over the sun of our happiness, at length thickened to a tempest, till the awful storm gave warning of its approach, at Boston, Concord and Lexington, and finally burst forth in its most portentous fury at Buiij^er Hill. Foreseeing a long and angry contest, it be- came the policy of the colonies to secure the assistance, if possible, of the Indians occupying the frontier. In this they were unsuccessful, and failed even to engage them to act a neutral part, except the Oneidas, a portion of whom lay idle in their cabins, while the Mohawks bore a most distinguished part against the cause of freedom. The Onondagas, Cayugas and Senecas, were often on the war path, and rendered, at different periods, essential service to the crown. After the Avar of the Revolution, the English treated their Indian allies with great indifference and neglect. In the treaty between the United States and Great Britain, there was no stipulation made in behalf of the Indians, and the legislature of Kew-York manifested a disposition to expel them from all their territory, within the bounds of the state ; but, by the kind offices of Generals Washington and Schuyler, the rash act was not consummated. A grand council of all the Six Nations, for the purpose of making a treaty, was called at Fort Stanwix, in 1784. The several nations were repre- sented by the chiefs and warriors. The commissioners on the part of the United States were Oliver Wolcott, Richard But- * In 17')S, the governors of Pennaylvania and New-Jersey, with Sir William Johnson and other agents, coacluded a treaty with the Indians, conveying the title of the extensive territory lying between the Apalacliian Mountains and tha lakes. The commissioners, with the eonsent of the Indian attorneys, purciiased a tra(tt of upwards of thirty til lusand acres of land, which received the name of Br.nherton. Tiio dned was taken in tlie name of the Xcw-Tersev gLivernor and commissioners, and their heirs, in trust for tlie natives in New-Jersey, soiith of the Raritan. The council Ijegan on the blh of October and continued to the '^Gth. The Mohawks, Oneidas, Onondagas, Cayugas, Senecas, and otiier nations wera present, to the number of (Ive hundred and seven. (Holme's Annals, II. p. 86.) lil Wti S18 ONONDAGA. ler and Arthur Lee. A definitive treaty was made, giving to each a suitable reservation of land, except the Mohawks, who had accepted a proposal from General Ilaldimand to sel^ tie in Canada. By this treaty, they were shorn of a goodly portion of their valuable lands, their power was destroyed, and their martial spirit completely broken. The result of this negotiation gave great dissatisfaction to the chiefs and war- riors of the Five Nations. They had fought for their favorite ally and been conquered ; they had severally been assaulted in their own country and been defeated ; they had raised the hatchet in defense of their homes, it had fallen unavenged and harmless to the ground, and they sat down mournfully to brood over their fallen fortunes. The western Indians had shared little in the trials of the confederates ; they continued their murderous incursions on the defenseless inhabitants of Ohio, Pennsylvania and Kentucky. The downfallcn confede- rates, could not but sympathize with them. Brant, the great captain of the Five Nations, the master spirit of their plans, urged them on to war. Bands of Senecas and Onondagas, under taeir favorite chiefs, were present with the MohaAvks, and assisted in the successive defeats of Ilarmcr and St. Clair, and manfully bore arms on the memorable day on which the tide of victory Avas turned in favor of the American arms, wielded by the brave men commanded by the gallant Wayne. Olieknugh and Oundiaga, of the Onondagas were there, the former left his bones to bleach on the plains of the Miamis ; the latter returned with a few of his heroic braves, to tell the tale of their avoc, and to teach a lesson of humiliation and submission, to their surviving brethren, spirit broken and disconsolate. After this defeat, the Onondagas saAV clearly the folly of cherishing any longer a hostile disposition towards tlicir im- mediate neighbors. They settled down in quiet, determined to submit with fortitude to their fate. Their numbers had been fatally thinned, they had gained nothing in the late con- test but honor, and even that was forgotten and neglected by their allies. Many had moved westward in disappointment and disgust, and the scattering few who still lingered around EARLY HISTORY. 319 their ancient council-fire, brooded in gloomy despondency over their fallen greatness. By degrees their confidence was re» stored, a season of rest gave them renewed vigor, a new gen- eration brought with it a returning spirit of national pride. The traditions of their ancient grandeur, awakened in the bo- soms of the maturing braves a spirit of martial independence. Again they seemed to be themselves, and when the sound of war's alarms was heard on the frontier of New-York in 1812, the Onondagas were ranged for battle, and gave decisive evi- dence of their prowess, on the plains of Chippewa, and at Lundy's Lane, under the gallant Generals Brown, Scott, Rip- ley and Porter. Their leader was lloh-a-hoa-qua, (La Fort,) father of the late head chief bearing the latter appellation. Ti-ungk-ta-ko-nae, (Capt. George,) was his companion in arms. The former was slain in the battle of Chippewa, on the mem- orable 6th of July, 1814, and his remains were buried with military honors roav fne spot Avhere he closed his earthly ca- reer, and there still remain, in a foreign land, " unwept, un- honored and unsung ;" no marble tells their resting place. At the approach of a contest at arms in 1814, General Por- ter, who had the confidence of the New-York Indians in a re- markable degree, came down to Ononda>i,?. and solicited their cooperation in the war. A council of the nation was held at Cayuga, at which it was resolved to aid the Americans. A subsequent council of all the Six Nations was called at Buffa- lo. The Oneidas, Onondagas, Cayugas and Senecas, were represented, — the Mohawks did not appear, — they had al- ready pledged themselves to their ancient ally, the crown of Great Britain, The Mohawks on all previous occasions had furnished the chief war captain of the confederacy. A grave question tirose in this council, as to which nation should now be entitled to this distinguished honor. Claims were set up by all the nations represented ; debate ran high, none seemed willing to yield the point, till at length Sagoyawatha, (Red Jacket,") with a magnanimity unparalleled, arose in the majes- ty of his might, and eloquently declared his sentiments in fa- vor of the Onondagas. He was seconded by various other '• M m 'II Hist ■ 5» 'Kit '1-ilPi > ! 320 ONONDAGA. chiefs who ha(i not yet spoken, and Iloh-a-hao-qua, was select- ed. He manfully responded to the call, saying, " I am ready to lead the brave men of our nations where duty calls, and if necessary, to shed the last drop of my blood for the good of the cause we have now embraced." Under their newly select- ed leader, the Onondagas and Senecas crossed the lines, pre- pared for battle, and honorably sustained themselves through out the fight. Previous to his death, Hoh-a-hoa-qua had a presentiment of its approach. He said to those around him, " I shall perish here ; this ground will be red with my blood '' a prediction literally fulfilled. ' The Onondagas followed the fortune of war, and at Lun- dy's Lane were engaged as scouts, not entering into the hot- test of that sanguinary conflict. These were the last battle- fields on which the Onondagas Avere engaged. Their services on the frontier and in an enemy's country, (they claim) have never been duly appreciated, and the scanty pittance meted for their services, is but a common illustration of the grati- tude and magnanimity of powerful nations towards the weaker. _ By the treaty of Fort Stanwix, held 1784, the several na- tions gave hostages for their good behavior, and were confined and restricted to the lands then actually occupied by thorn re- spectively, being all the country west of the " Old Property Line," except certain reserves at Oswego and along the Nia- gara River. Subsequently in 1788, the Onondagas, by a treaty made at Fort Stanwix, Avith the State of New York, relinquished all title to their lands, except about ten miles' square around their castle and contiguous to it. They also yielded one half of their right to all the salt springs on their reservation, and eventually surrendered the whole. For these benefits, seventeen hundred dollars was paid in hand, and an annuity of five hundred dollars was granted them, which was regularly paid by the State of New- York. By the treaty of Onondaga of 1793, and the treaty of Cayuga Ferry, 1795, and the treaties of Albany of 1817 and 1822, their territory was further reduced to its present limits, about three and a half miles long by two miles broad, for an equivalent by an graces which scale of ratio some worthy may be done, they now do, i individual anc p EARL Y HISTORY. 321 increased annuity of one thousand dollars. This domain they at present occupy in comparative comfort. Their present an- nuity is twenty-four hundr'ed dollars ; the resident population, three hundred and thirteen ; emigrated to the Alleghany and Cataraugus Reservations, some two hundred. There arc also residing among the Onondagas, of other luitions not entitled to the henefits of the annuity, about fifty. ' The general cliaractcr aud condition of the Onondagas as ii body at this day, is not remarkable either for industry, thrift, perseverance, temperance, or any of those higher virtues and graces which tend to exalt and elevate mankind in the great scale of rational being. To this remark, however, there are some worthy exceptions. Much needs to bo done, and much may be done, to enable them to take a much higher rank than they now do, in every thing that leads to human happiness and individual and nationa-l aggrandizement, 41 ■B^HRfl Hiin p"™ 'p ■ 822 ONONDAGA. I CHAPTER X. REMINISCENCES. Aboriqinal Names— Expedition ok Gol. Van Schaick against the ONOVDAOig, "'* n79— Revouitionaiiy Incident, 1780— Bioorai'iiical Sketch of Epuraim k WeBSTKU— TEKAT1E8 WITH THE OnONDAGAS— MILITARY TbACT, Ancient Aboriginal Names, of lakes, streams and locali- ties, in Onondaga county and vicinity :— Onondaga— written by the Jesuit Fathers two hundred years ago, Onontae and Onontague, and by early English | writers, Onontago, Onondago, Onondawgu and Onondaugua. : The interpretation of the word Onondaga, has been variously given, as "Under the Hill, at the end of the swamp," "the ; swamp at the foot of the mountain." But from the best in- formation we have obtained, we set it down as the " Residence of the People of the Ililh;' the word swamp having no con- nection with it. By the ancient Fathers and their own most distinguished chiefs, the people of Onondaga were styled "The Iroquois Highlanders," "Men of the Hills," "People of the Mountain," &c. This name included their valley, their hills, and the ancient scat of their council-fire. Onondaga Lake— was called by the Jesuits, " Genentaa." It is now called by the natives Oh-nen-ta-ha. Its significa- tion we have boon unable to ascertain. Its very appropriate name, and the one by which it is at present most commonly called by the natives, is Kotchakatoo, or lake surrounded by salt springs. ^^ i ? Onondaga Creek— is called by the Indians, Kah-yungk- wa-tah-toa. < Library, (by '^ daqua." Hec west branch ig through a deej ing from beti creek and ne Oh-na-ta-toom the canal and cuse, it is cal water goes thi Outlet op short stream, to the Seneca Rigole," onac (Dr. E. B. 0' Onondaga '. es the road. Onondaga ' ell's map of tl this range of ] and on an an Mountains." Otisco Lak times Otskah. Creek, is call is Kia-heun-ta gives " Ustuka Skaneatel] long lake. Tl is called Ilanc or hemlock ere res." Map in eatdie Lake. "Hananto." Oneida Lai us by an India REMINISCENCES. 828 English I iaugua. iriously ""the best in- isidence no con- vn most I styled V ' People ay, their lentaa." agnifica- |, iropi'iate f- •mnionly ndedby wa-tdh-toa. On a map in the New- York Historical Society's Library, (by Mr. Thurber, of Utica,) we find it called, " Kun- daqua." Heckewelder calls it the river " Zinochsaa." The west branch is called by the Indians, Swe-nugh-kee — cutting through a deep gulf. The east branch is called Sta-a-ta — com- ing from between two barren knolls. The estuary of the creek and neighborhood of Syracuse, was formerly called, Oh-na-ta-toonk — among the pines. Since the completion of the canal and the building up of the village and city of Syra- cuse, it is called Kali-ya-hoo-neh — where the ditch full of water goes through. Outlet of Onondaga Lake — is called So-hah-hee. This short stream, which issues from the Onondaga Lake and runs to the Seneca River, was anciently called by the French, " La Rigole," on account of its resemblance to a deep cut or trench. (Dr. E. B. O'Callaghan.) Onondaga Hollow — Teuaheughwa — where the path cross- es the road. Onondaga West BiLL-KaJi-che-qua-ne-tmg-ta. On Mitch- ell's map of the British and French dominions in America, this range of hills is called, " Tegerhunkserode mountains," and on an ancient Dutch map, they are called the " Table Mountains." Otisco Lake — is called by the Indians, Kaioongk, some- times Otskah. The outlet of Otisco Lake and Nine Mile Creek, is called Hoh-ste-kah. Its estuary at Onondaga Lake is Kia-heun-ta-ha. Map in the Historical Society's Library gives " Ustuka" for the name of Nine Mile Creek. Skaneateles Lake — is called Skehneahties, meaning very long lake. The stream that leads from it to Seneca River, is called Hanauttoo — water running through thick hemlocks, or hemlock creek. Charlevoix' map gives it " Lac Scaneate- res." Map in the Historical Society Library has it Skan- eatdie Lake. The same authority gives for the river or outlet "Hananto." Oneida Lake. — Although this body of water is known to us by an Indian name, it is believed the natives never called 324 ONONDAGA. it Oneida. The Onondagas call it Sc-ui/h-kn — i. c, striped witli bluo and wliite linos, separatinrr and coniin;:; ton-ctlior again. In order fully to comprehend this interpretation and Hignification, the person should occupy some one of the hii'ji grounds of Manlius or INnnpcy, where the whole extent ol' this lake may bo distinctly seen some ten or twelve miles dis- tant. At particular times the surface presents white and lihic lines distinctly traceable from its head :o its outlet. At sucli times it is strikingly beautiful, and its Indian name peculiar- ly significant. On the Jesuit maps, published from l(i)U to 1693, Avhich have come to the author's notice, this lake is coiled "Lac Techtroguen dos Onneiouts." Charlevoix has it "Lac Techiroguen." Thur])cr's map has it "Kanoaloka Lake." In Capt. Machin's journal, ho calls it, " Onida-ho-fjo Lake." Wentworth Greenhalgh, wdio visited it in 1677, writes it "Tsiroqui Lake." It seems to have been known to the early English writers, as the " Oneidas' Lake," afterwards tlie Oneida Lake, as it is now designated. On an old map in the Secretary of State's office at Albany, it is set down " Ca- hung-hage" Lake. Fort Brewerton — Ohaahaunijtah-Scurjh'knh — Literally. where the waters run out of Oneida Lake. Pere le Mcrcier names an Oneida village, near and south of this place, called " Ganayhsaragey," {Canasoraga perhaps,) and an English au- thority (Lon. Docs.) locates an Indian village near the oudct of Oneida Lake, called "■Kaneenda." Oneida River — Sah-eli. — Jesuits' map, " Tethiroguen."— Thurber's map, "Taguneda." Turee-Rivrr-Poixt — Te-u-unq-hu-lra — meetinsi; of waters or Avhere two rivers meet. Cross Lake — Te-^tngi-too — Thurber's map, " Yuneendo:" Schoolcraft, "Teonto" — signification, residence of the vise man. There is a singular tradition alive, amoiig the Ononda- gas, respecting an aged and very wise chief, who lived on tlie eastern shore of this lake many hundred years ago. Ili^ name was Hiawatha. — {Sec his story, page, 21.) TuLLY, Fabius, Truxton, &c. — Tc-kanea-ta-lming-ne- xigli — Very li water flows in lent hunting I'OMl'EY AJ much grass — this locality, ; much supersti lilood, or blooi It has been sa They certaiid^ LiMKSTUXK Tc-a-une-nog} wise, a strear through whicl: BuTTERNU'i Ka-soongJc-ta- litcrally, bark after being pe iiier, and thei winter, or tha Greex Pon fled with toba Deep Spri .spring. Neai tlement of th( ern fort, surrc tioned at this door of the m Cicero Sw L'veat swamp, Cazenovia iji'-lia-gah, (Oi iish swim, or 3 county, and w, Onondagas. uu the site of ClIITTENAXi i REMINISCENCES. 325 m ugh — Very high hills, with many small lakes, from which water flows in contrary directions. It implies, also, an excel- lont hunting ^'rouml. J'oMPKY AND La VAYKriii—Otc-tje-f/a-Ja-Jce—a. place of much grass — openings or praiiios. Another name given to this locality, not often repeated, and about which there is much superstitious reserve, is Ote-ipich-snh-he-eh, the field of Mood, or bloody ground — a place where many have been slain. It has been said, that no Indian ever visits this neijibborhood. They certainly very much dislike to converse about it. Lr.MKSTONK CiiEiiiK, passing through Manlius — Indian name, Te-a-unc-nogh'hc — the angry stream or Mad Creek ; other- wise, a stream that rises suddenly, overflowing the country through which it passes. BuTTKRNUT CUEEK, passing through Do Witt — Indian name Ka-soongh-ta — formerly called by the whites, " Kashunkta;" literally, barks in the Avater, or a place where barks are placed lifter being peeled in spring, that thoy may not curl in sum- mer, and thereby become unfit for covering their cabins for winter, or that they may always be in readiness for use. Green Pond, in the town of De Witt — Kai-yah-koo — satis- fied with tobacco. — See Be Witt. Deep Spuing — Te-ungh-sat-a-i/af/h — by the fort at the spring. Near this spring was anciently the easternmost set- tlement of the Onondngas. Thoy had at this place an earth- ern fort, surrounded with palisades. There were always sta- tioned at this place a party of warriors, to hold the eastern door of the nation. — Sec Deep Spring, town of Manlius. CiCEKO Swamp — Ka-nugh-wa-ka — where the rabits run — L'reat swamp, where is plenty of game. Cazenovia Lake — Iloh-wah-gc-neh (Onondaga,) — 0-wah- fli'-Jia-gah, (Oneida,). Literally, the lake where the yellow lish swim, or yellow perch lake. This lake is in Madison county, and w;is anciently a fishing ])laco for the Oneid;is and Onondagas. The Oneidns had a small village on the east side, oil the site of the villa";e of Cazenovia, extendin;' north. CliiTTENANUO Creek. — Pcre Ic Mercier, in 11155, calls it '11#!M M m m^ 826 ONONDAGA. Ooionho. Tho same authority calls a fishing place near Cross Lakk, Kachnawaachftrc^o. OswKcjo and outlet of Oawcgo River — called by tho Onon- dagas, Oah-wa-kef. Literally, I see every where — nee noth- ing. Charlevoix calls tho river, " Riviere des Onnoiitagucs." Early English writers call it tho " Onondagoes' river," and eomotimes the outlet, " Sweege." An Indian village, at the Oswego Falls, was called by Mercier, " Quiehook," and the ledge, over which the water falls, he calls, "Kagiiewagrage." Ontario Lakk. — Tho Onondaga:: called this lake, and do to this day, (hhivakee. The Mohawks called it Cadaraqui; the Senocas, Ohudeara. Jesuit map, 1H64, it is sot down "Lac Ontario ou dea Iroquois." Jesuit Relation, KiGf), haa it Ondiara. Father Ilenepin, " Lac Skanadario," or beauti- ful lake. Champlain, 1615, calls it tho Lake of the Entou- honorons. Teoronto Bay, or Jerundegut — called by the Jesuit Fa- thers, " Audiatarontagat," KJOf). Cheorontok, (Onondaga.) SoDUS Bay — Ganatio. Osonodus — Jesuits. Cayuga Lake — On Jesuits' map, "Tiohcro lac" — "Geju- goueu" by Charlevoix — " Gwaugweh," Thurber's map. Cayuga Marshes — Squagonna. Seneca River — Thiohero, or River of Rushes — Jesuits' map and Relation, 16G8-9. Charlevoix, gives the same. The lake bears the same name by the same authority. Besides the maps, books, &c, which have been consulted in order to prepare the foregoing list of Indian names of locali- ties, the author acknowledges his indebtedness to the late In- dian chiefs, Capt. Frost and La Fort, for much valuable assistance. Many of the foregoing names are given in other places, but for convenience and reference, it has been thought best to give them a place by themselves. EXPEDITIOI OAS, 177J) :— The shockii and 1778, by savage than I tiers, had irr( dod motivtm o national intei in the VVyom waste, and ilu and their still then hovering Brant, Johnsc on tho watch, nary atrocitie So alarming I apprehended most western Tlio Indian palling a char raander-iu-chi( force than ha( thiit part of t early part of the science o suaded of the sivc frontier o of forts whict country would than defensiv rapid moveme force sufficien towns, provide his making a contingent pa: duction of th< gave them an *-m RKMINISCF.NCES. 327 Expedition op Col. "Van Schaick against the Ononda- OAS, 177J) :— Tho Hhocking barburitios practicod during tho years 1777 and 177H, by tho Indians, united with white men, still more savage than Indians, on tho inhabitants of tho western fron- tiers, had irresistil'iy attracted tho public attenlion, and ad- ded motives of mingled resentment and humanity to those of national interest. The beautiful and thriving settlements in the Wyoming Valley and Cherry Valley, had been laid waste, and tlieir inhabitants massacred by the ruthless savages and their still more ruthless coadjutors, the IJritish and tories, then hovering around our borders, under the direction of Brant, Johnson and tho Sutlers. These leaders, continually on tho watch, were successful in committing tho most sangui- nary atrocities on tho settlements along the Mohawk River. So alarming had these irruptions become, that it was fearfully apprehended that Schenectady would speedily stand as tho most western boundary of the frontier settlements. Tho Indian depredations became so frequent, and of so ap- palling a character to the frontier inhabitants, that tho com- mander-in-chief soon found it necessary to employ a larger force than had been heretofore spared, for tho protection of that part of the country. General Washington, v/ho in the early part of his life had received many practical lessons in the science of Indian warfare, had been always firmly per- suaded of tho absolute impossibility of defending our exten- sive frontier on the west from their incursions, by any chain of forts which could bo erected and garrisoned ; and that the country would be much more certainly protected by offensive than defensive operations. Ilis plan was to penetrate by rapid movements into the heart of tho Indian country, with a force sufficient at once to accomplish the destruction of their towns, provided the circumstances of the army would justify ilis making a detachment sufficient for the purpose. As a contingent part of this plan, he had also contemplated the re- duction of the British post at Niagara, the possession of which gave them an almost irresistible influence over the Six Na- *. 328 ONONDAGA, tions. This plan constituted one of the various subjects of conference with the committee of Congress in Thiladelphiu, and received the entire approbation of that body. New-Yorlc ' Massachusetts, Pennsylvania and Connecticut respectively applied to Congress for aid, urging the adoption at once of the most vigorous measures. A committee was a])pointed to confer with General Washingtan, and in conformity with their report, Congress resolved, "That the commander-in-chief bo directed to take efTicicnt measures for the protection of the inhabitants and chastisement of the savages," Other reso- lutions were passed at tJie same time for nUsing companies of rangers, for the sole purpose of serving on the western fron- tiers. The Indian settlements were extensive throughout the western part of New York, and from their long intercourse with the whites, had made considerable advances in civiliza- tion. In their populous villages were to be seen many com- fortable houses, and their fertile fields and orchards yielded an abundant supply of corn and fruit. So.ne of the Oneidas were attached to tlie United States, but generally, the Six Nations were entirely under British influence, fro'm whose posts m die lakes they received supplies of blankets, rum. arms, and other imported articles. ]\Iany loyalists who had ])een forced to quit their country, had taken refuge among them^ and added to their strength, without diminishing tlirir ferocity. They found an asylum among the Indians^ lived with them in their villages, and urged them on in iheir expe- ditions against the Americans. Against these congregated bands it was determined lo lead a force which jdiould"be''suffi- cient at once to crush any force they could possibly bring into the field, and effectually destroy their ^lllagerf. The comitry was to be entered by three divisions at the same time, the whole to be under the orders of General James Clinton. :riie principal body, to consist of about three thousand men, was to proceed up the Susquehanna, and penetrate the heart of the country occupied by the Senecas. The second, of about one thousand men, was to move up the Mohawk liivcr, and men, was to towns in thai secrecy were real destinat success woul Demonstrati( da, while the enterprise re was greedily this time the : can army, wl the whole pla ergies, autho and other dis been restored cation of the grand expedii though of les out with the Onondagas, o about fift}^ in within the re;; place. A pla approved by assisted by I marched from April, at the the mornin the fall trade. Selkirk was taken sick, died an.l was buried suiuewhere on ti. bunk of the lake„not far di.laul from the.r trading Jioii!«e. sion, report* employed, i with the On by the Driti posed to be disguised. trusted he i spy. In ord expose hinis( liquor, and t They awakei harly in the ignorance ; I no advantage as Avhen the^ During tin granted to hi of the Hollo Uved Avith an lot of land, finally gruntc on the part o Legislature ii consistini; of son aihl Davi for, on the p; uf New-York After [he ( after this grai name of Dan bad a family uving ill the ( He vas in ^^12, with Li -ed of lii ^ w he held a Ca]- New-York, ar RKMINISCENCES. 889 Bion, reported to tlie satisfaction of those by whom ho was employed, and receiv: 1 a suitable reward, lie was often with the Onoiidugua at Uswc^o, while the fort was retained by the Jiriti.sii, and was, by tli.' ollicers of the f^arrison, sup- posed to be a full-))lood Indian, so eomplotely was lie usually dis/,'uised. From some cause or other, at one time they mis- trusted he was a white man, and churned him with being a spy. Ill order to induce him to declare his real character, or to expose hims(lf in some way, they plied him freely with strong liquor, and then used every device to efl'oct their purpose" They awakened him suddeidy from sleep, 8;i luted him fami- liarly in the English language, of which he expressed entire ignorance ; being always guarded and prepared, they gained no advantage over him, and ho left them as much in the dark as Avhen they commonceil. During the early part of his sojourn with tho Indians, they granted to him a mile s(iuare of lan;irt of the people of the State of JS'ew-York, by the Legislature in 170.'), and tho commissioners of Indian lands, consisting of Philip Schuyler, John Cantine, John Richard- son and David Brooks, were directed to execute a deed there- for, on the part, and in the name of the people of the State of New- York. After the death of .'lis Indian woman, which li-ppenod soon after this grant by tlio State, he married a white woman of tho name of Danks, of very respectable connections, by whom he bad a family of sons and daughters, several of whom are now nving in the Onondaga va^ y. He was in the service of the United States, in the \>ar of 1^12, with La Fort, an Onondaga chief and some three him- ui-ed of hi'-? warriors, on the Niagara frontier. At that time he held a Captain's commission in th<' militia of the State of New-York, and wielded a salutary inllacnce over the Indians. IT ^''- ■ tiJt —*»f^. 840 ONONDAGA, Ho was at the battle of Chippewa, and acted aa interpreter in the transmission of orders from (Joncral lirown to lloh-a-ho- a-qua, the (Japtain of the Six Nations, on tliis oocasion. Tiio action commenced on the hank of tlio river, between a party of British Indians and American militia. The British Indians were in full view, and the Onondagaa were ordered to make a circuit through the woods and open a firo upon the Ihitish right Hank. In this they succeeded beyond their expectation. They stole stealthily along the woods and gave the C;inadian Indians a shot, upon which they - S48 ONONDAGA. and first settlers in the vicinity, who will yet bear witness to its authenticity. Treaties. — At a Treaty held at Fort Schuyler, formerly called Fort Stanwix, in the State of New York, by His Excellen- cy, George Clinton, Governor of the said State, and William Floyd, Ezra L. Hommedieu, Richard Varick, Samuel Jones, Eg- bert Benson, and Peter Gansevoort, Junior, Commissioners, authorized for that purpose, by and on behalf of the people of the State of New- York, with the tribe or nation of Indians called the Onondagoes, it is on the twelfth day of September, in the year one thousand seven hundred and eighty-eight, covenanted and concluded as follows : — First. The Onondagoes do cede and grant all their lands to the people of the State of New- York forever. Secondly, the Onondagoes shall, of the said ceded lands, hold to themselves and their posterity forever, for their own use and cultivation, but not to be sold, leased, or in any other manner aliened or disposed of to others, all that tract of land beginning at the southerly end of the salt lake, at the place where the river or stream on which the Onondagoes now have their village, emp- ties into the said lake, and runs from the said place of begin- ning east three miles ; thence southerly according to the gen- eral course of the said river, until it shall intersect a line running east and west, at the distance of three miles south from the said village ; thence from the said point of intersec- tion west nine miles ; thence northerly parallel to the second course above mentioned, until an east line will strike the place of beginning ; and thence east to the said place of beginning. Thirdly, the Onondagoes and their posterity forever, shall en- joy the free right of hunting in every part of the said ceded lands, and of wishing in all the waters within the same. Fourth- ly, the salt lake and the lands, for one mile round the same, shall forever remain for the common benefit of the people of the Stai3 of New- York, and of the Onondagoes and their pos- terity for :he purpose of making salt, and shall not be grant- ed or in ai. >' wise disposed of for other purposes. Fifthly, in considcrati State of IS one thousa pounds in pie of the and clothir r, people of 1 Onondagoc June in ev dollars in ' shall at an of the sale provisions, ) Governor c : of the ann }^ provisions, .| and at the 1 State of N if ^ people of t ;'■, shall deem 1 goes from ] ;^ the Onond 1 cultivation the people on the said aforesaid, 1 give notice State for tl their postei of the said York, in re only such i may happc such intrud justice. I warriors, ai tribe or nal REMINISCENCES. 849 consideration of the said cession and grant, the people of the State of New York do, at this treaty, pay to the Onondagoes one thousand French crowns in money, and two hundred pounds in clothing, at the price which the same costs the peo- ple of the State of New- York, (the receipt of which money and clothing the Onondagoes do now acknowledge ;) and the people of the State of New York shall annually pay to the Onondagoes and their posterity, forever, on the first day of June in every year, at Fort Schuyler aforesaid, five hundred dollars in silver ; but if the Onondagoes or their posterity, shall at any time hereafter elect that the whole or any part of the said five hundred dollars shall be paid in clothing or provisions, and give six weeks previous notice thereof to the Governor of the said State for the time being, then so much of the annual payment shall for that time be in clothing or provisions, as the Onondagoes or their posterity shall elect, and ut the price which the same shall cost the people of the State of New- York, at Fort Schuyler aforesaid. Sixthly, the people of the State of New- York may, in such manner as they shall deem proper, prevent any persons except the Ononda- goes from residing or settling on the lands so to be held by the Onondagoes and their posterity, for their own use and cultivation ; and if any persons shall, without the consent of the people of the State of New-York, come to reside or settle on the said lands, or on any other of the lands so ceded as aforesaid, the Onondagoes and their posterity shall forthwith give notice of such intrusions to the Goveri'or of the said State for the time being ; and further, the Onondagoes and their posterity forever, shall, at the request of the Governor of the said State, be aiding to the people of the State of New- York, in removing all such intruders, and in apprehending not only such intruders, but also felons and other oifonders who may happen to be on the said ceded lands, to tlio end that such intruders, felons, and other offenders, ma/ bo brought to justice. In testimony whereof, as well the sachems, chief warriors, and others of the said Onondagoes, in bohalf of their tribe or nation, as the said Governor and other commissioners ill' :,f^^'-^ 860 ONONDAGA. on behalf of the people of the State of New- York, have here- unto interchangeably set their hands and affixed their seals the day and year first above written. BEAR. Kahiktoton, Tehojiskeaiyea, Waghselonyahhe, by the chief of the clan DEER. Kanaghssctegea, Agogighkwayewa, TURTLE. Tehonwaghstoweaghte, fehagoyenawaghskwo, Kanadaes, Sagoeyons, Sagosaiewas, by the chief of the clan. BEAVER. by his cousin. Kanadakeawaghte, Adahswoandaahsea, Waghshaine, by the chief of the clan. WOLF. Tehoenagalaongh, Skawyadaliyo Kalonghyo, by his brother. EEL. Agwelondongwas. Thanehaaghkwa, by the chief of the clan. Shagohaasscgh, Hyanoenwe, by tlic chief of the clan. GOVERNESSES. Onocwileghto, Tjeanoenikhe, by the chief of the clan. Kaeghhewa. Geo. Clinton, Wm. Floyd, Ezra L. Hommediou, Rich'd Varick, Samuel Jones, Egbt. Benson, Peter Gansevoort, Jr. Witnesses present. Simeon De Witt, Surveyor General ; Louis Nyadeghhalongweah, of the Oneidas; Chief Govern- ess of the Senecas, Kayendatsyona; Senccas, Shagodyadyes- tha, Hanoweantho, Joayhgwalet, Sheanooewa, Shagokanyos. Cayugas, Kaneongwe, Haghgouthiyo, Sam. Kirkland, Inter- pret; John L. Bleecker, Interpret; P. Pcnet, Sam'l Latham Mitchell, Nicholas Jourdain, Wm. Colbrath, Friedrick Fox, Abr'm Bloodgood.* At a treaty held at Onondaga by John Cantine and Simeon Be Witt, two of the agents appointed for that purpose, by and on behalf of the people of the State of New- York, by an act * A treaty was held at Fort Stanwix, coniirniing former treaties, 16th of Junej 1790. REMINISCENCES. 351 of the Legislature of the said State, entitled " An Act rela- tive to the lands appropriated by this State to the use of the Oneida, Onondaga and Cayuga Indians," passed the 11th day of March, 1703, with the tribe or nation of Indians called the Onondagoes. It is on the eighteenth day of November, in the year one thousand seven hundi'ed and ninety-three, cove- nanted and concluded as follows : — First, the Onondagoes do release and quit-claim to the peo- ple of the State of New- York forever, all the rights reserved to the said Onondagoes, in and to, so much of the lands appro- priated to their use by the said State, commonly called the Onondaga Reservation, as is comprehended within the two following tracts of land, (to wit) the first of the said two tracts begins in the east bounds of the said reservation at a cer- tain bass-wood tree, marked for seven miles south, from the north-east corner of the said reservation, and runs from the said place of beginning, west to the river or stream commonly called the Onondago Creek, on which the Onondagoes now have their village, then northerly down along the said river or creek, to the lands appropriated for the common benefit of the peo- ple of the State of New- York, and of the Onondagoes and their posterity, for the purpose of making salt, then easterly and northerly along the said last mentioned lands to the lino run for the north bounds of the said reservation ; then east, along the said line to the north-east corner of the said reservation, and then south, along the east bounds of the said reservation, seven miles to the place of beginning. And the second of the said tracts, begins at a point in the south bounds of the said reservatior , four miles west from the south-east corner thereof, and runs from the said place of beginning, north, so far until an east course will strike the aforesaid bass-wood tree, marked for seven miles south, from the north-east corner of the said reservation, then east, to a point half a mile west from the aforesaid Onondaga Creek, then northerly along straight lines, connecting points successively, at intervals of half a mile northing from each other ; each of which points shall bo half a mile, measured west from the said Onondaga Creek, ;li 852 ONONDAGA. to the aforesaid lands appropriated for the common benoat of the people of the Stato of Now- York and of the Ouondagoes and their posterity, for the purpose of making salt, then along the same westerly and northerly to the line run for the north bounds of the said reservation, then along the said line west to the north-west corner of the said reservation, then along the west bounds thereof, suuth to the south-west corner thereof, and then along the south bounds thereof, east, to the place of beginning: Secondly; in consideration of the said release and quit -claim, the people of the State of Mew- York do, at this treaty, pay to the Onondagoes, four hundred and ten dol- lars, the receipt whereof the Onondagoes do hereby acknowl- edge. And the people of the State of New-York, shall pay to the Onondagoes, on the first day of June next, two hundred and eighteen dollars, and on the first day of June, annually, for ever thereafter, four hundred and ten dollars. Tlurdly,' the payments which the Onondagoes nre by virtue of these presents entitled annually to receive, and also those payments which they are by covenants heretofore c-.tcred into' entitled annually to receive from the people of the State of New-York, shall be made and discharged at Onondago, at the village where the said Onondagoes now reside, anything in any former covenants contained to the contrary notwithstanding. Fourth- ly, the people of the State of NcAv-York, shall, from thne to time, and at all times forever hereafter, have full pow r and authority to lay out and open roads through any part of the lands appropriated by the people of the State of New-York to the use of the Onondagoes, and not hereby (, ut-clairaed in the same way and manner, as roads now are, and hereafter may be directed by law to be laid out and made generally in other parts of the State. Fifthly, the several boundaries of the lands herein before described, the rights to which die said Onondagoes have by these presents, released and quit-claimed to the people of the State of New- York, and also the southerly boundaries of the lands appropriated for the common benefit of the people of the State of New-York, and of the Ononda- goes and their posterity, for the purpose of making salt ; shall, Si' n I' afl soon as coi at the expens of New- York, these present! said nation a said nation m running and i said. Signed by dagas, aad on tine and Sim( ster, interprel At a Treat; New York, b^ and John Ricl and on behalf the tribe or n; this twenty ei; and ninety-fivi Whereas there articles of av 6^ <^ ^ <^ ^i>^ A 1' Jr/i ^ "^i^^ ,9 The commissloncrg for granting bounty lands, &c., by law, consistt'd of tlie (jovernor, the Lieutenant (Jovevnor, the Speaker of the Assembly, the Secretary of the State, the Attorney General, the Treasurer, and Auditor thereof. Any three of whom transacted business, the Governor always being one of them. It should bo borne in mind that the Indian title to these military lands had not as yet been extinguished. vVnd there Bcemed to be some doiil)t and uncertainty as to the time when it would be. Some of the claimants became clamorous, con- sequently on the loth of May, 17H({, the Legislature passed an act authorizing the commissioners of the land oflice to or- der the Surveyor General to lay out several townships, Avhere the Indian title had been extinguished, to satisfy the claims of the officers and soldiers of the New- York regiments. These laiuls were located in the north part of the State of New-York, and consisted of twelve townships, numbered from south to north and back, two tiers, each toAvnship containing one hundred square miles, being each ten miles square, equal to about seven hundred and sixty-eight thousand acres. Num- bers one, two, eleven, twelve, are noAV in Essex county ; num- bers three, four, five, six, in Clinton county, and seven, eight, nine, ten in Franklin county. This was subsequently called the "Old Military Tract." Many of the soldiers' rights had been bought up by specu- lators, and it was soon ascertained by them that these lands were not to be compared to the lands in western New- York for fertility and prospective value. The Legislature was in- duced to defer the final settlement of claims until the Indian title was extinguished to the lands of the Onondagas, Cayu- gas and Senecas. By the Treaty of Fort S*anwix, dated 12th September, 1788, the Indian title was extinguished, and the several indi- vidual rights were located as was at first intended. The Military Tract originally contained about one million eight hundred thousand acres, or about three thousand rights, exclusive of reservations. Deceptions and frauds had already '■ 'I,... iiiiiiii^ir 360 ONONDAGA. been practiced to a considerable extent, and the settlement of these claims proceeded but very slovrly ; and it was with the greatest difficulty that the commissioners could distinguish be- tween the rightful and fraudulent claimants. In 1789, the commissioners of the land office directed the Surveyor Gene- ral to lay out as many townships as would satisfy the claims of persons entitled to bounty lands. He accordingly laid out twenty-five townships, numbering from one to twenty-five in- clusive. Township number twenty-six was added in 1791. Each township to contain sixty thousand acres of land. These townships were to bo subdivided into lots of six hundred acres each. In 1790, the Surveyor General completed the survey, and fifty acres, to be located in one of the corners of each lot, was suHfct to the payment of forty-eight shillings to the Surveyor General, as a compensation for his services. Hence the origin of the term " Survey Fifty;" and the further sum of eight shillings was charged by the Secretary of State, upon each lot in addition to his customary fees for perfecting con- veyances. The Surveyor General, Simeon De Witt, personally laid out the whole Military Tract, by plotting and mapping the boundaries and calculating the whole area. Moses De Witt and Abraham Hardenburgh, were appointed by the Surveyor General, as his assistants, to divide the Military Tract thus laid out, into townships, each to contain one hundred lots. Some of these townships were extremely irregular, and so of many of the lots. But wherever practicable, it was intended to have each township ten miles square, and each lot one mile square. The division of townships into lots was made under the direction and superintendence of Moses De Witt and Abraham Hardenburgh. But the labor was performed by several individuals, among .whom were Benjamin Wright, J. L. Hardenburgh, John Cantine, Josiah Buck, Comfort Ty- ler, Joseph Annin, Benjamin Barton, Jacob Hart, William Ewing, Orris Curtis, Peter G. Cuddeback, Thomas Nicholson, John Konkle, and some others who assisted them, and who aeted as surveyors of townships. p The t( 1 and the I be herca f terms, oi Tract, w certain o two, thre missionei Townshij a « <( « (( « u ^^ (( In our townships ships of ] Onondagj Bake of c< different j us, Tully, the towns may be r( tary Trac On the to determi share. I One lot wj of New-Y township 1 REMINISCENCES. 801 The terms town and township are frequently confounded, and the one often substituted for the other. That there may be hereafter no misconstruction or misunderstanding of these terms, once for all, we say that a township on the Military Tract, was a particular parcel of land laid out, containing certain one hundred lots. These were at first numbered one, two, three, &c. But afterwards they were named by the com- missioners of the land office, after distinguished men : Township No. 1, Lysander, Township No. 14, Tully, ' I a u u (( (( « a (( <( 2, Hannibal, 3, Cato, 4, Brutus, 5, Camillus, 6, Cicero, 7, Manlius, 8, Aurelius, 9, Marcellus, 10, Pompey, " 11, Romulus, 12, Scipio, 13, Sempronius, <( u (( <( (( (( « (C (( il ii a « (( 15, Fabiua, 16, Ovid, 17, Milton, 18, Locke, 19, Homer, 20, Solon, 21, Hector, 22, Ulysses, 23, Dryden, 24, Virgil, 25, Cincinnatus, 26, Junius. In our early organization, a town often embraced several townships ; as the town of Pompey at first included the town- ships of Pompey, Fabius and Tully, and a large part of the Onondaga reservation. After settlements increased, for the sake of convenience, the same territory has been divided, at difiFerent periods, into the towns of Pompey, Lafayette, Fabi- us, Tully, Truxton and Preble, including a part of each of the towns of Otisco, Spafford and Onondaga. The same may be remarked of other towns and townships on the Mili- tary Tract. On the 1st of January, 1791, the commissioners proceeded to determine these claims, and to ballot for each individual's share. Ninety-four persons drew lots in each township. One lot was drawn for the support of literature in the State of New- York ; one lot was assigned near the centre of each township by the Surveyor General, for the support of the gos- 46 ; i 111 362 ONONDAfi A. pel nnd to correct it. The former act re- lative to aetuiil settlement was repealed, and the tiaie for RU'li actual settlement was extended seven 3'ears from 1st of January, 17!*-. In case of faihn-o to settle within that time, then the lands reverted to the State as before. The equitable adjustment of these land claims Avas a. source of continual embarrassment and per})lexity to the commissioners, and to the real owners. In Au^^ust, 17!*2, the l^oard of Commissioners, finding it necessary in order to comply with the grants of Ixumty lands, lately directed b^'' law to be made to the Hospital department and others, caused township number twenty-seven, and the lots thereon, respectively to be numbered agreeable to law, and the township to be designated by the name of the township of Galen. In January, 1705, there still appeared to bo several unsat- isfied claims for military l)ounty lands, and the twenty-seven townships being already disposed of, the board resolved that the Surveyor (ieneral should lay out one other township, num- bered twenty-eight. This was subsecpiently named Sterlimj ; which satisfied all the remaininji; claims. In January, 1704, an act was passed, on account of the many frauds committed respecting the titles to these military bounty lands, by forging and antedating conveyances ; by con- veying the same to dift'erent persons, and by various other de- vices, and to prevent future frauds, the act provided that all deeds and conveyances made and executed ])eforo that time, or pretending to be so, should be deposited Avith the clerk of the county of Albany, for the time being, and all such as were not so deposited, should be considered fraudulent. The names of the claimants were posted up in alphabetical order in the clerk's office at Albany, and also at the clerk's office at Herkimer, for the more full inspection of all persons inter- rf<:minkscence.s. 3G3 cstod. Tht'so dalms were still contostcil, mnl tlio eonrta ovor- llowod with husiiK'SM roliitivo thereto. Sciircu a lot hut hocainc more or loss the sul)ject of liti;^ation. Kven the soldierw thcinsolves, eotniiif^ to take possession of tho lots for Avhieh they had servetl, were ol)lii:;ed to eject some lawless s([uattur at considerahle expense, or (|uictly to yield their hard earned titles. At leii<^th the iidiahitants of the military tract became BO conii>l(!tely W(!!iried with these continued and most vexing contentions, that in 171*7, the residents of the several town- ships on tli(! Military Tract, unanimously and most lu-artily united in petilioniu;^ the State Le;^islature to pass a law au- thori/ing a speedy and e(piitahle n)odo of settling all disputes relativo to those titles. An act was thereupon passed appoint- ing Iloliert Vates, James Kent, and Vincent Ma.thows, Com- missioners, with fidl powers to hear, examine, awai'd and de- termine all disputes respecting the titles to any and all the military bounty lands. The (iiovernor was authorized to fdl all vacancies in this hoard. From the record of the awards made by the Onondaga. Commissioners, the name of James Kent does not at all appear in their transactions. Most of the awards of 17nH-!)l), are signed by Vincent Mathews and James Emmott ; later ones by Vincent Mathews aiul llol)ert Yates, and some of those of 1801 and 1802, by ISIessrs. Mathews and Emmott, and Sanders Livingston. They pro- ceeded to the Avork, and after a laborious investigaiion, the exertions of these gentlemen finally brought these vexing and lingering contentions to a satisfactory close. l! m :l!;; 1 I f If' ~Ouu ¥OlSi .-.r ■- >i Tiii:ASt'K EBU — M KMUtttl: FmsT Board** oj Sui'E- vomammth ►iRT'' !n ■ Co-*. 'alca« *.. :><.f- >- •^1, to enlist as a soldier of iourti eu, he entered Ilia term of service wa?- of sit. being mostly ooufioed to duty West Point, lu 1783, he went to < hawk liiver, where he entered upon - tauglit a school ; and as is often ti gifted mind.?, he ni:id<; greater advaii •. than his pupils. Among the superior • ted from New-Kngliind to the wilder^ York, a large proportion of them have i prelimini ry to teaeh a sehooT, ai ing land, in order to Hcenr(> a suiali iuud and successfully to make headway in the world. Whil '■ '"vlcr was thus en- gaged at f'"M.'-ii...-r.,,.n. n,- .t T, . 1 u ton came ttp th« Oboa — Oi Teea FlRSl POINl Com ticut, brothe] he mai to enlii of four His tei being i West I hawk I taught gifted 1 than h /\y ^>' R T TYLER. 878 concerned. Previous to the cession of Louisiana, to the United States, Baron V. N. Tut. Bastrop, contracted with the Spanish government, for a tract of land exceeding tiiirty miles square near Nachitoches. Subsequently, Col. Charles Lynch made an agreement with Baron Bastrop, for an interest in this purchase. Aaron Burr purchased of Col. Lynch about four hundred thousand acres of tliis land, lying between the Sabine and Nachitoches, and paid for it fifty thousand dollars. The grant of Bastrop contained about one million two hun- dred thousand acres, and six-tenths of it was conveyed to Col. Lynch, and Col. Burr became interested in one half of Lynch's share, for the consideration above named. This is the commencement of the celebrated Burr conspi- racy. In the spring of 1805, Burr passed through the State of Pennsylvania to the Ohio valley, and down to New Or- leans. It was at this time that ho visited the beautiful Island of Herman Blennerhassct. Whatever scheme of ambition he contemplated, or what mighty project for founding a vast empire in the south-west he had planned, is unknown. There was a profound mystery in his movements, which could not be penetrated. The ostensible object of his operations was the settlement of the lands he had bargained for on the Washita River. Hundreds had been sounded on the subject of the speculation, and had assented to a participation in its profits, without knowing the destiny, or calculating on the event, of what was now in progress. In fact, the unfolding of the plan was not yet, and its result and prospects were perhaps only known to Aaron Burr, the grand projector of the hidden scheme. It has been supposed by many that his final object was the possession of New Orleans, the conquest of all Mexico and the formation of a new Republic. Many of the principal men of New- York and Ohio, were, through the wiles and machinations of this exuberant genius, drawn within the influences of his plans, and without harboring a surmise of evil, joined their fortunes with his. What commu- nication Comfort Tyler had with the grand leader of this project is unknown. He first made the acquaintance of Aaron 874 ONONDAGA. Burr, while they woio nioinbiTS togothor of tlio New- York Legislature, in 17!>H and 171>!». The New- York delegation was composed of Aaron Burr Goorgo Clinton, .rolm Swartwout, — (Jutes and others. At this session Col. Tyler procured the charter for building the Cayuga Bridge, and in order to facilitate the >york, Col- Burr, and Gen. John Swartwout, sulmcrihed for, took the ifholo stock, and furnished ihe means for prosecuting the vrork. Israel Smith and Joseph Annin superintended the building of the bridge. Thus commenced, the intercourse of Aaron Burr with the people of Western New- York, many of whom were subsequently drawn into the great south-west ex- pedition. In process of time. Col. Tyler and Israel Smith, both of whom acted prominent parts in the affair, with others from Onondaga and Cayuga counti(!s, proceeded to J?ig liea- vcr, (formerly Fort Mcintosh,) in Pennsylvania, on horseback, ostensibly for the i)urpose of making sale of salt. This arti- cle had begun to be manufactured in considerable quantities at Montezuma and Onondaga, and the sale of it in the west be- came a desirable object. Upon their arrival at Beaver, Messrs. Tyler and Smith entered largely into the purchase of provi- sions, particularly pork and Hour. Having purchased a large number of hogs, they had them packed and taken down the Ohio to Natchcs. This is said to bo the first salted pork ever taken down the Ohio River, and was considered not only some- thing new but wonderful at Natches. Many of the most prominent men in the country courted the society of these gentlemen, and expressed themselves as fervent advocates of the project. As the boats laden with provisions proceeded down the Ohio, they were joined by others who were engaged in the expedition. These operations on the Muskino-um and Ohio Rivers, awakened the vigilance and excited the attention of the government of the United States. On the Gth of December, 1805, Col. Tyler landed at Blener- hasset's Island with four boats and about thirty men, some of "whom were armed. These liad been fitted out as before sta- ted, at the towns above on tus Ohio River, and were making COUNTY— COMFORT TYLER. 876 their way down to Now Orleano. I]oat« laden with aimikr freight had previously paHHod, and othorH wore oxpoctod. Upon thoHu domoiiHtrationH of hoHtility, the militia of Ohio wore called out to HUpprcHt) what waH HuppoHcd to amount to an inaurrection. An act of the Ohio LegiHlature, and Trow- dent JcfTcrHon'8 prochunation, againwt thcHo HuapiciouH move- montB, diHaipatod the whole affair, and the oxi)odition, what- ever it was designed to he, exploded upon tho arroat of the principal mover, Aaron IJurr. Col. liurr, was arrested on the Tombigheo llivor, MiHsia- eippi; was carried to lMchtu(md Virginia, tried for treason in 1807, and ac(iuitted. Other arrestH wore nia.t 382 ONONDAGA. The following extract from Dunlap's Daily Advertiser, printed at Philadelphia, 26th of July, 1792, may not be unin- teresting, as it shows us what was thought of Herkimer county at that period. " Gentlemen who reside on the military lands in the county of Herkimer, inform us, that that tract of country contains a very great proportion of rich land, well watered and timbered, that there is already a considerable number of settlers there, and that it bids fair to people as rapidly as any part of America. That sixteen bushels of salt are daily manufactured at Major Danforth's works at the salt springs, and that Mr. Van Vleck, formerly of Kinderhook, is erecting other works, at the same place, for carrying on the like manufactory; that when- ever sufficient works shall be erected at those springs, a thou- sand bushels of salt can be made every day ; that salt now sells there for five shillings per bushel ; that it weighs rbout fifty-six pounds to the bushel, and is equal in quality to that of Turk's Island. That the salmon fishing in that country, must become an object of great improvement, as that fine fish (the salmon) abounds in their rivers and lakes, in spring and fall. That it is not uncommon for a party to spear twenty or fifty in an evening, from fourteen to thirty pounds each. The lands sell in general at from one shilling to three shillings per acre, but some have sold as high as from eight to twelve shil- lings per acre." In 1794, the county of Onondaga was erected from the western part of Herkimer, and included all the Military Tract, which now embraces all the counties of Seneca, Cayuga, Cort- land and Onondaga, and all that part of Tompkins county, lying north of a line drawn east from the head of Seneca Lake to the south-west corner of Cortland county, and all that part of Oswego county lying west of the Oswego River. It was finally reduced to its present territorial limits in 1816 ; Cayuga having been set off in 1799, Cortland in 1808, and Oswego in 1816. Wayne was taken from Seneca in 1823, and Tompkins, from Cayuga and Seneca counties in 1817» At the time Onondaga was organized, it was divided into eleven COUNTY. 883 to™ : Homer, Pompoy, Manliua, Lpander, Maroellus, Ulys- ^», M,lton, So,p,„, Ovid, Auroliu,, and Romulus, it the TwlTTr '" ''•"■ °"" ^"^"Sa was set off, Ononda- ga was draded mto nme towns, as follows: Solon, Homer, Fabms Onondaga, Pompey, Manilas, Lysander, CamiUus and Mar«ell„s, and contained abont one hundred and twelve thou- sand three hundred and twenty-nine inhabitants. The eensus ^L. I ' ^7Z '"Onondaga eounty, comprising thirteen towns t„nty-flve thousand nine hundred and eighty-seven .nhab^nts; 1825 forty-eight thousand four hufdred and tbrty-five; .a 1830, comprising seventeen towns, fifty-eight housand nme hun red and sevonty-feur ; and so on iLeas- ing at the ratio of about ten thousand in every five or six years. For the early settlement of Onondaga eounty, the reader IS referred to the several towns. RoAi,s._The first road attempted to be made through this country was m 1790 or 1791, by a party of emigrants ^7^ the direefon of the late Gen. WaLorth, from th settle- ' vr IMe e 'TT '" f "^"'""^"^' ""■- " » •=-" " rtfodt ,T1' "'' '"'"^'^ " '"'''™'»'- Af'« this, h old State Koad was cut through, enlarging and following the one cut by the emigrants. From the east, it crossed th! county hne a little north of the Deep Spring, 'w WeW lilt Sayles kept a tavern in 1793. Through Matlius village tha^ road was essentially where it is now. After passing More houses Fats, it bore south and crossed the BuLrnu^ Creel near a mile south of Jamesville; then bearing a little south of west entered Onondaga Hollow at Dan fori 's, near a mt to Mickes lui-nace, then around the hill, the present road mterseeting it near General Hutchinson's. After this road ™ cut through, the tide of emigration greatly increased Winter was the season usually chosen for emigration from ^Z tT\l ""; ""^^'»™i-" '-f'on, as the country wS wholly shaded by dense forests, there was commonly ,„o^ enough for good sleighing through the winter months MosT i i;Jl i!i 884 ONONDAGA. of the settlements from Utica to Canandaigua, along this road, began to attain some consequence, as early as the year 1800. Previous to the laying out of this road, which was somewhat improved by sundry appropriations from the State, the west- ern settlers moved on pack horses through the country, along the Indian paths. One of the most noted of these paths led from Oneida to Chittenango, keeping south of the high land above Mr. Patrick's plaster bed between Canaseraga and Chittenango, coming down the hill obliquely, near where the excavation is made for the Chittenango Rail Road, crossing the Chittenango Creek on a large Sycamore tree, which was lying across the creek as late as 1804, a little above the turn- pike bridge, passing upon the high land above and south of the ravine, through which the present road passes to Col. Sage's farm, where w^ere once the remains of a stockade en- closure, and a large Indian orchard. From this, it passed on, entering Onondaga Hollow at Major Danforth's. In 1793, John L. Hardenburgh, Moses De Witt, and John Patterson, were appointed a board of commissioners, for lay- ing out and making public roads, on the Military Tract ; the principal one of which, was that leading from the " Deep Spring" to the " Cayuga Ferry," and others in different parts of the Military Tract. They were to be laid out four rods wide, and the sum of two thousand seven hundred dollars was appropriated for that purpose. In 1794 an aci was passed by the Legislature of the State of New- York, appointing Israel Chapin, Michael Myers and Othniel Taylor, commissioners for the purpose of laying out and improving a public highway, from old Fort Schuyler, on the Mohawk River to the Cayuga Ferry, as nearly straight as the situation of the country would allow. Thence from Cayuga Ferry to Canandaigua, and thence to the settlement of Canawagas, on the Genesee River. Road to be six rods wide, and the sum of six hundred pounds was appropriated for the expenses of opening and improving so much of the road as passed through the Military Tract. In 1796 the Sur- veyor General was authorized to sell certain lands on the In- COUNTY. 885 dian reservation, and from the proceeds of the sales, appro- priate five hundred pounds for improving the Great Genesee Road, through the county of Onondaga. In 179G, Soth Phelps, William Stevens, and Comfort Ty- ler were appointed commissioners, to make and repair the highways in the county of Onondaga. Four thousand dollars wore appropriated by the State for that purpose, and two thousand dollars were directed to be expended in the improve- ment of the Great Genesee Road, from the eastern to the western boundary of the county. Commissioners were each allowed two dollars per day for superintending the improve- ment of the roads. Subsequently, Amos Hall, Samuel Chip- man and Michael Myers were appointed commissioners to superintend the improvements of the Great Genesee Road. In 1797, the Legislature of the State, authorized three Lotteries, for the purpose of raising forty-five thousand dol- lars, for the further improvement of roads. Thirteen thou- sand nine hundred dollars of this was appropriated for open- ing and improving the Great Genesee Road, in all its extent, from old Fort Schuyler to Geneva. In 1800, the Seneca Road Company was chartered for the purpose of improving the old State Road from Utica to Can- andaigua. Jedediah Sanger, Benjamin Walker, Cha's Wil- liamson and Israel Chapin, were appointed commissioners to survey and lay out this road ; the capital stock was one hun- dred and ten thousand dollars ; shares fifty dollars each. The charter was amended in 1801, and the commissioners were privileged to deviate from the old road. After the amend- ment of the charter in 1801, and the commissioners had re- solved to improve, alter and straighten the road, as may well be supposed, there was a great deal of anxiety, manifested by inhabitants in various sections of the country, respecting the proper location of it ; every man desiring it should pass his own door. The commissioners had proceeded from Utica west, as far as Chittenango, and established the road, vary- ing in several instances from the old road. They encountered not much opposition, because after leaving Westmoreland, 49 386 ONONDAGA. thoro wero very few white inhabitants. At Chittenango the commissioners were met by a large delegation of interested individuals, from Onondaga and Manlius. These persons were feariul, lest tlic commissioners would select a more north- ern route, and they had become fixed in their determination to avoid the monstrous Canaseraga Hill, as it was then called, and also the Onondaga Hill. The northern route had few advocates, as the settlers in that direction did not deem the matter of sufficient importance to send delegates to the coiri- missioners. The southern route was finally settled upon, but not without the practice of a most palpable deception on the part of the persons interested. The settlers from Onondaga were the most active in the measure. Being well acquainted with the country, at the same time professing to show and ex- plain the best and most suitable ground for the road, they first led the commissioners up the ravine, north-west of Chit- tenango, passing up that a mile and a half, they found them- selves hemmed in on three sides by a perpendicular ledge of rocks, more than one hundred feet high, with no way of get- ting out, but backing out. The next best supposable route was acted upon, and the commissioners were led across this ravine, along the great hill towards Ilartsville, and into one of the most dismal of all places, then dignified by the very significant name of the Gulf of IMcxico, now called the Ba- sin ; a place where the sun lias never in this latitude, risen high enough to shine upon. In this dilemma, there could be no alternative but to return the way they had advanced. Upon this, the northern route was declared impracticable, and they proceeded to lay out the road through Manlius Square, Sinai (Jamesville) and Onondaga Hollow. The company soon learned they had not availed themselves of the most favora))le route, and they solicited an amendment of their charter, which was i2;rantcd in 1806, enablin"- them to build a new road from Sullivan, through the Onondaca Reser- vation near the salt springs, to Cayuga Bridge, and fifty thou- sand dollars was addied to the capital stock. This road was finally completed in 1812, and was styled the north branch COUNTY. 387 of the Seneca Road. It was made through this county by the efforts of James Gcddcs, Squire Munro and Dr. John Frisbie Iho Third Great Western or Clierry Valley Turnpike, as it 13 more commonly called, was chartered in ]«02, and was fin- ished m 1807; capital .stock seventy-five thousand dollars, with privilege of increasing thirty thousand dollars more; shares twenty-five dollars each. In 1807, John Swift, Grover Smith and John Ellis were ap- pointed commissioners to explore and lay out a public road four rods wide from the village of Salina to the north west corner of the township of Galen. And the same year Moses Carpenter, Medad Curtis and Asa Rico, were appointed com- missioners to explore and Iny out a road six rods wide on the most practicable route from Onondaga Hill to Ox Creek and from thence to the village of Oswego, and another from Ox Creek to the village of Salina. Thus we see that as early as 1810 we have all the most prominent and useful public high- ways laid out, and most of them ready for the use of travel- ers. A Mr. Langdon first carried the United States Mail through this county from Wliitestown to Genesee on horse- bake in 1797 or 17D8, and distributed papers and unsealed letters by the way, before intermediate oflices were established. Mr. Lucas succeeded Mr. Langdon in transporting the mail, which, m 1800, had become so heavy, as to reciuire a wagon to transport it. Mr. Lucas established a sort of two horse passenger hack for the conveyance of passengers, and did a brisk and profitable business. The first four horse mail coach was sent through once a week, by Jusou Parker, in 1803 ; and m 1804, commenced running regularly from Utica to Canan- daigua, twice a week, carrying the United States mail and passengers. In 1804, an act was passed, granting to Jason 1 arker and Levi Stephens, the exclusive right for seven years, of running a line of stages for the conveyance of passengers,' at least twice a week, along the Genessee lioad or Seneca Turnpike, between the villages of Utica and Canandaigua. They were bound to furnish four good and substantial covered wagons or sleighs, and sufficient horses to run the same; the 888 ONONDAGA. faro not to exceed five cents per milo for each pasaenger, with fourteen pounds of ba^rga/re. Thoy wore l)y law bound to run through in forty-eight iiours, accidents excepted, and not more than seven passengers were allowed in any one carriage, except by the unanimous consent of tho said seven passengers ; and, if four passengers above the seven, applied for passage, they were bound to immediately fit out and start an extra for their accommodation ; or any number less than four should bo accommodated, by paying tho fare of four. In 1808, a daily line was established, and afterwards seve- ral others, which Avcre continued until tho completion of the Syracuse and Utica Rail Road. From the first, the settlement of Onondaga County has been rapid, and the increase of its population, uniform and perma- nent. Notwithstanding tho many divisions and subdivisions it has experienced, it is now among tho first in point of num- bers. In point of location, the advantages of water commu- nication, and consequent facilities for the choice of markets, Onondaga is exceeded by few counties in the State. In point of internal resources, bringing into view her increasing busi- ness in the manufacture of salt, her inexhaustable beds of plaster, her water lime and limestone quarries, her fertile soil, and the porsevcving industry and intelligence of her citizens, she stands second to none. Her mineral wealth, from its vast extent and its adaptation to the wants of humanity, is of far greater value than tho golden mountains of California and Peru. Being centrally situated in the Empire State, and tra- versed by till the principal roads, and a railway leading from the Atlantic Cities to the Great West, she is ever destined to maintain a high position among the interior counties of the State. The Seneca and Oneida Rivers spread over the northern portion of the county, while their tributaries penetrate every part, yielding water power abundant for the necessities of an energetic and persevering people. The Erie and Oswego canals unite at the City of Syracuse, the great centre of business and of trade, through which are COUNTY. 889 I I* ■ sent the accumulating wcaltli of nations. If the light of heaven shines more benignly on one country than another ; if there be one spot more fuvorod than another, it is centered here. In Hhort, it is evident to the most inattentive observer, that the county of Onondaga contains, within itself, all the ele- ments of a numerous, rich and prosperous population. Judg- ing from the past, and from present appearances of the future, her increase in population, resouroos and wealth, Avill exceed the ratio of former years. Healthy and fertile, possessing a choice of markets, there is every probability that in the moral, political and financial concerns of New-York, Onondaga is destined to act an important part, and exert a powerful influ- ence for all time to come. The following statistics of Onondnga County have been ta- ken from the census of 1845 : Number of inhabitants, 70,175 ; number subject to military duty, 6,857; voters, 15,812; aliens, 2,183; number of child- ren attending common schools, 15,040 ; number of acres of improved land, 811,872 ; grist mills, 58 ; saw mills, 155 ; oil mills, 4 ; fulling mills, 10 ; carding machines, 20 ; cotton fac- tories, 2 ; woolen factories, 12 ; iron works, 11 ; trip ham- mers, 5 ; distilleries, 6 ; asheries, 18 ; clover mills, 8 ; paper mills, 8; tanneries, 17 ; breweries, 3; Churches — Baptist, 20; Episcopalian, 10 ; Presbyterian, 20 ; Congregational, 9 ; Me- thodist, 40 ; Roman Catholic, 4 ; Dutch Reformed, 4 ; Uni- versalists, 2 ; Unitarian, 3 ; Jews, 2 ; Quaker, 1 ; Academies, 7 ; Common Schools, 818 ; Select, do. 81 ; taverns, 142 ; wholesale stores, 4; retail do., 207; groceries, 230; farm- ers, 8,190 ; merchants, 284 ; manufacturers, 870 ; mechanics, 3,182 ; cli i-gymen, 180 ; physicians, 126 ; lawyers, 87. Organization of Courts. — In 1794, after the Military Tract had been set off from Herkimer, and organized as a county by itself. Courts of Common Pleas and General Ses- sions of the Peace, were established by law. These Courts were ordered to be held alternately, on the first Mondays in in Ml i f'i I 'li 390 ONONDAGA. May and November in each year, at the house of Reuben Pat erson, in the town of Manliu«, and at the house of Seth Phelps, m the town of Scipio, commencing with the first Mr Patterson then kept a tavern at Onondaga IIolh)w, which at that time was inchided in the town of Manlius. The.e terms were to be liold only for the space of one week. " Previous to the organization of Onondaga County, Courts, were held for the county of Herkimer in the church at Herkimer Village until other Legislative provision was made in the mat- ter. Ool. Henri Staring was appointed First Judge. He was a man possessed of many excellent qualities, but had ne- ver enjoyed the advantages of an education ; still, he was a man of remarkable honesty and integrity of purpose. Many amusing anecdotes are told of his mode of administering ius- tice some of which, border upon the ludicrous and derisive Michael Myers was one of his associates, and filled many offi- CWv"'t It'o.''^^ ''''''''' '''•''' ^- ^ P-^ «f Herkimer County. In 1T93, one term of the Courts for the county of Herkimer was directed to be held in Whitestown, at such place as the Court should direct. The first Court held under this provision was in the late Judge Sanger's barn, Jud^e fe aring presiding, assisted by Judge White. The late Jud^e gTwiv o T'\'' ''"■'^""- ^"'"^y' -^ *h« Sheriff, Col. William Colbraith, the first Sheriff who ever served pro^ sort of '''^^^^^;^^-^- H^ -- ^ Jolly, good humo'red sort of man and withal a lover of fun. He had seen some service m the revolution, but had acquired his title as a militia officer since the war. His education had been scanty, and his manners bore unequivocal evidence that they originated more from a native mine of genuine good humor, and a capacious soul rather than from the arbitrary rules of a professor of polite breeding. ^ Before a Court House was erected in Onondaga County civil and criminal prisoners were ordered to be confined in the jad of Herkimer County, as heretofore, until a jail could be provided in the county of Onondaga. The first Court held in the county, under the new organization, was in General Dan- "11 COUNTY. 391 forth's corn house, first Monday in May, 1794. Present, Seth Phelps, First Judge ; John Eichardson, Silas Halsey and William Stevens, Judges. Moses De Witt, Esq., was appoint- ed Judge of Onondaga Common Pleas, not present. Thomas R. Gould and Arthur Breeze, were the only lawyers then present, not one at that time having been established in the county. The first Court of Oyer and Terminer for the county of Onondaga, was held at the house of Asa Danforth, Esq., (late Reuben Patterson's,) on the 21st of July, 1794. Present, the Hon. Egbert Benson, Esq., one of the Judges of the Su- preme Court of Judicature for the State of New- York, assist- ed by Seth Phelps and Andrew Englis, Justices of Oyer and Terminer and General Jail Delivery for the county of Onon- daga. LaAvycrs were in attendance at this Court from Whites- town and Herkimer. The grand jury were, Walter Wood, Foreman ; Comfort Tyler, Isaac Van Vleck, Elias Fitch, Mo- ses Carpenter, William Ward, Jonathan Wilkinson, Cyrus Kinne, Score Curtis, Victory S. Tousley, Amos Stanton, Hen- ry Moore, James Geddes, Ryal Bingham, Reuben Patterson. "Judge Benson made an eloquent charge to the Grand Jury." The only bill of indictment found was against James Fitzgerald for an assault and battery with intent to rob An- drew McCarthy. The Petit Jurors on this first criminal trial, were, John Brown, William Linsley, Thomas Morgan, Henry Watkins, Benjamin De Puy, Nehemiah Smith, Isaac Strong, John A.' Thompson, Noah Olmsted, Isaac Baily, William Stevens, and Thomas Ozman, who found the prisoner guilty. Sentenced by the Court to two months imprisonment in the county jail at Herkimer. The Court fined nineteen Petit Jurors, twenty shillings each, four Grand Jurors and two Constables each the same sum ; John Stowell, William Goodwin, Perry Brownell, Justices of the Peace, were each fined thirty sliillings, for ab- sence. The next term of the Circuit Court was held at the house of Seth Phelps, in Scipio, 7th September, 1795. Present, M n N 1l 392 ONONDAGA. vZ T . ^^?^' ^""^^^ '^ *^^ S"Pr^«^« Court, Seth Phelps, John Richardson, William Stevens, Judges of On n- daga County Commom Pleas. The following absent Justices ot the Peace were severally fined thirty shillings, viz : John A. Sheaffer, William Goodwin, John Stowell, Cyrus KhT Hezehah Olcutt Daniel Keeler, Ryal Bingham and S Burr John A. Sheaffer was indicted for forgery. He for- teited his recognizances and left, (estreated.) Hon. Egbert Benson, held the next Circuit at the house of Reuben Patterson 14th June, 1797, assisted by Seth Phelps, Wilham Stevens, Asa Danforth and Comfort Tyler, Judge and Justices of Oyer and Terminer for the county of Onon- daga. Gh^nd Jury-Ozias Burr, Foreman; James Geddes, Ephraim Webster Bethel Cole, Robert Earll, John Curtiss Joseph Leonard, Levi Jerome, David Green, John Lamb, Wil! ham Rice Jonathan Coe, Joseph Cody, Peter Lawrence, Wil- ham Cobb, Irad Smith. Ko Bills of Indictment were found at this term. Judge James Kent held the next Circuit at the house of Phelps Wilham Stevens, Seth Sherwood, Judges of Common Pleas for Onondaga County. Cayuga County was set off from Onondaga, in 1799. The first Court at Onondaga, after this, was held at the house of Reuben Patterson, in June, 1799. Present, William Stevens, first Judge, assisted by Elijah Rust, James Geddes, Orris Cur- tiss, James Keep and Jere. Gould, assistants. Grand Jury, Ozias Burr Foreman; Aaron Wood, James Foster, Ch^^^s Merriman, Darnel Thomas, Franklin Venall, Jonathan Bull, Punderson Avery, Shubel Safford, Thomas Foster, Roswell Barnes Joseph Bartholomew, Hezekiah Weston, Enos Peck Jonas Hinman, Thomas Gaston, John Cole, John Stevens.' JNo Bill found. Courts were held at different houses in Onondaga Hollow to wit: Asa Danforth's, Reuben Patterson's, Samuel Tyler's and John Adams', from 1794 to 1805, when the Court House at Onondaga Hill was so far completed as to allow of the COUNTY. 393 Courta being held there, with the legislative pvovision for ad- journing to any other house, if the weather was so inclement as to render it uncomfortable at the Court House. In 1801 Elihu Lewis, Jabez Webb and Thaddeus M. Wood, were ap- pointed commissioners for the purpose of erecting a Court House for the county of Onondaga, at the West Hill. The work proceeded very slowly. In 1806, Mr. Wood was super- ceded as a commissioner, by Josiah White, and the same year, the Board of Supervisors were authorizeu by law, to raise by tax on the county, two thousand dollars, for the purpose of completing the Court House and Jail, which was finally done in 1807, and the Courts were held there till the year 1830, when the Court House and Jail were completed at their pre- sent location at Syracuse. In 1807, three terras of the Court of Common Pleas and General Sessions of the Peace were au- thorized by law, to be held in May, January and September. In 1813, an act was passed, authorizing the Board of Su- pervisors of Onondaga County to levy a sum not exceeding one thousand dollars, for the purpose of erecting a fire-proof clerk's office for the county. The office was immediately built, —previously the office had been kept at the Hollow, most of the time in the dwelling house of the clerk. After the Courts were held at Syracuse, a new Clerk's office was there erected, and the Books, Kecords, Papers, &c., removed. The following were judicial and executive officers for Her- kimer, from 1791 to 1794, while Oonondaga was a part of Her- kimer : Henri Staring, First Judge and Justice of the Peace • Michael Myers, Hugh White and Abraham Hardenburgh,' Judges and Justices of the Peace; John Bank, Patrick Camp- bell, Jedediah Stinger, Amos Whitmore, William Veeder, Al- exander Parkman and Ephra™ Blackman, Assistant Justices and Justices of the Peace; Seth Phelps, Moses De Witt, Asa Danforth, Edward Payne and others. Justices of the Peace ; William Colbraith, Sheriff; Jonas Piatt, Clerk ; Moses De Witt,' Surrogate ; John Post and Daniel White, Coroners. In 1793, for Herkimer County, were reappointed, Seth 50 r >i If fl I S94 ONONDAGA, Phelps, Asa Danforth, Moses Dewitt, J, L. Hardenburgh and Silas Halsey, Assistant Justices and Justices of the Peace. Judges of Onondaga County Courts.— Seth Phelps, First Judge ; Silas Halsey, John Richardson and Moses De Witt, Judges and Justices of the Peace, 1794; William Stevens, Judge, 1795 ; Asa Danforth, Judge, 1797 ; William Stevens, First Judge, 1799 ; Elihu Lewis, Ebenezer Butler, Asa Dan- forth, Judges and Justices of the Peace ; Dan Bradley, Judge, 1801; John Ballard, Judge, 1802; William J. Vredenburgh, Judge, 1804; Reuben Humphreys, Judge; Reuben Hum- phreys, First Judge ; Dan Bradley, John Ballard and William J. Vredenburgh, Judges and Justices of the Peace, 1805; Dan Bradley, First Judge, 1808 ; Squire Munroe, Roswell Tousley and William J. Vredenburgh, Judges ; Jonathan Stan- ley and Ozias Burr, Judges, 1809 ; Jacob R, De Witt, James Geddes and Sylvanus Tousley, Judges, 1812 ; Joshua Forman, First Judge, 1813 ; Reuben Humphreys, Judge, 1814 ; Jacob R. De Witt, Squire Munroe, Sylvanus Tousley and John Ten- eyck, Judges, 1815 ; James 0. Wattles and Warren Hecox, Judges, 1818 ; Jonathan Stanley, Squire Munroe, Levi Mason, and James Webb, Judges, 1819 ; Nehemiah H. Earll, First Judge; John Mason, George Petit and James Sisson, Jr., Judges, 1823; Nehemiah H. Earll, First Judge, 1828; George Petit, Martin M. Ford, Otis Bigelow and John Smith, Judges, 1828 ; .Samuel L. Edwards, First Judge, 1831 ; John Watson, Judge, 1833 ; Otis Bigelow, David Munro, George Petit and James M. Allen, Judges ; Grove Lawrence, First Judge, 1838 ; Nathan Soule, Oliver R. Strong, Lyman H. Mason and John- son Hall, Judges ; Daniel Pratt, First Judge, 1843 ; John L. Stevens, George A. Stansbury, Lyman Kingsley, Amasa H. Jerome, Judges ; James R. Lawrence, Judge, 1847. S-URROGATES FOR Onondaga County.— Moscs De Witt, 1794; Thomas Mumford, 1795; Thaddeus M. Wood, 1800; George Hall, 1802; Medad Curtis, 1810; George Hall, 1811 ; James Porter, 1821 ; Freeborn G. Jewett, 1824 ; John Flem- COUNTY. 395 ing, 1831; Isaac T. Minard, 1840; David D. IliUia, 1844- Isaac T. Minard, 1848. ' .d^l ^qI' r ^TT.^ CouNTY.-Benjamin Ledyard, appoint- ed 1794 ; Comfort Tyler, 1799 ; Jasper Hopper, 1802 ; George W. Olmsted, 1810 ; Jasper Hopper, 1811 ; Truman Adams, 1818 ; Daniel Moselj, 1823 ; Keuben L. Hess, 182G ; Alanson Edwards, 1835; Elijah llhoades, elected, 1838; Charles T Hicks, 1841 ; Vivus W. Smith, 1847. 'Sheriffs for Onondaga County.— John Harris 1794 • Abiathar Hull, 1796: Comfort Tyler, 1797 ; Elnathan Beach,' 1799 ; Ebenezer 11. Hnwlcy, 1801 ; Elijah Phillips, 1805 : Robert Earn, 1809; Elijah Rust, 1813; Jonas Earll, 1814- Hezekiah L. Granger, 1818 ; Jonas Earll, 1819 ; Luther Marsh, 1823 ; Lewis Smith, 1826 ; John H. Johnson, 1829 • Johnson Hall, 1832 ; Dorastus Lawrence, 1835 ; Elihu L Phillips, 1838 ; Frederick Benson, 1841 ; Heber Wetherby, 1844; Joshua C. Cuddeback, 1847. Treasurers of Onondaga County, appointed by Board ot Supervisors.— Moses Carpenter, 27th Mav, 1794 • Jacob R. De Witt, 1799; Jacobus De Buy, Oct. 1st, 1805;' Oliver R. Strong, Oct. 5th, 1809— resigned Nov. 11th, 1830; Mo- ses S. Marsh, appointed Nov. 12th, 1830— declined Nov. 13, 1830; Hezekiah Strong, appointed Nov. 13, 1830— died 1842 ; Benjamin F. Colvin, appointed Nov., 1842 ; George B. Walter, Dec, 1844 ; Phares Gould, Nov., 1845. County Treasurer made elective by the people, 1846. ^ Cornelius M. Brosnan, elected— entered on the duties of his office, 1st of January, 1847, and resigned Dec. 9th 1848 Wheeler Truesdell, appointed to fill vacancy, Dec. 9th, 1848* Treasurer by election, Jan. 1st; 1849. ' Members of Congress from Onondaga County, and TBE District of which it was a part— The Colonial Con- gress from New- York, consisted of only six delegates. And i 1 - 1 III ih 396 ONONDAGA. after the adoption of the Constitution, the number of mem- bers entitled to seats from New York was only six, in the first and second Congresses— i. e. 1789 to 1791. In 1792, a new apportionment was made, and ten members were allowed to New-York. In 1802, the counties of Onondaga, Chenango and Tioga, constituted one Congressional District, (the ninth,) and were entitled to one member. In the 9th Congress, Hon. Uri Tracy was elected a mem- ber, from Chenango, to represent the district. The same Congress, Hon. Silas Halsey, of Cayuga, formerly a Judge of Onondaga County Courts, was also a member. In the 10th Congress, Hon. Reuben Humphreys, of Onondaga, repre- sented the 13th district, and Hon. John Harris, of Cayuga, formerly sheriff of Onondaga County, was a member for the 14th district, and Hon. Wm. Kirkpatrick of Salina, Super- intendent of Onondaga Salt Springs, represented the 11th district. Hon. Uri Tracy represented the 16th Congressional district, in the 11th and 12th Congresses— years 1809 to 1813. In 1813-14, in the 13th Congress, Hon. James Geddes repre- sented the new district, composed of the counties of Cortland and Onondaga, called the 19th. 1815-16, 14th Congress, Victory Birdseye ; 15th, James Porter ; 16th, George Hall ; 17th and 18th, Elisha Litchfield ; 19th, Luther Badger ; 20th and 21st, Jonas Earll, Jr ; 22d, Freeborn G. Jewett ; 23d, 24th and 25th, William Taylor ; 26th, Nehemiah H. Earll ; 27th, Victory Birdseye ; 28th and 29th, Horace Wheaton ; 30th and 31st, Daniel Gott. In 1822, Onondaga was a district alone, till 1832, when it was made a joint district with Madison County, and entitled to two members. In 1842, it was again a single district, as it now stands. Senators fok Onondaga County. — At the time of the formation and adoption of the first Constitution of the State of New York in 1777, Tryon County was entitled to six mem- bers of Assembly and the State was divided into four Senate COUNTY. 897 Bistricts. The Western District was composed of the coun- ties of Albany and Tryon, and six senators were annually chosen from the body of the freeholders of the State for the term of four years. As the population of the country in- creased sundry alterations were made and senators were chosen at large for the Western District. But it seems that senators were not over punctual in their attendance from the western part of the State. From the journals of the senate we find the following members in attendance from Onondaga up to 1822. Moss Kent, 1799 ; Jedediah Sanger, 1800 ; William Stewart, 1801 ; Josepli Annin, (Cayuga,) 1802 ; Asa Dan- forth, 1803 ; none from Onondaga County in 1806, to 1815. Henry Seymour, 1816, 1817, 1818 and 1819 ; 1821, 1822 none. ' After the alteration of the Constitution in 1822 the State was divided into eight Senate Districts. The seventh was composed of the Counties of Onondaga, Cayuga, Seneca and Ontario, after which wo have the following Senators from Onondaga County : Jonas Earll, Jr., 1823; Victory Birdseye, 1827; Hiram F. Mather, 1829 ; Samuel L. Edwards, 1833 ; Elijah Rhoades, 1841 ; II. James Sedgwick, 1845 ; George Geddes, 1848. Members op Assembly for OnoxNdaga County.— Previous to the organization of Onondaga County, Michael Myers was elected a member for Herkimer in the year 1792-93. After the erection of Onondaga County, it was a joint district with Herkimer, and Jedediah Sanger, Esq. was elected and repre- sented the two counties in the House of Assembly, years 1794-95. There was no return for member of Assembly for either Herkimer or Onondaga, for the years 1796 and 1797. Comfort Tyler and Silas Halsey were members for Onondaga m 1798 and 1799. Cayuga was taken from Onondaga in 1799, and Ebenczer Butler, elected member of Assembly for Onondaga County that year. Ebenczer Butler, member of Assembly for 1800 ; Asa Danforth, 1801 and 1802 • John McWhorter and John Lamb, 1803 ; James Geddes and John 1*3 Is* ::■. I t ■ « ill ! i i ^V* . 39« ONONDAGA. McWhorter, 1804 ; Wm. J. Vredenburgh and John Ballard, 1805 ; Jasper Hopper and Wm. J. Vredenburgh, 180G ; Ozias Burr and Squire Munro, 1807 ; Joshua Forraan and John McWhorter, 1808 ; Jacobus l)e Pay and Barnet Mooncy, 1809; Jacob Do Buy and Barnet Mooncy, 1810; Jasper Hopper and Robert Earll, 1811 ; Jonathan Stanley and Barnet Mooney, 1812 ; Isaac Smith and Moses Nash, 1818; Moses Nash and Barnet Mooney, 1814 ; Hczckiah L. Gran- ger and James Porter, 1815; Truman Adams, Elijah Miles, George Hall and Nathan Williams, 181G ; Gideon Wilcoxon, James Webb, Asa Wells and Elijah Miles, 1817; David Mun- roe, Abijah Earll, Asa Wells and James Webb, 1818 ; David Munroe, Henry Case, Nathan Williams and Elisha Litchfield, 1819 ; Lewis Smith, Jonas Earll, Jr., Henry Scymowi a/nd Henry Field, 1820 ; Jona& Earll, Jr., Lewis Smith,- George Petit and Jonathan Doming, 1821 ; James Geddes,. David Munro, Josephus Baker and Sylvester Gardener, 1822 ; Vic- tory Birdseye, Timothy Baker, Samuel L. Edwards, Harold White, 1823 ; '^amuel L. Edwards, Timothy Baker, George Petit, Mathew v an Vleck, 1824 ; James R. Lawrence, Moses Kinne, James Petit, Erastus Baker, 1825 ; John G. Forbes, Da- viavid Wil- *^»^v